classes ::: book, chapter, The_Mothers_Agenda, The_Mother, Satprem,
children :::
branches :::

Instances, Classes, See Also, Object in Names
Definitions, . Quotes . - . Chapters .


object:Agenda Vol 4
class:book
class:chapter
book class:The Mothers Agenda
author class:The Mother
class:Satprem

Mother's Agenda
IV
1963
Translated from French
Institut de Recherches Evolutives

This book was first published in France under the title L'Agenda de Mre - 1963
Institut de Recherches volutives, Paris, 1979.
Rendered into English under the direction of Satprem

This Agenda... is
my gift to
those who love me
MOTHER

Table of Contents
January
January 2, 1963
January 9, 1963
January 12, 1963
January 14, 1963
January 18, 1963
January 30, 1963
February
February 15, 1963
February 19, 1963
February 21, 1963
February 23, 1963
March
March 6, 1963
March 9, 1963
March 13, 1963
March 16, 1963
March 19, 1963
March 23, 1963
March 27, 1963
March 30, 1963
April
April 6, 1963
April 16, 1963
April 20, 1963
April 22, 1963
April 25, 1963
April 29, 1963
May
May 3, 1963
May 11, 1963
May 15, 1963
May 18, 1963
May 22, 1963
May 25, 1963
May 29, 1963
June
June 3, 1963
June 8, 1963
June 12, 1963
June 15, 1963
June 19, 1963
June 22, 1963
June 26, 1963
June 26, 1963
June 29, 1963

July
July 3, 1963
July 6, 1963
July 10, 1963
July 13, 1963
July 17, 1963
July 20, 1963
July 24, 1963
July 27, 1963
July 31, 1963
August
August 3, 1963
August 7, 1963
August 10, 1963
August 13, 1963
August 13, 1963
August 17, 1963
August 21, 1963
August 24, 1963
August 28, 1963
August 31, 1963
September
September 4, 1963
September 7, 1963
September 18, 1963
September 21, 1963
September 25, 1963
September 28, 1963
October
October 3, 1963
October 5, 1963
October 16, 1963
October 19, 1963
October 26, 1963
October 30, 1963
November
November 4, 1963
November 13, 1963
November 20, 1963
November 23, 1963
November 27, 1963
November 30, 1963
December
December 3, 1963
December 7, 1963
December 11, 1963
December 14, 1963
December 18, 1963
December 21, 1963

December 25, 1963
December 29, 1963
December 31, 1963

January

January 2, 1963
My year is off to a dreadful start. And I am afraid it may go on like that.
Some new difficulties?
No, it's just that everybody wants to see me!
They tire me - they wear me out.
While I would need... Oh, at times I withdraw from action altogether - by "action," I mean talking
and above all receiving swarms of vibrations... terrible, terrible vibrations!
I feel the work is going fairly fast inside, there are some interesting things (what shall I say?)... like
promises. But the [body's] sensitivity and the possibility of imbalance have heightened, in the sense
that a mere trifle, which in other circumstances would have been totally unimportant and would have
just gone by smoothly, throws the body off balance - the body has grown terribly sensitive. For
example, a wrong reaction in someone, a tension or some reaction of a quite ordinary order, causes a
sudden weariness in my body, as if it were exhausted. Then I have to collect myself and plunge back
into the Source so that...
These are difficult days.
There's also that awful habit people have, you know, that democratic spirit: if I do something for
one, why shouldn't I do it for another? They would readily accept that I was ill and unable to see
anyone (!), they'd say, "Poor Mother, we should be really nice to her and leave her alone"; but that I am
a force and don't give this person what I give that one and that other one, that they won't accept!
Egalitarianism is in vogue nowadays; hierarchy, or even simply dealing with each case differently -
that's all outmoded.
Anyway, I don't want to start explaining all this, I will do it some other time.
But we have a few tough days ahead to get through.
You shouldn't let yourself be swamped.
No.
I don't LET them, but...

January 9, 1963

... How people love to bustle about. How they need to bustle about in order to feel alive!
Isn't that so?
***
(Mother refers to the "Bulletin" and in particular to the Talk of July 3, 1957, in which she narrated her
symbolic vision of the "Big Hotel" in perpetual demolition1 :)
But all this seems to me on the outside. I understand it may interest people, but it's still one of the
things that make me smile. That's how I see it. Even this vision.
I have three or four of them every night, great visions, with all the complications, 2 all the symbols,
all the explanations. And I meet people... who are not as they think they are.
But it's tremendous! Tremendous how much you can do in a few hours at night....
(silence)
All that there is to know which we do not know... (I don't mean outer things).
(long silence)
But it's very hard for the body to change. Because it lives only from its habit of living. And every time
something of the true way of living filters in, then without thinking, without reasoning or anything like
an idea, practically without sensation, almost automatically, the cells panic at the newness of it. So, you
understand, EVERYTHING has to be changed. It's no longer the heart that has to pump blood and
receive the Force, no longer the stomach that has to digest, it's not any of that any more - it all
functions in another way. The base must be shifted, the functioning completely changed - but then all
those cells are so anxious to see that everything goes ACCORDING TO HABIT....
(silence)
Terrible. A strange difficulty.
If the inner being - the true being - is the ruler, the power of the true being makes the body act
automatically; but then it doesn't grow conscious of its own change, it doesn't collaborate in its change,
so for the change to happen it would take... maybe millennia. The true being has to be like this (gesture
to the background, standing back) and the body has to do everything BY ITSELF, in other words,
contain the Lord, receive the Lord, give itself to the Lord, BE the Lord. It does aspire - oh, it's intense,
aflame - that's very good. But the Lord (smiling) doesn't conform to the ordinary habit! So all the
habits, the minute He just tries to take possession of one function or another, even partially (not
totally), all the interrelationships, all the movements are changed instantly - panic. Panic at the
particular spot. And the result: you faint, or you are just about to faint, or you have an excruciating
pain, or anyway something APPARENTLY breaks down completely. So what's to be done?... Wait
patiently until that small number or large number of cells, that little spot of consciousness, has learned
1See Agenda I, p. 104.
2The yoga's collective difficulties.

its lesson. It takes one day, two days, three days, then the chaotic, upsetting "big" event calms down, is
explained, and those particular cells say to themselves (or begin saying to themselves), "God, how
dumb we are!..." It takes a little while, then they understand.
But there are thousands and thousands and thousands of them!
You can't overdo it, because disruption is no good, of course! I've been observing that lately. When
you came last time, I was - I was going through a upheaval.3
The consciousness is there (gesture, standing back), but... it intervenes only if it is absolutely
indispensable. It's just that it tries locally to make the cells... (not understand, it isn't "understand"
because there's no mind) have the right sensation, the right experience - the right experience - until
they start saying, "Oh!... Oh!..."
Some panic. Some have already had a few experiences, they know better and see clearer, they work
to adapt to the new vibration. But others have yet to understand, and they feel so stupid, so stupid! And
from above, something watches it all and finds it both (both at once) very funny, because really it's
exceedingly ridiculous, and at the same time so sad! It's so sad to see that EVERYTHING is like this:
the WHOLE earth, the WHOLE earth! That this body is the object of a special concentration, a special
effort, a special CHARGE, a special concern, a special care - this minuscule fragment, minuscule - and
there's the whole earth, the whole earth.... And they all think themselves so wonderful, so smart!...
I could keep talking for hours.
Later.
Even now I have to proceed very, very slowly - not to go off at a gallop. I am surrounded by people
who say, "Oh, she's seriously ill! What's going to happen?..." and they make things difficult for me.
Because I still have to sweep it all aside with the Force: "Keep quiet! Don't you go making formations
that add to the difficulty."
You see how far we are from those romantic transformations where people emerge from their
meditation rejuvenated, transfigured, luminous - oh, dear me! That will be mere child's play. At the
end, it will be nothing: we'll just have to do this (Mother blows one puff in the air), and it will be there.
It's the rest that is difficult.

January 12, 1963
A deluge of work!... The other day, you said in your manuscript [of The Adventure of Consciousness]
that Sri Aurobindo used to work fourteen hours a day, and they want me to do the same - for the
moment I am not giving in.
Oh, you're quite right!
3During the last conversation, Mother had broken off abruptly as if about to faint.

It's very bad.
That's what made him lose his eyesight, you know; his eyes were overstrained. I know it's due to
that, because I heard him say so. Once, they had brought him a stack of books to sign and other things
and, unaware that he could be heard, he exclaimed, Oh, they want to make me blind! 4 That's how I
knew his eyes were tired. He was indeed losing his sight. At the end, he couldn't see a thing, he had to
look at very close range.
So I am not giving in.
Please!
***
(Soon afterwards)
I'll soon have finished my translation [of The Synthesis of Yoga], I have only a few more pages to go,
ten or so. It's very incomplete, I mean it's a translation. Meaning: correct; but at times the sentence
comes out very different, at other times it's a pure Anglicism.
It's a strange phenomenon: as soon as I sit down to translate, in the space of one or two seconds, no
more, I become a different person. I write - it isn't I who write, I know it's Sri Aurobindo.
And he suggests some words to me, that is, suddenly I see: "Like this." I hear the sentence and write
it down. Sometimes it's very different, though I can see the meaning is the same; and sometimes it isn't
French....
Do you have the next aphorism?
You understand, there are only 365 days in a year, and we are... including the visitors who come
specially for their birthdays, nearly 1,300 people. Most people I don't see, but some I have to: people
like Nolini, Amrita, Pavitra, Champaklal,5 I can't but give them a moment. Then there are people who
come from Africa, from Europe, and who ask to see me before leaving, so...
So I am listening to you now.
(Satprem reads)
81 - God's laughter is sometimes very coarse and unfit for polite ears; He is not satisfied
with being Molire, He must needs also be Aristophanes and Rabelais.
(After a silence) We'll see on Monday.
It's rather odd, at times it comes in torrents (more than streams): forms, images, expressions,
revelations, it comes flowing, flowing, flowing - if I started writing I could write endlessly. At other
times it's... total immobility. And if I try to disturb "that," it means falling back into the ordinary
stupidity.
We'll see.
4Italics indicate words or sentences Mother spoke in English.
5The "secretaries" and the attendant.

That's why I asked you to read to me: the aphorism went off above.
***
(Later, regarding the last conversation, in which Mother said that the body lives only out of a habit of
living:)
I've had a very interesting experience (not personal). Did you know Benjamin 6 ?... His psychic being
had left him quite some time ago and, as a result, to the surface consciousness he seemed a bit deranged
- he wasn't deranged but diminished. And he lived, as I said, out of habit. The physical consciousness
still held a minimum of vital and mind and he lived out of habit. But the remarkable thing is that
sometimes, for a few seconds, he would live admirably, in full light, while at other times he couldn't
even control his gestures. Then he left altogether: all the accumulated energy dwindled little by little,
little by little, and whatever remained left his body. It was just on his birthday, on December 30 (the
night of December 30). He left. So they did as is always done: they cleaned his room, took out the
furniture. Since then, there had been no sign of him. Yesterday evening, after dinner (which is about
the same time he left twelve days ago), I was in concentration, resting, when suddenly here comes a
very agitated Benjamin who tells me, "Mother, they've taken all the furniture out of my room! What am
I to do now!?" I told him gently, "Do not fret, you don't need anything any more." Then I put him to
rest and sent him to join the rest of his being.
Which means it took twelve days for all his elements to form again. You see, they burned his body.
(He was Christian, but his family - his wife is alive and his brother too - found it less costly to let us
handle it than to bury him as a Christian! So they had him cremated.) We cremated him, but I
demanded a certain interval of time,7 although in his case it was really a gradual exhaustion and
nothing much remained in his body; nonetheless, even then the consciousness is flung out of the cells
violently - it took twelve days to form again. It wasn't his soul (it had already left) but the spirit of his
body that came to me, the body consciousness gathered in a well-dressed, neat Benjamin with his hair
neatly brushed. He was quite trim when he came to me, just as he would have been in life: he always
wanted to be well-groomed and impeccable to see me, that was his way. It took twelve days to gather
together because I didn't see to it (I can do it in a few hours but only if I see to it), but in his case, his
soul having been at rest for a long time, it didn't matter much. So over twelve days it took form again
and when he was ready (laughing), he came to reoccupy his room!... And there was no furniture left,
nothing!
I found that very funny.
And he had been living for more than a year, almost two years, I think, just out of a habit of living.
There is also here the sister of the old portly doctor, she is (I think) five or six years older than I -
she is getting on for ninety. She has been dying away too, for several months. The doctors (who don't
know the first thing in these matters) had declared she would die after a few days. "Wait a little," I told
them, "this woman knows how to enter a state of rest, she has a very peaceful consciousness - it will
last long, it may last for years." She is in bed, she can't move much, but... she lives. She too lives out of
habit.
6An old disciple who has just died.
7Before the cremation, so as to give the consciousness time to come out.

In reality, the body should be able to last MUCH LONGER than human beings think. They knock it
about: as soon as someone is unwell, they drug or knock his body about, they take away that kind of
calm vegetative serenity that can make it last a very long time. The way trees take a very long time to
die.
Interesting.
***
Later:

...Obviously, the whole difficulty is the mixing of two things: on one hand, the responsibility of
everything, the entire organization, all these people hanging on to me (and naturally giving me work,
even if we cut out whatever we can), and on the other, the study or recording of what goes on. If I had
nothing to do and could note down my nights, what fascinating things there would be!
For instance, two or three nights ago (I don't remember), I was with Sri Aurobindo, we were doing
a certain work (it was in a mental zone with certain vital reactions mixed in), well, a general work. I
was with Sri Aurobindo and we were doing the work together. He wanted to explain to me how a
particular movement is turned into a distorted movement; he was explaining this to me (but there's
nothing mental or intellectual about it, nothing to do with theories). And without even (how can I put
it?) without even a thought or an explanation to forewarn you, a true movement is changed into a
movement that is... not false but distorted. I was speaking to Sri Aurobindo and he was answering, then
I turn my head away like this (not physically - all this is an inner life, naturally), I turned my head as if
to see the [vibratory] effect. Then I turn back and send Sri Aurobindo the movement necessary to carry
on with the experience, and I receive a reply which surprises me because of the quality of its vibration
(it was a reply of ignorance and weakness). So I turn my attention back again, and as a matter of fact in
Sri Aurobindo's place I saw the doctor. Then I understood! Superficially, one may say, "So, Sri
Aurobindo and the doctor are the same!" (To people who would see such a thing it would occur that
they are the same - of course it's all, all the same! All is one, people just don't understand this complete
oneness.) Naturally it didn't surprise me for the thousandth of a second, there wasn't any surprise, but...
oh, I understood! This way (Mother slightly tilts her hand to the left), it's Sri Aurobindo, and that way
(slightly to the right), it's the doctor. This way it's the Lord, and that way it's a man!!
Really interesting.8
At the time, there were all the minute details of observation that make the experience so concrete. If
I were to write it all, it would be worthwhile. But they are countless! I would spend my days writing
down my nights! What to do?
This is ONE kind - there are so many different kinds. For the body too, there are countless
8In the next conversation, Satprem asked for some clarification of this passage, and Mother repeated her experience, adding
some details and comments:
There's just one passage that isn't clear to me.
Aah! ... Well, you told me that - yesterday afternoon or the day before, I don't remember, you told me that. You told me it
wasn't clear!
(Satprem stares wide-eyed)
And I explained it to you again.

observations: for example, a vibration like this (gesture) brings eternal bliss; a MINUSCULE shift (it
looks like a shift - is it a shift? Is it... what? A distortion? An addition? Or is it... it's all kinds of
different things at once), and it turns into anguish and dreadful discomfort - THE VERY SAME
THING. And so forth. Tons of things that could be written down!
And if it were all noted down clearly, accurately, down to the last detail, it would be worth it, but
just look (Mother shows a pile of papers beside her): work everywhere! Letters and letters! Three, four,
five, ten, twenty every day, not to mention all the decisions I must make instantly and write on the spot.
This morning I wrote four "urgent" notes like that when Nolini was here, and you saw how it was with
Pavitra.
And I can't say it isn't important - it is important, in that all those people depend on me. I can't
make them overnight capable of receiving fully and clearly, without any external expression, all that I
do. I can't ask them to transform themselves by a miracle, I've got to help them!
I make myself difficult to approach, I keep at a good distance. As much as I can, I teach them to
receive directly, but there remains a minimum. So 1,300 or 1,400 people, not to mention all the others I
correspond with - that means 2,000 or 3,000 people on average in conscious relationship [with
Mother].
And it keeps coming and coming. Many come and are not even aware of it! And I keep going and
going. Consciously, most of the time, but also quite often not consciously. Here's an example: someone
is very ill, someone who truly loves me (it's Z, A.'s wife). A. informed me she was ill. So I increased
the dose (everyone is inside, I am with everyone, that goes without saying, but when something goes
wrong I increase the dose). I increased the dose. I expected an improvement but it didn't happen. So I
increased the dose again. The next day, I received a letter from A. saying that the night before, Z had
had an interesting experience. She has asthma (asthmatics feel as if they are dying, it's very painful, and
she is very sensitive, very nervous - she was really unwell, so they drugged her, and so...). Well then,
during an acute attack of asthma, she sat up in her bed, her legs hanging down. Then her feet began to
feel cold and she reached out for her slippers; she bent down, and instead of her slippers she felt
something soft and alive. Astonished, she looks down - and sees my feet. My feet were there with the
sandals I used to wear to go out - my bare feet. So she touched my feet and said, "Ohh, Mother is
here!" Immediately she lay down again, fell asleep... and woke up cured.
And she didn't make it up: my feet WERE there. "My feet," I mean something of me which took
that form to be perceptible to her.
All this makes for work.
And not only here: here, there, everywhere, all over the world. And it doesn't get recorded in the
head (that's impossible! I would go mad), but it stays in the consciousness (Mother makes a gesture
You see, Sri Aurobindo was explaining something to me, but the explanation wasn't like a theory: it's immediately
translated into movements of matter, that is, movements of forms and forces. So I was listening (I was listening to him, we
were talking), and I turned my head away to follow the demonstration of forces, of what he said; naturally it led to another
movement which was the consequence, and then I described what I was seeing. When I began describing the consequence, I
received a reply (it was a sort of dialogue between us, but without different voices and all the things we know physically),
but the quality of the vibration was different, it had become ... instead of being supramental, if you like, it had become
sattvic [moral], the reply was sattvic. In other words, a diminution, a limitation. I was surprised so I turned back again, and
instead of finding Sri Aurobindo, I saw the doctor, with his hair very neat - oh, a super-doctor, you know! But it was he, I
mean at his best. So immediately I thought, "Here we are! Here is how things get more and more diminished - yes,
diminished, altered, altering also physical appearances - here is how the Lord changes all His physical appearances." Oh, it
was really funny, because it was a practical and precise little illustration. But then there was immediately the feeling that
everything, the whole universe is like this! That's how all forms are changed.
So now you see!

around her head) and I just have to stop and pay attention: "What is it?" (Mother catches the vibration
coming to her)... But you understand, how do you record all this in spoken or written words? We would
have to write fifty lines at the same time! It's impossible.
But it is conscious.
And everything, everything that goes on up there with the war, all those Chinese who are forced to
do things they don't want to do....
And all that, all that, nonstop, nonstop, nonstop, everywhere, everywhere.
What reaches the active consciousness is only what demands an active reply, and that's still too
much. Which means that twenty-four hours aren't enough.
And I realize... You see, I need physical help to relieve the body of all effort that's not strictly
indispensable. But I can't make their [the attendants'] life completely chaotic in appearance: there has to
be some schedule. And a schedule means terrible limitations. I can't help it. I can't help it, because for
the time being, simply the will expressing itself isn't enough to make matter respond. Once it is like
that, time won't matter any more, but - BUT.
We mustn't be impatient.

January 14, 1963
So? Have you come with a question on these aphorisms?
There aren't many questions to ask.
I count on the question to set off the movement, because for the moment there's nothing.
More and more it's like that: I know what I must do at the time of doing it, I know what I must say
at the time of saying it. I don't try, though once or twice I did try just to see - useless, nothing comes.
But when it has to come, it comes as if a tap were opened - effortlessly, without my having to do
anything, it just comes.
So for the moment, nothing.
Read me those aphorisms again.
81 - God's laughter is sometimes very coarse and unfit for polite ears; He is not satisfied
with being Molire, He must needs also be Aristophanes and Rabelais.
82 - If men took life less seriously, they could very soon make it more perfect....
Indeed!

... God never takes His works seriously; therefore one looks out on this wonderful universe.
So what's your question?
One may ask how taking things seriously prevents life from being more perfect?
(After a long silence) Virtue has always been busy eliminating things from life and (laughing) if we
could put together all the virtues from all the countries in the world, nothing much would remain in
life!
Virtue claims to seek perfection, but perfection is a totality. So the two movements are
contradictory: virtue, which eliminates, prunes, sets limits, and perfection, which accepts everything,
rejects nothing but puts everything in its place, evidently cannot go well together.
Taking life seriously generally consists of two movements: the first is to give importance to things
that probably have none, and the second is to want life to be limited to a certain number of qualities
considered to be pure and worthy. With some (for instance, those Sri Aurobindo refers to here: the
prudish or the puritans), that virtue becomes dry, barren, gray, aggressive, and almost always finds fault
in all that is joyful, free and happy.
The only way to make life perfect (I mean here life on earth, of course) is to look at it from a
sufficient height to see it in its totality, not only its present totality, but over the whole past, present and
future: what it has been, what it is, what it must be - you must be able to see it all at once. Because
that's the only way to put everything in its place. Nothing can be done away with, nothing SHOULD be
done away with, but each thing must find its own place in total harmony with the rest. Then all those
things that appear so "evil," so "reprehensible" and "unacceptable" to the puritan mind would become
movements of joy and freedom in a totally divine life. And then nothing would stop us from knowing,
understanding, feeling and living this wonderful Laughter of the Supreme who takes infinite delight in
watching Himself live infinitely.
This delight, this wonderful Laughter which dissolves all shadows, all pain, all suffering... We only
have to go deep enough into ourselves to find the inner Sun and let ourselves be bathed in it. Then
everything is but a cascade of harmonious, luminous, sun-filled laughter which leaves no room for
shadow and pain.
In fact, even the greatest difficulty, even the greatest grief, even the greatest physical pain, if you
can look at them from THERE, take your stand THERE, you see the unreality of the difficulty, the
unreality of the grief, the unreality of the pain - and all becomes a joyful and luminous vibration.
It is ultimately the most powerful means of dissolving difficulties, overcoming grief and getting rid
of pain. The first two [difficulties and grief] are relatively easy (relatively), the last [pain] is more
difficult because of our habit of regarding the body and its sensations as extremely concrete and
positive - but actually it is the same thing, it's just that we haven't been taught and accustomed to
seeing our body as something fluid, plastic, uncertain, malleable. We haven't learned to permeate it
with this luminous Laughter which dissolves all shadows and difficulties, all discords, all disharmony,
all that grates, cries and weeps.
(silence)
This Sun - the Sun of divine laughter - is a: the core of everything, it is the truth of everything. What is
needed is to learn to see it, feel it, live it.
And for that, let us flee from those who take life seriously, they are the most boring people on earth!

That's all.
But it's true. The other day I was telling you about some cellular difficulties. I noticed that as soon
as they start, I start laughing! But if someone is here and I tell him the difficulty solemnly, it goes from
bad to worse; if I start laughing and talk about it laughingly, it vanishes. Really, it's dreadful to take life
seriously! Dreadful. Those who have given me the most difficulties have always been the people who
take life seriously.
I've had this experience even just recently. All that comes to me from people who have dedicated
their lives to "spiritual life," people who do a yoga in the traditional way, who are very solemn, who
see adversaries everywhere, obstacles everywhere, taboos everywhere, prohibitions everywhere, oh,
how they complicate life... and how far they are from the Divine! I saw this the other day with someone
you know. With that kind of people, you "should not" do this, "should not" do that, "should not"... At
such and such time you "must not" do this, on such and such day you "must not" do that; you "should
not" eat this, you should not... And then, for heaven's sake, don't you go mixing your daily life with
your sacred life! - that's how you dig an abyss.
It's the exact, exact opposite of what I feel now: no matter what happens - something wrong in the
body, something wrong with people, something wrong in circumstances - instantly, the first
movement: "O my sweet Lord, my Beloved!" And I laugh! And then all is well. I did this the other day
(it's spontaneous and instantaneous, it isn't thought out or willed or planned - none of it - it just
happens), it happened the other day (I don't recall the details but it was over a circumstance that hardly
seemed sacred): I saw myself, and I started laughing. I said, "But look! I don't need to be serious, I
don't need to be solemn!"
As soon as it comes (Mother makes a solemn face), I get suspicious, I say to myself, "Oh,
something is wrong, some influence or other must have entered the atmosphere that shouldn't be there."
All that remorse, all that regret, all that... ooh! The sense of indignity, of fault... and, going a little
farther, the sense of sin - oh, that...! That seems to me to belong to another age, a Dark Age.
But especially all the prohibitions. For instance, let me quote you a statement from X which I heard
from a third person: "I will do a special puja to help money come. I will prepare a special yantram9 to
bring money. But FOR GOD'S SAKE don't say anything [to Mother], don't do anything or give
anything before January 14, because until January 14, a certain planet is in opposition to a certain other
planet (Mother laughs), so things follow a downward trend and won't be successful. But afterwards,
that particular planet will be ascending and everything will be successful"! (Mother laughs) Something
in me said spontaneously ("something," well, someone), spontaneously and immediately, "But why? I
can always hear!" And I laughed. So they thought I was making fun of him - I don't make fun: I laugh,
it's not the same!
So, mon petit, that's all.
You can read me another aphorism. That's enough for this one, it's settled!
What's the next one?
83 - Shame has admirable results and both in aesthetics and in morality we could ill spare it;
but for all that it is a badge of weakness and the proof of ignorance.
It's the same thing! That's what I said at the end: the sense of sin, regret, remorse, all of it, oh!... That
will do, won't it?
9Yantram: a ritual drawing used to "capture" forces.

***
(Then Mother examines the list of people she will receive the following days and the birthday greetings
to be given.)
February 2 is C.'s birthday, so I'll give him a meditation, because these are people who still believe in
meditation! (Mother laughs)
It has become quite an entertaining little field of experiences, by the way. Because nowadays I send
people cards, and I have lots of cards, innumerable kinds of cards 10 (C. spends his time preparing
them), and automatically, whenever I have to write a card for someone, it isn't as I decided beforehand
(because sometimes I decide beforehand), the choice is made at the last minute: "THIS is the card I
must send and THIS is what I must say." I needn't worry about it, it comes just in time. Then I only
have to get up, go find the card, write, and it's all over. People will tell me (precisely those who lead a
"spiritual life"), "What! You make such a trifle the object of a spiritual experience!" And it's the same
with ALL small things: what object to be used, what perfume to put on, what bath salts, all manner of
"futile," "frivolous," "unimportant" things - "How shocking!" I don't even make an effort to find out or
to... (think, thank God I don't think!), it just comes: this, that, that. Not said - KNOWN. It isn't even
said, I am not told, "Do this," never. It's KNOWN: "Ah, here we are, that's it!" And I choose and do it -
very comfortable!
It was actually my experience (for a long, long time, many years) but, these last few days, concrete,
in the body's cells. There aren't "things" in which the Lord is and "things" in which He isn't - there are
only fools who think so! He is ALWAYS there. He takes nothing seriously and has fun with
everything. And He plays with you, if you know how to play - but you don't, people don't know how to
play. But how well He knows! How He plays with everything, with the smallest things: you have
objects to put on your table? Don't think you have to ponder over how to arrange them - no, we'll play:
let's put this here, let's put that there, let's put this like that. Then some other day (because people think,
"Now she has decided on this arrangement, so that's the way it's going to be" - well, not so!), some
other day (they want to help you! They want to help you put things in order, so it just becomes a
mess!), I stay still and quiet, and then we start playing: So! Let's put this here, and that there, and this
there... ah! (Mother laughs) Since I saw you last time it has been that way constantly, probably to
prepare me for this aphorism!
Very entertaining.
There you are, mon petit.
Agreed, then, we'll try and learn to laugh with the Lord.
I know - I know He wants me to learn not to take seriously the responsibility ("responsibility" isn't
the right word), the formidable task of finding 8,000 rupees a day to meet the Ashram's expenses - in
other words, a colossal fortune every month.
And I very well see (because I told Him several times, "You know, it would be great fun if I had
plenty of money to play with"), so I see that He laughs, but He doesn't answer!... He teaches me to be
able to laugh at this difficulty, to see the cashier send me his book in which the figures are growing
astronomical ([laughing] it's by 50,000, 60,000, 80,000, 90,000), while the drawer is nearly empty!
And He wants me to learn to laugh at it. The day when I can really laugh - laugh, enjoy myself -
SINCERELY (not through effort - you can do anything you want through effort), when it makes me
10Showing flowers, landscapes, symbolic photographs, etc.

laugh spontaneously, I think it will change. Because otherwise it's impossible.... You see, we have fun
with all sorts of things, there's no reason we couldn't have fun with more money than we need and do
things in style! It will surely happen one day, but we should - we shouldn't be overwhelmed by the
amount, and for that we shouldn't take money seriously.
We shouldn't take money seriously.
It's very hard nowadays, because all over the world people take money seriously, and that makes it
very hard. Especially those who have money. Those who have money, how seriously they take it, oh,
Lord! That's why it's difficult. We should be able to laugh - laugh, laugh frankly and sincerely, then it
would be over.
Well!... All right, we'll talk about it again.
Good-bye, mon petit.

January 18, 1963
(Satprem suggests to Mother to publish in the next "Bulletin," of February, her entire talk on
"God's laughter," and in particular the whole passage in which she said: "It's dreadful to take life
seriously! Those who have given me the most difficulties have always been the people who take life
seriously.")
Oh, no!
It's charming, though.
I don't think it would be wise to put this in the Bulletin.
There are so many people, in fact, who don't care a whit about anything, who don't take life
seriously, but in the wrong way: they don't take seriously what they have to do, they don't take their
progress seriously, they take nothing seriously - they go to the movies when Sri Aurobindo is dying.
That sort of thing. So I think this passage would open the door to too many misunderstandings. It's true,
but it is true up ABOVE. A bit too high up for people.
I think we should omit it. Especially when I say that those who have given me the most trouble are
the people who take life seriously.
***
A little later:

There's a practical question I'd like to ask you regarding the subtle physical. I understand the mind

centers, which correspond to a particular world, the vital centers, which receive all sorts of
influences, but which center corresponds to the subtle physical, and what are the influences coming
from the subtle physical? Is there a center that corresponds to the subtle physical?
Where do you situate the center for the vital?
For the vital it's the navel. The region from the heart to the sex organs, isn't it?
Well, for the subtle physical it goes from the navel down to the last center,11 that whole region.
And what are the influences that come from the subtle physical?
Generally they are of a far higher quality than material influences. I have noticed (I don't know whether
it's a personal or a general thing) that the subtle physical I see is always of a somewhat higher quality
than the physical proper. I mean somewhat more harmonious: things are smoother. All that comes from
the vital is more often than not aggressive, quarrelsome and so on - and difficult. But this realm is
generally calm - calm, orderly, where things are more harmonious - GENERALLY (I can't say
whether it's the case with everybody, but in my own case it's like that).
As I told you, Sri Aurobindo lives there permanently, as though in a house of his own: you can see
him, you can stay with him, he is busy. It is very much like the physical, but a physical that would be
less grating, you understand, where things are more harmonious and satisfying, less excited. There is
less of that feeling of haste and uncertainty. In that house where Sri Aurobindo lives, life unfolds very,
very harmoniously: people come and go, there are meals even.... But all that obeys more general laws,
and a sense of security and certainty not to be found in physical life. And the symbolism is more exact
(I don't know how to express it...), the symbolic transcription of things is less distorted, more exact.
This is the subtle physical as I know it, I can't say if it is the same for everyone. Sri Aurobindo said,
"There is a true physical," well, I have a feeling that this is what he calls the "true physical" - a subtler
physical, the true physical which is behind.
But does it influence the whole earth?
Oh, yes! In general, these things are terrestrial. But probably it's still quite subjective, in the sense that
each one has an impression of it according to what he is and his stage of development.
But does it exert a DIRECT action on the earth, just as the vital has an action on the earth?
I think that as the Supramental descends, the subtle physical will have a greater and greater action on
earth, because it is the world where the new creation will be formed before it "descends," before it
becomes absolutely visible and concrete.
I often have a sense that it would take only a very tiny thing - which is hard to define - a very tiny
movement of materialization to make this new creation concrete to us as we are. And it is probably - it
will probably be formed completely in that subtle world before it materializes.
I think few people are able to make the distinction. They have rather an impression that it's their
"dream way" of seeing things; I mean they say, "Oh, it's just a dream." In most cases it's like that. The
subtle physical has the character of a realm where things are more fluid and harmonious than physical
things, but with the same concrete quality; its nature is not like that of vital things, which have
11The muladhara, at the base of the spine.

vibrations of power but again not that very concrete and objective quality characteristic of material
things. In the subtle physical, things are very concrete. For instance, if someone stands in your way,
you have to push him aside: he doesn't just vanish, you can't walk through him. If you see an object
that's not in its place, you have to move it. Voil.

January 30, 1963
What are you going to read to me today? Nothing? Nothing at all?
Well, I have something, then.
I have finished my translation [of the Synthesis]. When you have finished your book and we have
prepared the next Bulletin and we have a nice quiet moment, we'll go over it again. And then I've begun
Savitri - ah!... As you know, I prepare some illustrations with H., and for her illustrations she has
chosen some passages from Savitri (the choice isn't hers, it's A.'s and P.'s and made intelligently), so
she gives me these passages one by one, neatly typed (which is easier for my eyes). It's from the Book
I, Canto IV.
And then, as I expected, the experience is rather interesting.... I had noticed, while reading Savitri,
that there was a sort of absolute understanding, that is to say, it can't mean this or that or this - it means
THAT. It comes with an imperative. And that's what led me to think, "When I translate it, it will come
in the same way." And it did. I take the text line by line and make a resolve (not personal) to translate it
line by line, without the slightest regard for the literary point of view, but rendering what he meant in
the clearest possible way.
The way it comes is both exclusive and positive - it's really interesting. There's none of the mind's
ceaseless wavering, "Is this better? Is that better? Should it be like this? Should it be like that?" No - it
is LIKE THIS (Mother brings down her hand in a gesture of imperative descent). And then in certain
cases (without anything to do with the literary angle or even the sound of the word - neither sound nor
anything, but meaning), Sri Aurobindo himself suggests a word. It's as if he were telling me, "Isn't this
better French, tell me?" (!)
I am simply the recording machine.
It goes with fantastic speed, meaning that in ten minutes I translate ten lines. On the whole, only
three or four times are there a couple of alternative possibilities, which I jot down immediately. Once,
here (Mother shows a passage with erasures in her manuscript), the correction came, absolute. "No,"
he said, "not that - THIS." So I erased what I had written.
Here, read the English first.
Above
In
These
They

the
the
heed
turn

world
phenomenon
not
not
to

the
see
the
the

world-creators
its
mystic
deceiving
outward
moment's
busy

stand,
source.
play,
tramp,

But
listen
with
the
still
patience
of
the
For
the
slow
footsteps
of
far
Approaching
through
huge
distances
of
Unmarked
by
the
eye
that
sees
effect
and
Unheard
mid
the
clamour
of
the
human
Attentive
to
an
unseen
Truth
they
A sound as of invisible augur wings....

Unborn
Destiny
Time,
cause,
plane.
seize

(I.IV.54)
I didn't reread my translation, I am doing it now for the first time.
(Mother reads aloud her translation up to: "They turn not to the moment's busy tramp")
Here, there was some hesitation between de l'instant [the instant's] and du moment [the moment's].
Then he showed me (I can't explain how it takes place), he showed me both words, moment and
instant, and he showed me how, compared to moment, instant is mechanical; he said, "It's the
mechanism of time; moment is full and contains the event." Things of that sort, inexpressible (I put it
into words but it loses all its value). Inexpressible, but fantastic! There was some hesitation between
instant and moment, I don't know why. Then he showed me instant: instant was dry, mechanical,
empty, whereas moment contained all that takes place at every instant. So I wrote moment.
(Mother reads the end
of her translation)
It isn't thought out, it just comes. It's probably not poetry, not even free verse, but it does contain
something.
So I made a resolve (because it's neither to be published nor to be shown, but it's a marvelous
delight): I will simply keep it the way I keep the Agenda. I have a feeling that, later, perhaps (how can I
put it?)... when people can be less mental in their activity, it will put them in touch with that light [of
Savitri] - you know, immediately I enter something purely white and silent, light and alive: a sort of
beatitude.
This other passage is what I translated the first time:
In
Matter
shall
be
lit
the
spirit's
glow,
In
body
and
body
kindled
the
sacred
birth;
Night
shall
awake
to
the
anthem
of
the
stars,
The
days
become
a
happy
pilgrim
march,
Our
will
a
force
of
the
Eternal's
power,
And
thought
the
rays
of
a
spiritual
sun.
A
few
shall
see
what
none
yet
understands;
God
shall
grow
up
while
the
wise
men
talk
and
sleep;
For
man
shall
not
know
the
coming
till
its
hour
And belief shall be not till the work is done.
(I.IV.55)

Here there were a few more erasures. It will probably go on improving. But what a wonder, this
passage, what beauty!
(Mother reads aloud her translation up to: "God shall grow up while the wise men talk and sleep")
Splendid!
(Mother reads her translation
of the last two lines:)
Oh, I love this: "God shall grow up while the wise men talk and sleep."
So, I'll continue.
I may even keep the manuscript in pencil: the temptation to correct is very bad. Very bad because
it's the surface understanding that wants to correct - literary taste, poetical sense and all those things
that are down there (gesture down below). You know, it's as if (I don't mean the words themselves), as
if the CONTENT of the words were projected on a perfectly blank and still screen (Mother points to
her forehead), as if the words were projected on it.
The trouble is writing, the materialization between the vision and the writing; the Force has to drive
the hand and the pencil, and there is a slight... there's still a very slight resistance. Otherwise, if I could
write automatically, oh, how nice it would be!
There may be (I can't say, it's all imagination because I don't know), there may come a few...
somewhat weird things. But there is an insistence on the need to keep to each line as though it stood all
alone in the universe. No mixing up the line order, no, no, no! For when he wrote it, he SAW it that
way - I knew nothing about that, I didn't even know how he wrote it (he dictated it, I believe, for the
most part), but that's what he tells me now. Everything comes to a stop, everything, and then, oh, how
we enjoy ourselves! I enjoy myself! It's more enjoyable than anything. I even told him yesterday, "But
why write? What's the use?" Then he filled me with a sort of delight. Naturally, someone in the
ordinary consciousness may say, "It's very selfish," but... And then it's like a vision of the future (not
too near, not extremely near - not extremely far either) a future when this sort of white thing - white
and still - would spread out, and then, with the help of this work, a larger number of minds may come
to understand. But that's secondary; I do the translation simply for the joy of it, that's all. A satisfaction
that may be called selfish, but when he is told, "It's selfish," he replies that there is no one more selfish
than the Lord, because all He does is for Himself!
There.
So I will go on. If there are corrections, they can only come through the same process, because at
this point to correct anyhow would spoil it all. There is also the mixing (for the logical mind) of future
and present tenses - but that too is deliberate. It all seems to come in another way. And well, I can't
say, I haven't read any French for ages, I have no knowledge of modern literature - to me everything is
in the rhythm of the sound. I don't know what rhythm they use now, nor have I read what Sri
Aurobindo wrote in The Future Poetry. They tell me that Savitri's verse follows a certain rule he
explained on the number of stresses in each line (and for this you should pronounce in the pure English
way, which somewhat puts me off), and perhaps some rule of this kind will emerge in French? We
can't say. I don't know. Unless languages grow more fluid as the body and mind grow more plastic?
Possible. Language too, maybe: instead of creating a new language, there may be transitional
languages, as, for instance (not a particularly fortunate departure, but still...), the way American is
emerging from English. Maybe a new language will emerge in a similar way?

In my case it was from the age of twenty to thirty that I was concerned with French (before twenty I
was more involved in vision: painting; and sound: music), but as regards language, literature, language
sounds (written or spoken), it was approximately from twenty to thirty. The Prayers and Meditations
were written spontaneously with that rhythm. If I stayed in an ordinary consciousness I would get the
knack of that rhythm - but now it doesn't work that way, it won't do!
Yesterday, after my translation, I was surprised at that sense... a sense of absolute: "THAT'S HOW
IT IS." Then I tried to enter into the literary mind and wondered, "What would be its various
suggestions?" And suddenly, I saw somehow (somehow, somewhere there) a host of suggestions for
every line!... Ohh! "No doubt," I thought, "it IS an absolute!" The words came like that, without any
room for discussion or anything. To give you an example: when he says "the clamour of the human
plane," clameur exists in French, it's a very nice word - he didn't want it, he said "No," without any
discussion. It wasn't an answer to a discussion, he just said, "Not clameur: vacarme."12 It isn't as though
he was weighing one word against another, it wasn't a matter of words but the THOUGHT of the word,
the SENSE of the word: "No, not clameur, it's vacarme."
Interesting, isn't it?
But I would like us to revise the translation in the same way, because I am sure he will be here - he
is always here when I translate. Then I will go back into that state, while you will do the work!
(Laughing) You will write. And then, unless your vocabulary is very extensive (mine used to be
extensive, but now it has become quite limited), we'll need a decent dictionary.... But I am afraid none
will have anything to offer.
I even find they should be avoided.
They're bad. Somewhere they make me angry. It makes a very dark atmosphere, it clouds the
atmosphere.
Unfortunately, I have lost the habit of French, the words I use to express myself are quite limited
and the right word doesn't come - something looks up in the word store and doesn't find the word. I can
sense it as if elusively, I feel there is a word, but all sorts of substitutes come forward that are
worthless.
Now the sensation is altogether, altogether new. It's not the customary movement of words pouring
in and so on: you search and suddenly you catch hold of something - it's no longer that way at all: as
though it were the ONLY thing that remained in the world. All the rest - mere noise.
There, mon petit.

12Mother's translation is: Le vacarme du plan humain.

February

February 15, 1963
(Regarding a passage in "Savitri" in which Sri Aurobindo describes the universe as a play between He
and She. "This whole wide world is only he and she," He, the Supreme in love with her, her servitor;
She, the creative Force.)
As
one
too
great
for
him
he
worships
her;
He
adores
her
as
his
regent
of
desire,
He
yields
to
her
as
the
mover
of
his
will,
He
burns
the
incense
of
his
nights
and
days
Offering
his
life,
a
splendour
of
sacrifice....
In
a
thousand
ways
he
serves
her
royal
needs;
He
makes
the
hours
pivot
around
her
will,
Makes
all
reflect
her
whims;
all
is
their
play:
This whole wide world is only he and she.
(I.IV. 62)
What a marvelous work!
He goes into a completely different region, so much above thought! It's constant vision, it isn't
something thought out - with thought everything becomes flat, hollow, empty, empty, just like a leaf;
while this is full, the full content is there, alive.
It's an explanation of why the world is as it is. At the start he says, He worships her (here again,
there are no words in French: Il lui rend un culte, but that makes a whole sentence). He worships her as
something far greater than Himself. And then you are almost a spectator of the Supreme projecting
Himself to take on this creative aspect (necessarily, otherwise it couldn't be done!), the Witness
watching His own work of creation and falling in love with this power of manifestation - you see it all.
And... oh, He wants to give Her her fullest chance and see, watch all that is going to happen, all that
can happen with this divine Power thrust free into the world. And Sri Aurobindo expresses it as though
he had absolutely fallen in love with Her: whatever She wants, whatever She does, whatever She
thinks, whatever She wills, all of it - it's all wonderful! All is wonderful. It's so lovely!
And, I must say, I was observing this because, originally, the first time I heard of it, this conception
shocked me, in the sense that... (I don't know, it wasn't an idea, it was a feeling), as though it meant
lending reality to something which in my consciousness, for a very long time (at least... millennia
perhaps, I don't know), had been the Falsehood to be conquered. The Falsehood that must cease to
exist. It's the aspect of Truth that must manifest itself, it's not all that: doing anything whatsoever just
for the fun of it, simply because you have the full power.... You have the power to do everything, so
you do everything, and knowing that there is a Truth behind, you don't give a damn about
consequences. That was something... something which, as far back as I can remember, I have fought
against. I have known it, but it seems to me it was such a long, long time ago and I rejected it so
strongly, saying, "No, no!" and implored the Lord so intensely that things may be otherwise, beseeched
Him that his all-powerful Truth, his all-powerful Purity and his all-powerful Beauty may manifest and

put an end to all that mess. And at first I was shocked when Sri Aurobindo told me that; previously, in
this life, it hadn't even crossed my mind. In that sense Theon's explanation had been much more (what
should I say?) useful to me from the standpoint of action: the origin of disorder being the separation of
the primal Powers - but that's not it! HE is there, blissfully worshipping all this confusion!
And naturally this time around, when I started translating it came back. At first there was a shudder
(Mother makes a gesture of stiffening). Then I told myself, "Haven't you got beyond that!" And I let
myself flow into the thing. Then I had a series of nights with Sri Aurobindo... so marvelous! You
understand, I see him constantly and I go into that subtle physical world where he has his abode; the
contact is almost permanent (at any rate, that's how I spend all my nights: he shows me the work,
everything), but still, after this translation of Savitri he seemed to be smiling at me and telling me, "At
last you have understood!" (Mother laughs) I said, "It isn't that I didn't understand, it's that I didn't want
it!" I didn't want, I don't WANT things to be like that any more, for thousands of years I have wanted
things to be otherwise!
The night before last, he had put on a sari of mine. He told me (laughing), "Why not? Don't you
find it suits me!" I answered, "It suits you beautifully!" A sari of brown georgette, lustrous bronze, with
big golden braid! It was a very beautiful sari (I used to have it, it was one of my saris), and he was
wearing it. Then he asked me to do his hair. I remember seeing that the nape of his neck and his hair
had become almost luminous - his hair was never quite white, there was an auburn shimmer to it, it
was almost golden, and it stayed that way, very fine, not at all like the hair people have here. His hair
was almost like mine. So while I was doing his hair, I saw the luminous nape of his neck, and his hair,
so luminous! And he said to me, "Why shouldn't I wear a sari!"
That opened up a whole new horizon.... We're always so closed, you know.
Of course, it [this vision or conception] isn't allowed into action, because when you start accepting
everything and loving everything and seeing Glory everywhere - why change!? This is why the Force
that had been in me for so long for the world to progress further made me reject precisely all that
legitimized things as they are by putting you into contact with the inner joy of living - as he puts it, His
Joy is there, everywhere, so nobody wants to leave the world....
In short, I was able to see the situation from above, a little higher than the creative Force - from the
other side.
***
(A little later, regarding a passage from the Agenda of 1962, at the time of Mother's first great turning
point, which she intended to show to one of the people of her entourage in an attempt to make him
understand her work:)
I had asked Sujata for two copies, but then I realized it wasn't at all necessary. I told you I would give it
to A. for him to read, and when A. came, I showed him one or two of the latest [Agenda conversations]
typed by Sujata - and soon lost any desire to try again.
Well, when do I see you next?
Today is the 15th. The 19th, you told me.
Yes, but there have been changes. I tell you, I am being assassinated with people.
Well...

The 21st, we'll have a meditation at 10 A.M., then at 6:15 P.M. I will go out on the terrace - can
you see me from your house? But it seems you can hear the music....
Yes, we can.
This is really amusing: it's somebody having fun - having fun and, so to say, forcing me to play. When
I am about to sit down, he says to me, "Start off that way." So I start off that way and then he
embellishes, elaborates on it. Then suddenly he says, "Ah, enough!" and off he goes!
I don't know who it is.
When I sit down to play, I make... how should I put it? Not a prayer, but my usual invocation, like
this (gesture above), I am in a state of contemplation, and all of a sudden it starts: I see my hands in
position on the keys, and, "Now then, begin that way!" All right, I begin that way. Then one note calls
for the next. But I have to be very tranquil. And, oh, what I hear is lovely, so lovely! But I have no idea
of what I play. I play without hearing what I play: I hear the other thing.
That's why one day I will ask to listen to the recording to see whether both things are the same.
Some new things come, it's funny. It's not at all like before. Before, I would listen to the music and
play it. Now it's no longer like that: it's someone playing and I hear what he wants to play - but I don't
know if that's actually what I play!

February 19, 1963
(An experience Mother had the day after the last conversation, on February 16:)
It was really very interesting. Afterwards it's just a memory, no longer the thing.... It concerned the
creation of the material world, the material universe, in the light of the conception of the Supreme in
love with His emanation. But the vision was all-embracing, as if I were on the other side - the side of
the Supreme, not of the creation - and saw the creation as a whole, with the true sense of progress, the
true sense of advance, of movement, and the true way in which all that doesn't belong to the future
creation will disappear in a kind of pralaya13 (it can't really "disappear" but it will be withdrawn from
the Manifestation). And it was very interesting: all that doesn't collaborate (in the sense that it is a
sufficient experience, an experience that has come to its end) was reabsorbed. It was like the true vision
of what was rendered as the Last Judgment. It is something going on constantly, that mighty "gust" of
manifestation, and there are things that have been, according to our vision of time, but that live on, that
continue to exist in the future; there are things that exhaust themselves (that's in the present), and there
are things that have no more purpose, that cannot keep pace with the movement (I don't know how to
explain this) and enter the Non-Being - the pralaya, the Non-Being, the unmanifest - of course, not in
their forms but in their essence; that is to say, the Supreme in them remains the Supreme but
13Pralaya: end of a world, apocalypse.

unmanifest.
But it was all a living, palpable experience which lasted for a day and a half. The entire universal
movement was LIVED and sensed. Not merely seen but lived - and in what light! What stupendous
power! With that kind of certitude at the core of everything - something very odd. It's very difficult to
express. But the experience lasted so long that it became perfectly familiar. To translate it into words I
might say: it is the Supreme's way of seeing - of feeling, of living. I was living things the way He does.
And it gives a power of certitude of realization. In the sense that what we are heading for is already
here; the road we look back on, the road we have traveled and the road yet to travel, it all lives
simultaneously. And with such logic! An eternal, wonderful superlogic which makes it obviousness
itself - everything is obviousness itself. Struggle, effort, fear, all of that, oh, absolutely, absolutely
nonexistent. And together with this, the explanation of the feeling we have of not wanting certain
things any more: they leave the Manifest. You see, it's like a sieve into which everything is thrown and
where He... to Him, everything, but everything is the same, but there is the vision of what He wants,
and also of what is useless for what He wants or would prevent the fullness and totality of what He
wants (contradictions of sorts, I don't know how to explain it) - so with that He just goes this way
(gesture of reswallowing) and it goes out of the Manifestation.
At the time I could have said it in a more understandable language, while now...
But can these useless things be withdrawn from the Manifestation without causing any
catastrophes?
I don't know how to explain it.... Putting it like this implies an arbitrary fiat, but there's no such thing: it
isn't a "gentleman" who decides to withdraw certain things he no longer likes! It's not that way. They
are things which, owing to their own propensity (what we might call their essential truth), had at a
given moment their place in the Manifestation, and which, once they have lost their purpose, quite
naturally leave the Manifestation - I could put it in fifty different ways just as poorly, I can't see how to
explain it properly. But the fact was evident. It was part of such a wonderfully complete and
harmonious Whole - that Harmony is beyond us, we cannot understand it, caught as we are in the
sensation of opposites. But there, "opposites" do not exist, there are only things that... Like the fact of
the Supreme seemingly dominated by His creation, wholly obedient to His creation - as though He had
no power, no knowledge, no vision, so things follow their course in the chaos we know. Well, when we
put it like this, there is something unbelievable and shocking about it, yet it was so very natural, so very
true, and part of such a perfect whole!
Only, you cannot see it unless you see the whole. At the time, everything was preexistent, although
unfolding in time for the Manifestation. But it was preexistent. Not preexistent as we understand it, not
everything "at a given moment".... Oh, how impossible! It's impossible to express it. I still feel what I
could call the "warmth" of the experience - the reality, the life, the warmth of the experience are there.
You know, I have lived in a Light! A Light which isn't our light, which has nothing to do with what we
call light, a Light so warm and powerful! A creative Light. So powerful!... Everything was so perfectly
harmonious: everything, everything without exception, even the things that appear to be the very
negation of divinity. And a rhythm! (gesture as of great waves) A harmony, so wonderful a
TOTALITY, where the sense of sequence... Sequence doesn't mean things being like this (chopping
gesture), one being abolished by the next, it is... At the time I might have been able to find or invent the
words, I don't know, now... now, it's only the memory of it. The memory, not the presence itself.
The experience lasted long. It started in the night, lasted through the whole day, and last night there
was still something of it lingering, but then... (laughing) I seemed to be told, "So then, aren't you going
to move on? Are you going to stay with this experience, are you stuck there?!" It is so true: things

move fast, fast, fast, and run as you may, you're still not going fast enough.
Last night or the night before, I was in Sri Aurobindo's house and he was telling me, "Some things
are going wrong." And he showed me around his house. There were some pipes - big pipes - that had
burst. "You see," he told me, "people have been careless." In some places they had taken away all the
furniture and were cleaning up in a stupid way: "See," he said, "they don't do things the proper way."
Then I understood it was the reflection of the way things happen here. And he was... (not angry, he is
never angry), but people gave him a lot of bother, they were preventing him from doing his work: I
would come in a room and try to arrange a corner because he wanted to write, but it was impossible,
the whole setup made it impossible for him to have even a decent corner where he could write - then at
other times, it would be quite fine. Because it changes continuously. The layout of rooms has an inner
meaning - it MEANS something - so it always stays the same as if the setting stayed unchanged
(because it's not a house built from an architect's plan! It's his own house, which he has arranged
according to his taste, so it stays that way). But people seem to have unrestricted entry there, and
everyone wants to do something, to make himself "useful," (laughing) so it's terrible! This is what
erased my experience or pushed it back into the realm of memories. As though he were saying, "Don't
be too concerned with universal things, because over here (laughing) things aren't too smooth!"
***
(A little later)
The last twenty days I have felt troubled.
And I am, of course, harassed - people's idea of celebrating my birthday!
After this experience, I was expecting to see some truly exceptional things these last few days,
because really... this Presence is so concrete, so concrete! But compared to that "concrete," our
concreteness is so thin and lifeless - what we call "life" is some sort of... of mushy thing!
(silence)
I am not given the time for experiences. It was like that the other night, as if Sri Aurobindo were telling
me, "See, you see what they do when you are not here." But then I waste all my time!
I wanted the book [The Adventure of Consciousness] to come out for February 21, 1964. That
doesn't leave too much time, because... That's another marvel, it must have been one of the things Sri
Aurobindo was showing me: at the [Ashram] Press, they're behind schedule for everything - and they
work night and day! They have never worked so hard! Very clearly, seen from above, it's a lack of
organization; for something requiring an ounce of force they have to put in ten pounds, and still it
doesn't work.
It grinds and grates.
Lack of organization. But all, all of life - all of life is that way!
EVERYTHING.
To make some decision or organize something (I am referring to practical examples - I have four,
five, ten of them every day), all it would take is a few minutes of clear and quiet, but TOTAL vision,
and things would work out perfectly well. But then there are four or five of them to make a decision.
Each one brings in his own idea, his own viewpoint, his own little angle. They throw it all together,

jabber away for two hours... and nothing gets done.
So the conclusion is that I shall have to start again.... I had stopped long ago taking care of
everything - long before I came upstairs, I told people, "See to your business yourselves." And what
chaos it has become!... That, too, made worse by the fact that they stopped seeing me physically. The
physical presence was simply keeping a rein on them.
It's unthinkable now.
But I must say it isn't confined to the Ashram: it's the same all over the world - especially in India...
the government has gone completely crazy. They bombard people with papers and forms and
regulations and prohibitions....
A third of my letters are either censored or lost.
Yes, exactly. More than half of my correspondence doesn't arrive. But do you know why? It's not at all
that they find it suspicious or anything, it's that they are snowed under with work, tired, on edge: so
instead of opening a letter carefully and making it possible to close it again, they tear it open in such a
way that they can't decently pass it on! It's nothing but that. It's the same with parcels, you can't
imagine! The way they open parcels... a child would do it better! It's disgusting. They break things,
spoil everything, spill bottles.... Then, of course, what can they do about it? Sometimes they can't even
forward the parcel, it's too damaged.
Now, I must say that whenever people complain I tell them, "Well, imagine for a minute you had to
do this idiotic work (it is an idiotic work) and that day after day, hour after hour, all day long, with too
few people (or half of them twiddling their thumbs), you were forced to do this work - after a while
you would end up botching it the same way."
That's what I always tell those who criticize the government: "You deserve to be put in the place of
the Prime Minister, or any other minister, with decisions to make; and with the responsibility placed on
you, suppose you suddenly had to decide on things of which you know nothing - you'd soon see what
fun it is!" You see, to govern properly, you have to be... you have to be a sage! You should have a
universal vision and be above all personal questions.... There is not one - not one.
Some are sluggish (they're the best, because I can make them do what I want them to do); they're
like automatons, so you can get something out of them. But unfortunately they think they are... they
have the sense of their responsibility, so they think they are very superior - then it's terrible!
Anyway...
They sent some papers to the Ashram, asking whether we had gold objects other than jewels! So,
(laughing) I could just see a scene in the palaces of old: gold candelabra, the throne!...
So ridiculous!
What can we do?... Endure.
***
Then Mother speaks of her
translation of "Savitri":

I do it exclusively for the joy of being in a world... a world of overmental expression (I don't say
supramental, I say overmental), a luminous, marvelous expression through which you can catch the
Truth.

And it teaches me English without books! Now, whenever I have to write a letter, all the words
come by themselves: the CONTENT of the word (just as I told you for moment and instant), now it
works the same way with all words! Yesterday I wrote something in English for a doctor here (Mother
looks for a paper): The world progresses so rapidly that we must be ready at any moment to over pass
what we knew in order to know better. And you know, I never think: it just comes, either the sound or
the written word (it depends on the case: now I'll see the written words, now I'll hear the sound). For
instance, the word advance came first, and with it came quick, quickly, repeatedly ["the world advances
so quickly"]. Then came progress, and quickly was out of the picture; and suddenly rapidly came
forward. So I understood how it worked, how it works for all words! I understood: progress (the idea or
inner meaning of progress) calls for rapidly; and advance calls for quickly. Putting it like this sounds
like splitting hairs, but when I saw it, it was positively irrefutable! The word was alive, its content was
alive, and along with it was its friend, the word that went with it; and the word that wasn't its friend was
not to be seen, it wasn't in the mood! Oh, it was so funny! For that alone it is worth the trouble.
I have made some experiments with French too. I wrote something: Pour chacun, le plus important
est de savoir si on appartient au passe qui se perpetue, au present qui s'epuise, l'avenir qui veut
natre. ["The most important point for everyone is to know whether he belongs to the past perpetuating
itself, to the present exhausting itself, or to the future trying to be born."] I gave it to Z - he didn't
understand. So I told him, "It doesn't mean 'our' past, 'our' present or 'our' future...." I wrote this when I
was in that state [the experience Mother told at the beginning of this conversation], and it was in
connection with a very sweet old lady who has just left her body. This is what I said to her. Everybody
had been expecting her departure for more than a month or two, but I said, "You will see, she is going
to last; she will last for at least another month or two." Because she knows how to live within, outside
her body, and the body lives on out of habit, without jerks and jolts. That was her condition, and it
could last a very long time. They had announced she would leave within two days, but I said, "It's not
true." I know her well, in the sense that she had come out of her body and there was a link with me.
And I said to her, "What do you care!" (though she wasn't at all worried, she was staying peacefully
with me), "The whole point is to know whether one belongs to the past perpetuating itself, to the
present exhausting itself, or to the future trying to be born." Sometimes what WE call the past is right
here, it's the future trying to be born; sometimes what WE call the present is something in advance,
something that came ahead of time; but sometimes also it's something that came late, that is still part of
all that is to disappear - I saw it all: people, things, circumstances, everything through that perception,
the vibration that would go on transforming itself, the vibration that would exhaust itself and disappear,
the vibration that, though manifested for a long time, would be entitled to continue, to persist - that
changes all notions! It was so interesting! So I wrote it down as it was - without any explanations (you
don't feel much like explaining in such a case, the thing is so self-evident!). Poor Z, he stared at me -
all at sea! So I told him, "Don't try to understand. I am not speaking of the past, present and future as
we know them, it's something else." (Mother laughs)
But it's amusing because I had never paid much attention to that [the questions of language], the
experience is novel, almost the discovery of the truth behind expression. Before, my concern was to be
as clear, exact and precise as possible; to say exactly what I meant and put each word in its proper
place. But that's not it! Each word has its own life! Some are drawn together by affinity, others repel
each other... it's very funny!

February 21, 1963
(Message given by Mother for February 21:)
The boon that we have asked from the Supreme is the greatest that the Earth can ask from the
Highest, the change that is most difficult to realise, the most exacting in its conditions. It is
nothing less than the descent of the supreme Truth and Power into Matter, the supramental
established in the material plane and consciousness and the material world and an integral
transformation down to the very principle of Matter. Only a supreme Grace can effect this
miracle.
The supreme Power has descended into the most material consciousness but it has stood there
behind the density of the physical veil, demanding before manifestation, before its great open
workings can begin, that the conditions of the supreme Grace shall be there, real and effective.
A total surrender, an exclusive self-opening to the divine influence, a constant and integral
choice of the Truth and rejection of the falsehood, these are the only conditions made. But these
must be fulfilled entirely, without reserve, without any evasion or presence, simply and
sincerely down to the most physical consciousness and its workings.
Sri Aurobindo

February 23, 1963
(Regarding a dream, or rather an experience of Sujata, the notation of which unfortunately was not
kept.)
She went to Sri Aurobindo's home in the subtle physical - the thing is true, real, concrete, as concrete
as here.
As soon as I got her letter, I saw: that's where she went. Besides, I knew she had gone there. Plenty
of people go there and are unaware of it! They forget. But she had a nice memory.
She goes there very often at night, very often, but generally people forget.
Simply for want of training. If you train yourself, you remember quite well. There are small holes in

the consciousness, gaps, and when you go through such a gap you forget. You may suddenly get a
fleeting impression of something, and then it eludes you - oh, it's gone! Only, it takes a long time to
train yourself; you shouldn't be in a hurry or too busy. I went through it at a time when I was bedridden
for five months. I had nothing to do. (You can't keep reading all the time - during those five months I
read some eight hundred books... no, nine hundred and fifty! But it tires the eyes.) So the rest of the
time (you can't sleep too much either when you're in bed all the time), I trained myself: that was when I
learned to have completely conscious nights. But it's a discipline. When you wake up, either in the
middle of the night or in the morning, don't budge, stay absolutely still, concentrated, very silent, and
PULL the memory back. For one month, two months, you seem to get nowhere; after six months it
begins to work; and eventually you remember everything. At the end, you do the opposite movement,
in the sense that whenever you have an interesting dream, you wake up: you learn to wake up in the
middle of the night every time you have a vision or a dream, or some activity (there are various cases),
so that you can remember, and then you repeat it to your consciousness (once you're awake, you repeat
it to yourself two or three or ten times, till you're certain not to forget), and then off you go again.
But you can't do that if, when morning comes, you have to leap out of your bed and attend to fifty
thousand pressing matters. It isn't indispensable for the yoga, not at all. It's a hobby, rather, something
to amuse yourself with.
(Satprem protests)
Well, it gives you the pleasure of knowing what's going on - which isn't necessary. Now I know, I don't
care one way or the other! When I go to bed, at least eight times out of ten, when I am in bed, I ask, "O
Lord, grant me a silent night," which is very selfish of me - He keeps me working every night! And
sometimes, you get tired of working and feel like being blissful. A blissful silence. Then I ask Him,
"Let me be blissful."
It works fairly well. But it's one night out of five or six.
Otherwise, the entire night is conscious, and you cannot imagine the multitude of things that can be
done in a night!
Anyhow, it's good, I am very glad for her [Sujata], it's a very good sign.
***
A little later:

We have a great mathematician here who comes from Madras regularly, Dr. V. (you know him, don't
you?), and for my birthday, 14 he played around with the figures of my date of birth and made up with
them a square with small compartments (what a painstaking work it must be!): any way you read it, it
always adds up to the same figure. Admirable. The figure is 116. Heavenly mathematics, all that (!) and
it is supposed to be my number of years. But I find it a little on the short side. Because if the present
pace is any indication, 116 doesn't leave me many years, thirty years or so... yes, some thirty years,
that's all. What can you achieve in thirty years?! The way things are moving, oh!... When Sri
Aurobindo said three hundred years, I think he gave the minimum figure.
We'll see.
14Mother was eighty-five on February 21.

(silence)
In the body consciousness, there are two attitudes which are both... No, one is becoming much more
natural: it is a sort of... (what's the word in French?) everlasting attitude, everlasting, there is no reason
why it shouldn't continue. The cells feel themselves everlasting, with a certain state of harmonious
inner peace which partakes of eternity, that is to say, free from the kind of disorder and friction that
causes aging and disintegration (it's a kind of grating in the gears that causes it). People's ordinary
consciousness (it's not a question of ideas, concepts or anything of that kind: it's the body's
consciousness, the consciousness of the body's cells), the ordinary, NATURAL, NORMAL
consciousness is a consciousness full of grating and friction, in perpetual disorder, and that's the cause
of aging. Well, this is beginning to fade away.
It is rarely felt, except when the pressure from outside is too great. When there is a huge
accumulation of scores of small... you can't call them "wills," but impulses coming from things (from
things or people or circumstances) that want to be fulfilled, attended to - as long as it's within a certain
limit you receive it with a smile and it doesn't have any effect, but when the dose is exceeded, suddenly
something says, "Oh, no! Enough is enough!" At that point, the consciousness is hopeless. It falls back
into the old rhythm, and consequently that must cause wear and tear. But the other way is a sort of
harmonious, undulating movement (Mother draws big waves in the air), ALMOST beyond time, not
quite: there is some sort of time sense, but secondary, somewhat in the distance. And this movement
(gesture of waves) gives a sense of eternity - of everlastingness, at any rate - there is no reason for it to
cease. There is no friction, no conflict, no wear and tear, it can go on indefinitely.
It is beginning to be that way.
But not these last few days.15
Yesterday evening (was it yesterday?... No, the day before), when I went out on the balconyterrace,16 the difference in perception between the consciousness I have now and the one I had before
felt enormous! Before, as I have always said, I would stay there, call the Lord, be in His presence, and
only when He withdrew would I come in again - that's how it was. And I had a certain relationship
with people, things, the outside world ("outside," well, not outside - anyway, the world). The day
before yesterday, when I went to the balcony, I wasn't thinking of anything or observing anything, I
simply went - I didn't want to know what was going on, it didn't interest me, I wasn't observing.... The
other experience [of the previous balcony, one year ago] seemed to go back centuries! It was so much
OTHER! And so spontaneous, so natural, and so immense too!... The earth was tiny. Yet it was very
much here: I wasn't "over there," the BODY itself was feeling that way. And at the same time (I was
two floors above people), every time I looked, I recognized scores and scores of people, they seemed to
leap to my eyes - a crystal clear vision, much sharper (the vision I had before was always a bit hazy
because what I saw wasn't entirely physical: I saw the movement of forces), and yesterday, it was as
if... as if I had risen above the very possibility of haziness! It was far less physical - FAR MORE
accurate.17
Formerly too, I used to sense the Force, the Consciousness, the Power concentrated in a particular
point and then spreading out. While here, there was an IMMENSITY of Power, of Light, of
15Mother refers to the February 21 darshan.
16For the first time in a year, Mother appeared on the new balcony above all the assembled disciples.
17This far less physical vision was more accurate IN THE PHYSICAL WORLD.

Consciousness, of perception, concentrated in a tiny point: the people gathered there.
So colossal a difference that I didn't expect it - I wasn't thinking about it nor was I expecting it. I
stayed there as long as it lasted, then at a certain point someone said, "That's enough, they are getting
tired." (It wasn't I who said it.) "Enough, they can't take any more." So I came back inside. That's what
made me come inside. It lasted five minutes. In five minutes, they were full to bursting.
I think this body has become another person, it's not the same any more. It's no longer what it used
to be. Yet the memory of its earthly existence hasn't gone, it isn't another body. Yet it is another person.
I am referring here only to the material consciousness (Mother touches her body). The other thing up
there (gesture above) is all very easy to explain, the work was done long ago, that's not what I mean -
no, it's here. The change is HERE. It's odd. There, petit.
***
(Soon afterwards, Mother talks about her secretaries, who don't do what she tells them to and take too
much of her time:)
They take absolutely no notice of what I say.
What?!
Oh, yes, that's the way things are. I tell them, "I must be finished by such and such time." "Yes, yes,"
they say - and nobody moves. I can't start.... I am stuck there with my legs under the table, so it's
difficult.... Unless I make a scene.
Sometimes I do, I tell them, "Ah, enough! Good-bye," and I push back my chair. I get up and push
back my chair. But that's... only in case of absolute necessity.18 All in all, I am rarely nasty! (Laughter)
Though it does happen. It happened this morning. Some people had left their daughter here; she has
been here for the last four or five years, and all the while they didn't bother about her at all. She was in
Ml's dormitory - M. has been a real mother to her, she looked after her dresses and everything, her
parents did nothing (I think they were sending their hundred rupees regularly, that was all, they didn't
have a thought for their daughter). This little girl's home was here. Then her parents came for the
Darshan, they found their daughter not warm enough, not loving enough, that she far too much loved
being here - conclusion: they're taking her away. I found that... so shameful! Shameful, so stupidly
selfish.
I tried to intervene in several ways. They had taken the little thing with them - she cried day and
night, nonstop. Won't eat, cries all the time. And she says, "I want to go back, I want to go back.... I
want to stay here, I don't want to go away."
"Ah, so that's how you are! Very well, we're taking you away."
What cruelty! One of the ugliest things you can imagine.
Yesterday I tried once again (they're leaving today, I believe), I had something conveyed to them,
the answer was, "The father finds his daughter has forgotten him and no longer loves him, so he doesn't
want to leave her here and will take her away." I replied, "Does he think by bullying her he can force
her to love him?" The fool just won't understand, nothing sinks in.
18Gradually Mother will stop struggling and intrusion will become the rule. As a result, these conversations will suffer
greatly.

I didn't see the gentleman.
But then, they had brought a four-year-old with them. Today was his birthday. They sent me some
money for the child and asked for a card of blessings. I refused to give the card and threw the money
back at them - quite bluntly. I said, "Tell these people that they are selfish and stupid, and I want
nothing from them." And I banged on the table.... Oh, oh!... Everyone was petrified. (Mother laughs)
The doctor was there, and Nolini, Champaklal, Amrita.... Something in me was laughing a lot! Oh, they
thought I was in a terrible fit: "They'll see what will happen to them!..." And you know, those
vibrations are familiar to me - they're terrifying, mon petit. Not human. When it comes, it's fearsome,
people are in a cold sweat. And I watch it all like a spectator!
Fairly often, it's Sri Aurobindo. But this time it was entirely impersonal. It was something that
WILL NO LONGER tolerate in the world a certain kind of selfish stupidity - to trample this child's
finer feelings just because she isn't stupidly attached to her family (who didn't even give her a single
thought all the time she was here, she didn't exist for them).
If you want your children to love you, you should at least love them a little, care for them a little,
no? It's elementary, you don't have to be very bright to understand that - but they won't understand: "It
is a child's DUTY to love his parents"!! And if you don't fulfill your duty, you're put in jail.
All right.
But those people will live to regret it.
The little girl struggled as if she were drowning, you know. She went everywhere - took refuge at
the School, took refuge in Pavitra's room, begged G. in tears to intervene. M. was absolutely desperate.
Everybody is trying to dissuade them, everybody is scandalized - it's their "right"! Brandishing their
right, they grab the girl and squeeze her: "You'll love us, or else!"
And they think they will succeed!
Unfortunately, it is always the best who suffer. Some were taken away like that, and they fell so
gravely ill that once they recovered sufficiently, the doctors said to send them back here. It has
happened at least a dozen times. Those who have an inner life feel at home here.
Well...
***
(Just before the end, Mother comes back to her experience at the balcony:)
The balcony is quite interesting. Because it suddenly made me notice a change I was unaware of. Like
a rapid rise I had been completely unaware of. My only awareness is that at EVERY moment, if I stop
talking or listening or working, at every moment, it's like... great beatific wings, as vast as the world,
beating slowly, like that.
A feeling of immense wings - not two: all around and stretching out everywhere.
Constantly, night and day. I participate in it only when I am tranquil.
But it never leaves me.
The wings of the Lord.

March

March 6, 1963
(Regarding an old Playground Talk of December 4, 1957, in which Mother asked: "Will there be a
gradual transition from what we are now to what our inner spirit aspires to become, or will there be a
break, will we have to leave our present human form behind until a new form emerges - an emergence
whose process we cannot foresee, of a new form without any connection to what we are today? Can we
expect this body, our means of manifestation on earth until now, to be transformed progressively into
something capable of expressing higher life, or will we have to abandon this form altogether in order
to take on another one not yet born on earth?" Mother adds:)
Why not both?
Both forms will be at the same time. One does not preclude the other.
Yes, but will the one be transformed into the other?
It will be transformed and will be an outline, as it were, of the new one. When this outline comes into
being, the other, the perfect form, will appear. Because both have their own beauty and purpose, and so
both will be there.
The mind always tries to make an exclusive choice or decision - that's not the way. Even the
totality of what we are able to imagine is very little compared to what will be. The truth is, everyone
with an intense aspiration and inner certitude will be called to realize it.
Everywhere, in all fields, always and forever, all is possible. And all that is possible WILL BE at a
given moment - a moment that may be short or long, but all will be.
Just as they found many sorts of transient possibilities that existed between animals and man, so too
there will be many different possibilities: each one will try in his own way. And all that together will
help prepare for the future realization.
The question we could ask is: Will the human species be like those species that met with extinction?
Some species became extinct (though not species that lasted as long as the human species, as far as I
know (?), and also not those which had in them the seed of progress, a possibility of progress). The
impression is rather that evolution will follow a curve drawing nearer and nearer to a higher species,
and maybe all that is still too close to the lower species will fall away, just as those species fell away in
the past.
We always forget that not only is everything possible - everything, even the most contradictory
things - but every possibility is given at least one moment of existence.
***
(Then Mother takes up the aphorisms to be prepared for the next "Bulletin":)

84 - The supernatural is that the nature of which we have not attained or do not yet know, or
the means of which we have not yet conquered. The common taste for miracles is the sign
that man's ascent is not yet finished.
85 - It is rationality and prudence to distrust the supernatural; but to believe in it is also a
sort of wisdom.
86 - Great saints have performed miracles; greater saints have railed at them; the greatest
have both railed at them and performed them.
87 - Open thy eyes and see what the world really is and what God; have done with vain and
pleasant imaginations.
Do you have any questions?
Yes, there are two types of question....
There are two very different things.
First, one may ask: What is a miracle? Because Sri Aurobindo often says that "there is no such
thing as a miracle," but at the same time, in "Savitri," for example, he says, "All's miracle here and
can by miracle change."19
It depends which way you look at it: from this side or from the other side.
People only call miracles things they can't explain clearly, in mental terms. From that point of view,
innumerable things that happen can be said to be "miracles," because you can't explain the why or the
how.
What would a real miracle be, then?
I don't see what a real miracle can be, because what's a miracle, ultimately?
A real miracle... It's only the mind that has the notion of miracle, because following its own logic,
the mind decides that given this and that condition, this or that circumstance can or cannot be. But these
are merely the mind's limitations. Because from the Lord's point of view, how could there be a miracle?
All is but Himself objectifying Himself.
Here we come to the great problem of the road we travel, the eternal Road Sri Aurobindo refers to
in Savitri. It is easy to imagine, of course, that what was first objectified had an inclination to
objectification. The first point to accept, a logical point considering the principle of evolution, is that
the objectification is progressive, it is not complete for all eternity.... (silence) It's very hard to express,
because we cannot free ourselves from our habit of seeing it as a finite quantity unfolding indefinitely
and of thinking that only with a finite quantity can there be a beginning. We always have an idea (at
least in our way of speaking) of a "moment" (laughing) when the Lord decides to objectify Himself.
And put that way, the explanation is easy: He objectifies Himself gradually, progressively, with, as a
result, a progressive evolution. But that's just a manner of speaking. Because there is no beginning, no
end, yet there is a progression. The sense of sequence, the sense of evolution and progress comes only
with the Manifestation. And only when we speak of the earth can we explain things truthfully and
19Savitri, I.V.85.

rationally, because the earth had a beginning - not in its soul, but in its material reality.
A material universe probably has a beginning, too.
(silence)
So looking at it that way, for a given universe, a miracle would mean the sudden appearance of
something from another universe. And for the earth (which brings the problem down to a manageable
size), a miracle means the sudden appearance of something that doesn't belong to the earth - and this
entry of a principle that doesn't belong to the earth as a finite world causes a radical and instant change.
But then again, as the saying goes, the ENTIRE whole is found in principle at the very core of each
part; so even this miracle isn't possible.
We might say that the sense of miracle can only belong to a finite world, a finite consciousness, a
finite conception. It is the abrupt, unexpected entry - or appearance or intervention or penetration - of
something that did not exist in this physical world. So it follows that any manifestation of a will or
consciousness belonging to a realm more infinite and eternal than the earth is necessarily a miracle on
the earth. But if you go beyond the finite world or the understanding proper to the finite world, then
miracle does not exist. The Lord can play at miracles if He enjoys it, but there's no such thing as a
miracle - He plays all possible games.
You can begin to understand Him only when you FEEL it that way, that He plays all possible
games - and "possible" not according to human conception but according to His own conception!
Then there is no room for the miracle, except for a pretend miracle.
(silence)
If what belongs to the supramental world materialized abruptly, rather than through a slow evolution...
that would be something which man, as a mental being, even if his mentality, his mental domain, were
brought to perfection, could call a miracle, for it is the intervention in his conscious life of something
he doesn't consciously carry within him. The taste for miracles, which is very strong (much stronger in
children or in hearts that have remained childlike than in highly mentalized beings), is basically the
faith that the aspiration for the Marvelous will come true, that things beyond all that we may expect of
normal life will come true.
In fact, for education, people should always encourage both tendencies side by side: the thirst for
the Marvelous, the seemingly unrealizable, for something that fills you with a sense of divinity, while
at the same time encouraging, in the perception of the world as it is, an exact, correct and sincere
observation, the abolition of all imaginings, a constant control, and a most practical and meticulous
feeling for exactness in details. Both tendencies should go side by side. Generally, people kill one with
the idea that it's necessary in order to develop the other - which is totally erroneous.
The two can coexist, and as knowledge grows, a moment comes when you understand that they are
two aspects of the same thing, namely, a clear vision, a superior discernment. But instead of the vision
and discernment being limited and narrow, they become absolutely sincere, correct, exact - AND
immense, embracing an entire field that's not yet part of the concrete Manifestation.
This is very important from an educational point of view.
To see the world as it is, accurately, starkly, in the most practical and down-to-earth way, and to see
the world as it can be, with the highest and freest vision, filled with hope and aspiration and a
marvelous certainty - these are the two poles of discernment. All the most splendid, marvelous,
powerful, expressive and total things we are able to imagine are nothing compared to what they can be;

and at the same time, our minute observation of the smallest detail can never be sufficiently exact. Both
things must go together. When you know this (gesture below) and you know That (gesture above), you
are able to make the two meet.
This is the best possible use of the need for miracles. The need for miracles is a gesture of
ignorance: "Oh, I wish it were that way!" It's a gesture of ignorance and impotence. On the other hand,
those who tell you, "You live in a world of miracles," know only the lower end of things (and quite
imperfectly at that), and they are impervious to anything else.
We should turn this need for miracles into a conscious aspiration to something - something that
already is, that exists, and that will be manifested WITH THE HELP of all those aspirations: all those
aspirations are necessary, or rather, looking at it in a truer way, they are an accompaniment - a pleasant
accompaniment - to the eternal unfolding.
Basically, people with a very strict logic tell you, "Why pray? Why aspire, why ask? The Lord does
what He wills and will always do what He wills." It's perfectly obvious, it goes without saying, but this
fervor, "Lord, manifest Yourself!" gives His manifestation a more intense vibration.
Otherwise He would never have made the world as it is - there is a special power, a special joy, a
special vibration in the world's intensity of aspiration to become again what it is.
And that is why - partly, fragmentarily why - there is evolution.
An eternally perfect universe, eternally manifesting eternal perfection, would lack the joy of
progress. This I feel very intensely. Very intensely. We see no farther than the tip of our nose, not even
one second of Infinity, and that second doesn't contain all that we'd like to experience and know, so we
complain, "Oh, no! This world is no good." But if we come out of our second into the Whole,
immediately we feel so intensely all that the need for progress has brought to the Manifestation.
And yet... yet it is still limited to the receiving instrument. There comes a point when even the
creative Force of this universe feels very small if It doesn't merge, doesn't unite with the creative Force
of all other universes.
There too, there is a constant ascent or progression in identification.
(Mother suddenly turns to Satprem)
You're not going to put all that in?!
But... yes, of course!
(Laughing) No, cut out all the last part.
It's late now, otherwise I might have asked you a question.
Go ahead. What question?
Why didn't Sri Aurobindo or you make more use of miracles as a means to overcome the
resistances of the outer human consciousness? Why this self-effacement towards the outside, this
sort of nonintervention, as it were, or unobstrusiveness?
In Sri Aurobindo's case, I only know what he told me several times: what people call "miracles" are
just interventions in the physical or vital worlds. And those interventions are always mixed with
ignorant or arbitrary movements.

But the number of miracles Sri Aurobindo performed in the Mind is incalculable. Of course, only if
you had a very honest, sincere and pure vision could you see them - I saw them. Others too saw them.
But he refused (this I know), he refused to perform any vital or material miracle, because of the
admixture.
My own experience is like this: in the world's present state, a direct miracle (vital or material, that
is) must necessarily involve a number of fallacious elements which we cannot accept - those miracles
are necessarily fallacious miracles. And we cannot accept that. At least I always refused to do so. I've
seen what people call miracles. I saw many with Madame Thon, for instance, but it allowed a host of
things to exist that to me are inadmissible.
I don't know if that's the true reason, I am not sure if the reason isn't just that we were not supposed
to do miracles.
I could say a lot on the subject, but... At any rate, perhaps I'll tell you one day, but it can't be used
for the Bulletin - these aren't public matters.
But what people call "miracles" nowadays are almost always performed by beings of the vital
world, or by men in relation with such beings, so there's a mixture - it accepts the reality of certain
things, the truth of certain things that aren't true. And it works on that basis. So it's unacceptable.
Some other day I'll tell you more, though what I'll have to say will be personally to you, for the
Agenda, it just won't do for the Bulletin. There you are.

March 9, 1963
I'd like to ask you a question.... I haven't quite understood what you meant by "miracles in the
Mind." What are they? "Sri Aurobindo performed miracles in the Mind," you said.
That was when he brought the supramental Force into the mental consciousness. He would bring into
the mental consciousness (the mental consciousness that governs all material movements 20 ) a
supramental formation, or power, or force, that instantly altered the organization. With immediate
results... that appear illogical because the process doesn't follow the course set by mental logic.
He said it himself: it happened when he was in possession or in conscious command of the
supramental Force and Power and when he put it on a particular spot for a particular purpose. It was
irrevocable, inevitable: the effect was absolute.
That can be called a miracle.
The supramental force he would put in a person's mind was able to...
Take the example of someone ill, even feeling pain. When Sri Aurobindo was in possession of this
20In other words, the physical mind, creator of the medical, gravitational and mortal cage we live in.

supramental Power (at certain times he said it was totally under his control, he could do whatever he
wanted with it and apply it wherever he wanted), then he would put this Will on some disorder or other,
physical or vital, say (or mental, of course), he would put this Force of a superior harmony, a superior,
supramental order, keep it there, and it would act instantly. And it was an order - it created an order
and harmony superior to natural harmony. Which means that if the object was to cure, for example, the
cure was more perfect and total than a cure brought about by the ordinary physical and mental methods.
There were hosts of instances. But people are so blind, you know, so bogged down in their ordinary
consciousness, that they always have ready "explanations." They can always explain it away. Only
those who had faith and aspiration and something very pure in them, that is, those who really wanted to
know, were aware of it.
Which means there is a difference between the miracle taking place through or in the mind, and the
miracle taking place directly in the physical and vital. For instance, all those who perform miracles like
levitation, moving objects, generating lights... (Mother keeps silent for a while, then drops the subject).
It's a field that I don't find very living, it doesn't interest me very much.21
But that's how it worked with healing. When the Power was there, he said it was even effortless, all
he had to do was to put that Power of order, of supramental harmony, and it would act instantly. 22
The difference is hard to explain.
(silence)
Oh, listen (this is not meant to be published or told), I don't know if I've told you already. I was nine or
ten years old, I was running with some friends in the forest of Fontainebleau (I've told this story
somewhere). The forest is rather dense, so you can't see very far ahead. We were running, and speeding
along as I was, I didn't see I was coming to the edge overhanging the road. The place where we were
was about ten feet above the road (more than a story high), and the road was paved with stones -
freshly paved. And we were running. I was racing ahead, the others were behind. Well, I'd built up such
momentum that I couldn't stop - whoosh! I went sailing into the air. I was ten, eleven at the most, mind
you, with no notion of the miraculous or the marvelous, nothing, nothing - I was just flung into the air.
And I felt something supporting me, holding me up, and I was literally SET DOWN on the ground, on
the stones. I got up (I found it perfectly natural, you understand!): not a scratch, not a speck of dust,
nothing, absolutely intact. I fell down very, very slowly. Then everyone rushed up to see. "Oh, it's
nothing!" I said, "I am all right." And I left it at that. But the impression lingered. That feeling of
21Later, Mother repeated the same remark: "I am not much concerned with this field, I see it from the OTHER angle What I
refer to here is seen from below upward, while I see it the other way (gesture from above downward), so it assumes a very
different character. We'll talk about it again later."
22In the following conversation, Mother gave a very recent example of someone cured by the supramental force acting in
the material mind: "After three warnings which he didn't heed, A. [a Paris disciple], one morning, found himself halfparalyzed. And the next day, it started spreading to the other side, the left side. At that point, he gave a call - it struck him to
see one side completely paralyzed and the other following suit, he saw himself going down, so he gave a call. And he says
that inside a few minutes, a stupendous Force came into him and that Force said, "No!" And almost automatically,
everything came to a stop. Nothing came over the left side, and the right side started to improve. And when I received the
first telegram informing me that A. had to take to his bed because of an 'attack' (a 'heart attack,' they said, but it wasn't the
heart, it was an embolism in the brain), with the telegram in my hands, I saw, written OVER the telegram's words: 'It's
nothing, no need to worry'! So I said coolly, 'Oh' it's nothing, no need to worry.' (Mother laughs) Then the letter came with
all the details: thrombosis, and so on. But he says he feels a Force [near Mother] that's not in his ordinary little life over
there, he finds it makes all the difference - it's something which gives a LIFE that's not in his ordinary little life in France.
Anyhow, this is something like a miracle."

something carrying me (gesture of a slow fall, like a leaf falling in stages with slight pauses): I fell
down that slow. And the material proof was there, it was no illusion since I was unscathed - the road
was paved with stones (you know the flint stones of France?): not a scratch, nothing. Not a speck of
dust.
The soul was very alive at the time, and with all its strength it resisted the intrusion of the material
logic23 of the world - so it seemed to me perfectly natural. I simply thought, "No. Accidents can't
happen to me."
But flung like that!... For a very long time the memory of the SENSATION remained: something
that went like this (same gesture of a leaf falling) and simply set me down on the road. When I worked
with Thon, the memory came back, and I saw it was an entity: what people in Europe call angels
(what do they call it?)... guardian angels, that's right. An entity. Thon had told me of certain worlds
(worlds of the higher intellect - I don't remember, he had named all the different planes), and in that
world are winged beings - who have wings of their own free choice, because they find it pretty! And
Madame Thon had always seen two such beings with me. Yet she knew me more than ten years later.
And it appears they were always with me. So I took a look and, sure enough, there they were. One even
tried to draw: he asked me to lend him my hand to do drawings. I lent my hand, but when I saw the
drawing (he did one), I told him, "The ones I do without you are much better!" So that was the end of
the matter!
What did it depict?
Funny drawings. One showed a sea with a rock and a small figure (that one was the best). A high cliff,
a tiny figure, and then the sea. It wasn't very good!
I would lend my hand and look elsewhere - I didn't look at what I was drawing to make sure there
was no subconscious interference. And I could distinctly feel his hand moving mine. After a while, I
said to myself, "I think I'll take a look." I looked - "I say," I told him, "It's not up to much!"
It was in Tlemcen.
That kind of oddity never interested me. I found them simply natural. But these are what people call
miracles.
There was another occurrence (less striking), once in a room as long as this one and wider, 24 the
salon in my family's house. Some little friends had come and we were playing. I told them, "I'll show
you how one should dance." I went to a corner of the room to get the longest distance to another corner,
and I told them, "One single step in the middle." And I did it! (Mother laughs) I sprang (I didn't even
feel I was jumping, it was like dancing, you know, like when they dance on point), landed on the tips of
my toes, bounced up and reached the other corner - you can't do that alone, even champions cannot.
The length of the jump went beyond records, because afterwards I asked here, when we started physical
exercises at the Ashram, I asked what the longest jump was - mine was longer! And they take a run up,
you see, they run and then jump. But I didn't run: I was standing in the corner, and hop! up I went (I
said "hop!" to myself, soundlessly), and frrrt! I landed on the tips of my toes, bounced and landed the
other side - quite evidently I was carried.
All this took place before the age of thirteen or fourteen (from eight to thirteen or fourteen). Many
things of the kind, all of which seemed to me perfectly natural - it didn't feel as though I was doing
23Just what presides over the "inevitability" of accidents, including gravitation, illness and death.
24About forty feet long and thirteen feet wide.

something miraculous. Perfectly natural.
I remember also, once, there were iron hoops (I don't know if they still exist) bordering the lawns in
the Bois de Boulogne - and I used to take a walk on them! It was a challenge I threw to my brother
(there was a difference of sixteen months between us, he was older - and much better behaved too!). I
told him, "Can you walk on these?" "Leave me alone," he answered, "it's not interesting." "Just watch!"
I told him. And I started walking on them, with such ease! As if I had done it all my life. It was the
same phenomenon: I felt weightless.
Always the feeling of being carried: something holding me up, carrying me. And now if I compare
the movement or the sensation... it's the same as that vast movement of wings - the same vibration.
After thirteen or fourteen years, it became more difficult. But before that, it was really fine.
(silence)
It was the same thing when I made that overmental formation (we were heading for miracles!). One day
Sri Aurobindo told me I had brought down into Amrita 25 a force of the creative Brahma (it's the
creative Word, the Word that realizes itself automatically). And I don't know what happened...
something, I can't recall what, that showed me it was working very well. Then a sort of idea occurred to
me: "Why, we could try this power on mosquitoes: let mosquitoes cease to exist! What would happen?"
(We were pestered by mosquitoes at the time.) Before doing it (the meditation was over, it would have
been for the next time), I said to Sri Aurobindo, "Well, what if we tried with that force which responds;
if we said, 'Let mosquitoes cease to exist,' we could at least get rid of them within a certain field of
action, a certain field of influence, couldn't we?" So he looked at me (with a smile), kept silent, and,
after a moment, turned to me and said, You are in full Overmind. That is not the Truth we want to
manifest.... I told you the story. It was on that occasion.
We could have done things of that sort.
He told me (Mother speaks with an ironic tone), "Oh, you can certainly perform miracles! People
will be wonderstruck."
(silence)
But I found a far lovelier miracle.... It was at Tlemcen, I was playing the piano, I don't recall what (a
Beethoven or a Mozart piece). Thon had a piano (because his English secretary used to play the
piano), and this piano was in his drawing room, which was on a level with the mountain, halfway up,
almost at the top. That is to say, you had to climb two flights of stairs inside the house to reach the
drawing room, but the drawing room had large French doors opening out onto the mountainside - it
was very beautiful. So then, I used to play in the afternoon, with the French doors wide open. One day,
when I finished playing, I turned around to get up, and what did I see but a big toad, all warts - a huge
toad - and it was going puff, puff, puff (you know how they inflate and deflate), it was inflating and
deflating, inflating and deflating... as though it were in seventh heaven! It had never heard anything so
marvelous! It was all alone, as big as this, all round, all black, all warts, between those high doors -
French doors wide open to the sun and light. It sat in the middle. It went on for a little while, then when
it saw the music was over, it turned around, hop-hop-hopped... and vanished.
That admiration of a toad filled me with joy! It was charming.
(silence)
25One of Mother's secretaries.

Also when I was eleven or twelve, my mother rented a cottage at the edge of a forest: we didn't have to
go through the town. I used to go and sit in the forest all alone. I would sit lost in reverie. One day (it
happened often), one day some squirrels had come, several birds, and also (Mother opens her eyes
wide), deer, looking on.... How lovely it was! When I opened my eyes and saw them, I found it
charming - they scampered away.
The memory of all these things returned AFTERWARDS, when I met Thon - long afterwards,
when I was more than twenty, that is, more than ten years later. I met Thon and got the explanation of
these things, I understood. Then I remembered all that had happened to me, and I thought, "Well!..."
Because Madame Thon said to me (I told her all my childhood stories), she said to me, "Oh, but I
know, you are THAT, the stamp of THAT is on you." I thought over what she had said, and I saw it
was indeed true. All those experiences I had were very clear indications that there were certainly
people in the invisible looking after me! (Mother laughs)
Interestingly there was nothing mental about it: I didn't know the existence of those things, I didn't
know what meditation was - I meditated without the least idea of what it was. I knew nothing,
absolutely nothing, my mother had kept it all completely taboo: those matters are not to be touched,
they drive you crazy!
Later, the memories came back.
***
(Towards the end of the conversation, Mother asks for the next aphorism for the "Bulletin" and if
Satprem has any questions.)
I'd like to ask you a question on death.
Ohhh!...
All that I thought I knew now seems to me completely superficial, and I have almost... laid my
finger on something which, in contrast, gave me the impression of a stupendous discovery. But it was
just a flash, the thing is not at my command. I can't speak about it. So it might be better to wait a while
before dealing with that subject.
Is this aphorism on death?
Yes, it refers to dualities: life and death, error and knowledge, love and cruelty.... We can, of
course, leave aside any question on death, but that was the question that came to me.
I tell you, it would mar a subject that may, in a few months (a few months or a few years, I don't
know), grow clearer. There may be something worth telling then.
On a few occasions, you know, I was like this (Mother makes a gesture of hovering between two
worlds26 ), as if I were really put in contact with what I have called "the death of death." It was the
unreality of death. From a COMPLETELY material standpoint. It was a question of cells and of the
consciousness in the cells. Like when you are within an inch of something: "There it is! I'm going to
catch it, there it is!..." But then it fades away. It has stayed as an impression.
26In March 1962, when Mother very nearly did not return to her body.

A few seconds' experience which gave me the sense that the most central problem was solved. And
then....
When it is like that, it will be interesting.
***
(Just before leaving)
Do we need another aphorism [for the Bulletin]? We already have three.
I'll just add part of what you said at the beginning, on the miracles in the mind....
What Sri Aurobindo did?
Yes, I asked you what those miracles in the mind were. You said he would bring the Supermind into
the Mind.... It's interesting.
You think we should say that to people? They're....
Because personally, I didn't quite understand what it meant and why Sri Aurobindo and you didn't
perform any miracles. But I won't put everything you said today.
Oh, no, no, no! No need to... It's only for our own enjoyment. And what about your book, how is it
going on?
Slowly.
I'll soon start preparing next year's February 29,27 and your book is part of the preparation.... I am trying
to find what to distribute - what will take place. I don't know yet what will take place. But many
people, in all corners of the world, are expecting this February 29 (from everywhere they want to
come), so I should at least have something ready for them.
The only thing that has come to my consciousness so far is for me to be in an inner state such that I
could sit for two or three hours, while people file past me (of course, it's out of the question to
distribute anything myself, it's impossible). Simply, for me to be absorbed in contemplation so that it
wouldn't matter, people filing past wouldn't alter my state.
It was suggested to me in the form of a vision: I was sitting on a somewhat high chair downstairs,
on the ground floor (in the meditation hall where I went in 1960), while people filed past me. But then
there should be some sort of distribution, and I am more in favor of something printed than a material
object. A material object... I am much too poor, in the first place. Something printed.
It's vague - not vague but incomplete. The details are precise, what I see is precise, but everything
isn't there. Only certain points here and there - it's incomplete.
But one thing I know, I want your book to be published by then, to come out by the end of
February, possibly for the 21st. But those people take ages to do things properly. That's why I ask you.

27Second anniversary of the supramental Manifestation.

I hope it'll be finished at the beginning of next month.
Good. Au revoir, mon petit.

March 13, 1963
(Mother opens "Savitri." She intended to translate "The Debate of Love and Death." The book opens
"by chance" on the last lines of Death's defeat, which Mother reads aloud:)
And [Death] left crumbling the shape that he had worn,
Abandoning hope to make man's soul his prey
And force to be mortal the immortal spirit.
(X.IV.667)
No matter where you open, no matter where you read, it's wonderful! Immediately it's wonderful -
strange, these three lines, aren't they....
Abandoning hope to make man's soul his prey
And force to be mortal the immortal spirit.
Wonderful.
These people could very easily lure me: for a long time they have been asking me to read them the
whole of Savitri - quite a work! But this [translation] work is irresistible.
So, in fact (the trouble is, my notebook won't be thick enough!), in fact I would like to translate all
of the "Debate" [of Love and Death], it's so wonderful.
(Mother leafs through the book)
When she says... I don't remember the words, she says:
My God is love28
Oh, that's....
(Mother goes back to the
28"My God is love and sweetly suffers all." (IX.II.591)

beginning of Book X, Canto IV)
Here:
The Dream Twilight of the Earthly Real
Look at this:
Or in bodies motionless like statues, fixed
In tranced cessations of their sleepless thought
Sat sleeping souls, and this too was a dream.
(X.IV.642)
They are the ones who want to attain Nirvana.... "And this too was a dream"!
(Mother looks further)
It begins here:
Once
more
arose
the
great
destroying
Across
the
fruitless
labour
of
the
His
huge
denial's
all-defeating
Pursued the ignorant march of dolorous Time.

Voice:
worlds
might

(X.IV.643)
Here is where I should begin.
Book X is long: "The Book of the Double Twilight."... Of course, if I start reading...
You'll end up at the beginning!
I would do the whole book!
(Mother leafs back)
"The Gospel of Death and Vanity of the Ideal"
This is invaluable to answer all, all, all the arguments people use.
(Mother leafs further)
Ah, here we are! "The Debate of Love and Death."
That's where it begins.
It's Canto III.
There's a passage underlined here.

If it's underlined, it's not by me!... No, that's the place where I stopped when I was reading: I used to
mark in red the place where I stopped.
He says... (Death to Savitri, in a supremely ironic tone):
... Art thou indeed so strong, O heart,
O Soul, so free?...
(X. III. 63 6)
It's wonderful!
So we would have to start at the beginning of the "Book of the Double Twilight," Book X. Let's see
how it goes....
(Mother reads)
All still was darkness dread and desolate;
There was no change nor any hope of change.
In this black dream which was a house of Void,
A walk to Nowhere in a land of Nought,
Ever they drifted without aim or goal....
(X.I.599)
My God, how wonderful! It's wonderful.
(Mother turns the pages)
And Book XII ["The Return to the Earth"].... I don't know.
(Mother reads the concluding
lines of "Savitri":)
Night,
splendid
with
the
moon
In
silver
peace,
possessed
her
She
brooded
through
her
stillness
Deep-guarded
by
her
mystic
And in her bosom nursed a greater dawn.

dreaming
luminous
on
a
folds

in

heaven
reign.
thought
of
light,

(XII.724)
It heralds the Supermind.
But I had a feeling he hadn't completed his revision. When I read this, I felt it wasn't the end, just as
when I read the last chapter of the "Yoga of Self-Perfection,"29 I felt it was unfinished. He left it
unfinished. And he said so. He said, "No, I will not go down to this mental level any more."
But in Savitri's case... (I didn't look after it, you know), he had around him Purani, that Chinmayi,
29The last chapter of the Synthesis of Yoga: "Towards the Supramental Time Vision."

and... (what's his name?) Nirod - they all swarmed around him. So I didn't look after Savitri. I read
Savitri two years ago, I had never read it before. And I am so glad! Because I read it at the time I could
understand it - and I realized that none of those people had understood ONE BIT of it. Both things at
the same time.
(silence)
Let's see, open a page at random, I want to see if you find something interesting - concentrate a
moment and open the book, I'll read it to you.
Just put your finger.... Do you want a blade? (Mother gives Satprem a letter opener)
(Satprem concentrates
and opens the book)
Oh!
In
the
passion
of
its
It lay [the heart of the King] like a
Where
sleeps
a
consecrated
Lit
by
a
single
and
And an invisible Presence kneels in prayer....

solitary
soundless
argent
untrembling

closed

dream
oratory
floor
ray

Pretty lovely!
Oh, it's good.... Let me go back a little:
In
the
luminous
stillness
of
its
mute
appeal
It
looked
up
to
the
heights
it
could
not
see;
It
yearned
from
the
longing
depths
it
could
not
leave.
In
the
centre
of
its
vast
and
fateful
trance
Half
way
between
his
free
and
fallen
selves,
Interceding
twixt
God's
day
and
the
mortal
night,
Accepting
worship
as
its
single
law,
Accepting
bliss
as
the
sole
cause
of
things,
Refusing
the
austere
joy
which
none
can
share,
Refusing
the
calm
that
lives
for
calm
alone,
To
her
it
turned
for
whom
it
willed
to
be.
In
the
passion
of
its
solitary
dream
It
lay
like
a
closed
soundless
oratory
Where
sleeps
a
consecrated
argent
floor
Lit
by
a
single
and
untrembling
ray
And
an
invisible
Presence
kneels
in
prayer.
On
some
deep
breast
of
liberating
peace
All
else
was
satisfied
with
quietude;
This
only
knew
there
was
a
truth
beyond.
All
other
parts
were
dumb
in
centred
sleep
Consenting
to
the
slow
deliberate
Power
Which
tolerates
the
world's
error
and
its
grief,
Consenting
to
the
cosmic
long
delay,

Timelessly
waiting
through
the
patient
Her
coming
they
had
asked
for
earth
and
This
was
the
fiery
point
that
called
her
Extinction
could
not
quench
that
lonely
Its
seeing
filled
the
blank
of
mind
and
Thought dead, its changeless force abode and grew....

years
men;
now.
fire;
will;

I can't see clearly any more.... But I know what this is about: it's when the King 30 makes his last
surrender to the universal Mother - he annuls himself before the universal Mother, and She gives him
the mission he must fulfill.
Its
seeing
filled
the
blank
of
mind
and
will;
Thought
dead,
its
changeless
force
abode
and
grew.
Armed
with
the
intuition
of
a
bliss
To
which
some
moved
tranquillity
was
the
key,
It
persevered
through
life's
huge
emptiness
Amid
the
blank
denials
of
the
world.
It
sent
its
voiceless
prayer
to
the
Unknown;
It
listened
for
the
footsteps
of
its
hopes
Returning
through
the
void
immensities,
It
waited
for
the
fiat
of
the
Word
That comes through the still self from the Supreme.
(III.III.332)
Well, this is certainly a beautiful choice!
That's it, there's no doubt.
When he wakes up from that state, he has a vision of the universal Mother, and receives his
mission.
This is very good, a very good indication.
It's captivating, Savitri!
I believe it's his Message - all the rest is preparation, while Savitri is the Message. Unfortunately,
there were two morons here who fancied correcting him - while he was alive! (A. especially, he's a
poet.) Hence all those Letters on Poetry Sri Aurobindo wrote. I've always refused to read them - I find
it outrageous. He was forced to explain a whole "poetic technique" - the very idea! It's just the
contrary: it comes down from above, and AFTERWARDS you explain. Like a punch in sawdust:
inspiration comes down, and afterwards you explain why it's all arranged as it is - but that just doesn't
interest me!
(silence)
So you came (you see, it's the answer) to manifest (it's very good, I like this answer very much), to
manifest the bliss above. You understand? He goes beyond all past attempts to unite with the Supreme,
because none of them satisfies him - he aspires for something more. So when everything is annulled,
30In Savitri, the King represents the human aspiration to discover the Earth's secret beyond all already explored spiritual
knowledge.

he enters a Nothingness, then comes out of it with the capacity to unite with the new Bliss.
That's it, it's good!

March 16, 1963
(Regarding the conversation of March 9: "A few seconds' experience that gave me the sense that the
most central problem was solved." That experience was what Mother called "the death of death.")
Those things are strange.... You don't remember actively, that is, you can't find any thought whatsoever
to express the experience; even the active sensation of the experience fades away. And yet you are no
longer the same person - that's the remarkable thing! I experienced this phenomenon several times (I
don't remember clearly enough to tell you exactly how many times), several times in my life, it was
always the same thing: no longer the same person, you've become someone else. All the relationships
with life, with consciousness, with movement - everything changes. Yet the central thing is just a
vague impression. At the moment of the experience, for a second, it's so clear, so precise - a
thunderbolt. But then... probably the cerebral and nervous system is incapable of preserving it. But all
the relationships are changed, you are another person.
I've seen this phenomenon very often. For example, the impression people have in ordinary life
(few are conscious of it, but everyone has the impression, I know that) of a Destiny or a Fate or a will...
"hanging over" them, a set of circumstances (it doesn't matter what you call it), something that weighs
you down and tries to manifest through you. But weighing you down. That was the first of my
experiences: emerging above (very long ago, at the beginning of the century). And it was that kind of
experience: one second, but suddenly, oh, you find yourself above it all. I remember because at the
time I told the people I knew (maybe I was already looking after the Cosmic Review, it was the
beginning, or maybe just before), I told them: "There is a state in which you are free to decide what you
will do; when you say, 'I want this,' it means it will happen." That was the impression I lived with.
Instead of thinking "I'd like to do this, I'd like that to happen," with the sense of the decision being left
to Fate, the impression that you are above and you make the decision: things WILL BE like that, things
WILL BE like that.
That's my memory of the beginning of the century.
I had several experiences of the kind - quite a number of them. And since that last experience [the
death of death], which lasted a second, I've had the feeling... the same kind of feeling. Before that,
whenever I intervened for people, either to prevent them from dying or to help them once they were
dead - hundreds and hundreds of things I used to do all the time - I did them with the sense of Death
like this (gesture above Mother), as something to be conquered or overcome, or the consequences of
which had to be mended. But it was always that way, Death was... (laughing) just a little above. And
from that moment [the death of death], the head emerged above - the head, the consciousness, the will
were above. On the side of the Lord.
I had an experience quite a long time ago, when Sri Aurobindo was here: one night I had the

experience of being in contact with the Supreme Lord, and it was concrete:
"One dies only when You will it."
I don't remember in detail (I wrote it down), but the idea was like this: the Lord makes you die only
with your consent - your consent is necessary for you to die. And unless He decides, you can never die.
Those two things: for you to die, something (the inmost soul, that is) must consent, the soul must say
yes, then you die; and when the soul says yes, it's for the Lord to decide. Ever since that experience,
there had been the certainty that you can die only when the Lord wills it, that it depends entirely and
exclusively on His Will, that there are no accidents, no "unforeseeable mishaps," as human beings think
- all that doesn't exist: it's His Will. From that experience till this latest one [the death of death], I lived
in that knowledge. Yet with the feeling of... not quite the unknown but the incomprehensible. The
feeling of something in the consciousness which doesn't understand (what I mean by "understand" is
having the power to do and undo, that's what I call "to understand": the power to realize or to undo,
that's the real understanding, the POWER), well, of something which eluded me. It was still the
mystery of the Infinite Supreme. And when that experience [the death of death] came, then, "Ah, there
it is! I have it, I've caught it! At last, I have it."
I didn't have it long (laughing), it went away! But my position changed. It's one more thing I see
from above; I rose above, my position is above.
I have always observed very carefully every time somebody died here in the Ashram, and well (one
or two persons have died since that experience, in particular the old doctor's sister), well, since then it
has been ABSOLUTELY DIFFERENT. It was something I saw from above. There was no longer any
mystery. But if you ask me to explain... That I can't - words, the mind, no. But the POSITION of the
consciousness was different - the position of the consciousness. Altogether different.
And it happened the same way every time. 31 But it may take years to turn into a conscious power.
And IN THE PRESENT CASE, the conscious power would mean the power to give or prevent death
equally; to effect the necessary movement of forces - almost... almost an action on the cells, a
mechanical action on the cells. With that power, you can give death, you can prevent death.
But there is NO LONGER any of that sensation people have of a brutal clash between life and its
opposite, death - death is not the opposite of life! At that moment I understood, and I never forgot:
death is NOT the opposite of life, it is not the opposite of life.32
31Later, Mother added: "That is to say, an extremely powerful experience but which doesn't stay, except in its effect:
becoming another person, changing position. I wouldn't be able to describe the experience, but my position changed. That's
what happened every time. It's very different from the other experiences: they stay, you understand them fully, they don't
fade away - but they don't have the power to change your person. They are two types of experience, both very useful, but
very different from each other. The experiences of the very powerful but very brief type are those that, afterwards, are
expressed in the form of the other type. The other experiences are those that ESTABLISH in a certain domain of
consciousness that first experience which had come only as a shock - a compelling but transient shock. And sometimes it
may take long - formerly it took years between the first experience and the resulting ones; now the interval seems a bit
shorter, though it still takes some time. And it follows the same course every time: something comes, has the necessary
effect, and then the consciousness seems to go to sleep on that point, as if a silent incubation period were needed - you stop
dealing actively with the subject - and it reemerges at the end of a long curve, but as if it had been digested, assimilated, and
you were now ready for the full experience."
32With a sort of incomprehensible comprehension, we are reminded of the words of the Vedic Rishis: "He uncovered the
two worlds, eternal and in ONE nest." (Rig-Veda, I.62.7)

It's a sort of change in the cells' functioning, 33 or in their organization.... When I say all this now, I
try to pull back a deep-buried memory. But that's the point. Once you have understood that (all that you
understand, you can do), once you've understood that, you can do it. Then it's very simple: you can
easily stop the thing from going this way or that way; you can go like that or like this or like that
(Mother seems to handle forces or shift the position of the consciousness). Then it almost becomes
child's play to make someone die or make someone live! But that is better left unsaid.
But it will surely come! In how many years, I don't know, but the thing has become plain. And to
me (as I said the other day), to me it seemed quite a central secret - not the most central of all, no, but
fairly central with regard to life on earth.
It's... of course, it would mean a new phase for life on earth.
(silence)
It may almost result (later, once modern science has run an ascending curve) in a MATERIAL
knowledge. It wouldn't be that [Mother's experience], but the image of it: what Sri Aurobindo calls a
figure, a representation; the closest word is "image." An image: not the thing itself but its projection,
as on a movie screen.
(silence)
It is clear that... It is clear that we are drawing near to what ordinary consciousness regards as the
Marvelous.
(long silence)
At bottom, to understand the creation is to be able to make it - that's it. When you understand, you can
do. Whatever men do is done with a conscious will here (Mother makes a gesture as if she were
wearing blinkers), but with an invisible Power which may or may not come, which is at their disposal
or isn't. And that invisible Power is what ACTS. Men can have conceptions, but they don't have the
power. But when you make that movement and go from here to THERE (gesture above), then you
realize that all those conceptions are like the notes of a universal keyboard; you can play all the notes,
it's very fine and makes a beautiful orchestra, but it isn't essential, it's incidental. THAT [the invisible
Power] is what is needed. THAT is what knows how things are to be done and how one should play.

March 19, 1963

33Thus it is in the depths of the cells that the key is found, that the passageway is found, not in a world "beyond" but in this
very world where death is not the opposite of life - where death is no more (this very world too where you fall on flints
weightless and unscathed?).

After a meditation with Mother:

When you meditate, are you conscious of going from one state to another?... No?
Because at the start, there is usually that vibration with all the colors, though with blue strongly
predominant (the color I have come to call the "Tantric power in Matter"); that's immediately with you,
it's a sort of normal state of concentration. Then afterwards, you seemed to recede or stretch out into a
vast Immensity of very quiet silvery whiteness - very quiet and unbroken. Like a receding from outer
life and a stretching out into that state. And then there comes down - literally comes down - a very
intense golden light, very intense, almost (what could I call it?) a "colorful" gold, really golden, very,
very intense, and as though "atomized" - a powdering. The three in succession. Don't you feel that
way?
I feel the second movement: a sense of expanse, it is all white and open.
That's right. White and very intense. Very vast and quiet.
Very good.
In the last movement, it descends and envelops your head.
That blue force, that blue light, I had known it for a long time, but without defining it: it was a
power of consciousness - a POWER - the power of consciousness in Matter. I knew exactly what it
was when I came in contact with X 34 (with the Swami first, then with X). Since then, I had been able to
tell without doubt whether someone I was seeing was practicing Tantrism or not. And now when I see a
photograph, it's the same thing! Yesterday, for example, I was shown somebody's photo, and I had the
same impression of force; I didn't say anything, I asked what the man did (maybe he is a businessman
in life, I don't remember), but then they gave me a letter from him in which he wrote that for a few
years he had been trying to follow the Tantric method of yoga - it amused me! It was plain in his
photo!
I came across a man who had that blue light... but I found him rather formidable. He looked after all
the religious rites and priests of B.'s state. He came here and asked to see me. I saw him on a December
9 (I think) when I paid a visit to the estate at Aryankuppam. I was walking in the gardens when
suddenly I felt something pulling at me - and none too gently! I turned around and saw a tall man,
standing and staring at me. So (I didn't know who he was, no one had told me), I stared back and
simply "answered" his impudence! And pfft! it just fell off. I was surprised. Later (I had not yet been
told who he was), he asked to see me. When he entered the room, I felt... I felt a solid being. I don't
know how to define it, I had never before felt it in a human being - solid. As solid as rock.
Extraordinarily solid - coagulated, an edifice. And quite powerful, I must say. Not like an arrow
(gesture upward) but all around him. Then it was very funny (because there's no doubt he must have
had an awesome effect on people instantly, without a word or anything), but I answered... in my own
way, with something else!
He entered the room wearing some kind of religious headdress, I can't say what, and intending to be
very arrogant. He went past me stiffly, and suddenly what do I see but the man do his pranam.35 He
stepped back, took off his hat and did his pranam. And stayed that way for nearly a quarter of an hour.
And it was interesting, his response was interesting. Then he started talking to me (someone translated
- he spoke in Hindi, I think), asking me to take care of B. I said something in turn, and then thought
34Satprem's Tantric guru.
35Pranam: prostration.

strongly, "Now, time is up, it can't last forever!" (He had already been there for more than fifteen
minutes.) And suddenly I see him stiffen, put his thing back on his head, and go.
He's the only man who gave me that sensation in my whole life.
And it seems that when he went back there, in B.'s state, he told everyone he had never seen such a
thing! That people could trust I was really the Mother! That's the effect it had on him: something that
was able to keep him at bay.
A rather funny thing was that the day before, he had met N., and N. told me, "When that man
entered my room, he stared at me, and I felt forbidden to speak - I wanted to say something but my
mouth remained sealed! He froze me with a look, I couldn't utter a word!"
That's the kind of man he is, he's used to that sort of thing. The most solid man I have ever seen - I
mean, a... oh, a remarkably organized individuality. He must be holding a tight grip on himself.
With Sri Aurobindo... you felt as if you entered into an infinity, always, and so soft, so soft! Always
like... something soft, I don't know. With vibrations that, on the contrary, always made you wide,
peaceful - you felt as if you were touching something limitless.
But that man, a MASS, ooh! harder than iron. Truly interesting.
And he was blue. His aura was blue, with blue pulsations - not radiating out or upward, but
coagulated all around him. A blue like the sea when it's very deep, very tranquil, but luminous. A
magnificent blue.

March 23, 1963
(Mother first reads from her translation of "Savitri" a few excerpts about death. We give here the
original English.)
A
grey
defeat
pregnant
A
whip
to
lash
us
towards
The inconscient world is the spirit's self-made room...

our

with
deathless

victory.
state.

Self-made.
Eternal
Night
shadow
of
Night
is
not
our
beginning
She
is
the
dark
Mother
in
whose
Safe from too swift a waking to world-pain....
Oh, this is....

eternal
nor
womb

our
we
have

Day.
end;
hid

By
Light
we
live
and
to
the
Light
Here
in
this
seat
of
Darkness
mute
In
the
heart
of
everlasting
Light conquered now even by that feeble beam....

we
go.
and
lone,
Nothingness

(X.I.600)
It's marvelous.
Yes, it must be a joy to work on "Savitri."
Oh, mon petit!... It makes you live in a marvelous atmosphere.
So, that's all. What did you bring?
Nothing, except a few Agenda conversations, as always.
Oh, but I am weary of my....
(silence)
It's a snail's pace, so there's nothing interesting. Really a snail's pace.
It's one year since... When was that message? [the turning point of Mother's yoga, the great
"pulsations"] In April '62?
It was towards the end of March.
No, at the end of March, I came upstairs not to go down again, that was on the 16th, I noted it. I noted
it because my [translation] notebook stopped short on that day (!), I put a red mark. 36 But it will soon be
one year since the second experience, the pulsations, the starting point of the work I am doing now -
that was on April 13th. Slightly less than a month later. Well... there's nothing to say. I am on the way,
no doubt, there's no denying the steps made: I do go forward, not backward. But I mean, it's like
wanting to walk round the globe! It's endless.
Nothing spectacular whatsoever - "spectacular," you know, that's what people enjoy. Nothing of the
sort. For instance, there are two things that give you (and others too) a sense that you're making
progress: one is the direct knowledge of what's happening in a given place; the other is the
foreknowledge of coming events. Well, ever since the beginning of my Yoga, the two possibilities or
capacities have been there, with all the admixture (as Sri Aurobindo says) of the movements of the
mind, which befuddles everything. Already around 1910, not only was the capacity there (it would
come off and on), but along with it, a discernment which showed me the mixture, and thus left me
without any certainty. In this regard, therefore, I can't even say there has been a big change - the
change is in the proportion, it's just a question of proportion: proportion in the certainty, proportion in
the accuracy, proportion in the mixture. The mixture keeps decreasing, the certainty keeps increasing -
but that's all. With, now and then (but that has always happened), now and then, a clear, precise,
36The following time, Mother added, "On the 16th, I stopped seeing people downstairs, but on the 18th and 20th I went
down again for the balcony: those were the last two times. Afterwards I was put in bed (ordered!) on April 3rd. Up to April
3rd I still moved around here; then, to bed, no moving! It went on till May. Then the night of April 12th came the second
experience, that's when I called Pavitra to record [the message]."

definite indication - bang! It's a bit more frequent. That's all. So?... Sixty-three years. Sixty-three years
of methodical effort, of constant will, of opportunities for the work - people who want quick results,
they make me laugh, you know!
This body isn't even one that is unprepared. It had capabilities, it was born with certain capabilities
and was prepared for all kinds of experiences. There was also the sort of intuitive discernment Sri
Aurobindo refers to, it had been there since my earliest childhood - veiled, mixed, no doubt, but
present all the same, it was there. Afterwards, it was purified, developed, strengthened, the mixture
lessened and the body was somewhat... (laughing) to perfect itself it went through quite a great deal of
friction of all types. It's certainly more apt today than it was fifty years ago, there isn't a shadow of
doubt about it! But you understand, there's nothing to boast about!
I feel very strongly that things are that way because the Earth is that way.
Yes, quite clearly! Quite clearly.
If there were.... If people aspired, if there were enough people who WANTED that, I feel it would be
done almost in a flash.
Oh, that's absolutely correct, absolutely true. But anyway, it's a fact. And ultimately, a victory that's
conditional [on others], well, it's just a way to speed up Nature's movement a little. If that's what it is,
all well and good - but as I said (it's very good, I make no demands, I don't protest, I am quite peaceful,
and, to tell the truth, the result is all the same to me), there's nothing worth mentioning, that's what I
mean, you can't write stories about that! (laughing) It's not worth talking about it.
If there were something like a living proof of the truth of what was promised - ah, that would be
worthwhile. But that's not it! We haven't reached that point. It [a victory conditional on others] speeds
things up a little; but it has always been said that if people joined in the effort, it would speed things up
to some extent - some extent, but to what extent?... We can't say.
(silence)
Just think how long I have been looking after all these people - some have been here for more than
twenty-five years, thirty years, and... (Mother shakes her head). I believe they have experiences,
perhaps, but nothing to speak of. And the general atmosphere... (Mother shakes her head).
One thing, though: suddenly I read (yesterday or the day before) a sermon delivered in the U.S.A.
by an American (who is a rabbi, a pastor and even a Catholic priest all at the same time!). He heads a
group, a group for the "unity of religions." A fairly young man, and a preacher. He gives a sermon
every week, I think. He came here with some other Americans, stayed for two days and went back. But
then, he sent us the sermons he had given since his return, and in one of them he recounts his "spiritual
journey," as he calls it (a spiritual journey through China, Japan, Indochina, Malaysia, Indonesia, and
so on up to India). What shocked him most in India was the poverty - it was an almost unbearable
experience for him (that's also what prompted the two persons who were with him to leave, and he left
with them): poverty. Personally, I don't know because I've seen poverty everywhere; I saw it wherever
I went, but it seems Americans find it very shocking. Anyway, they came here, and in his sermon he
gives his impression of the Ashram. I read it... almost with astonishment. That man says that the minute
he entered this place, he felt a peace, a calm, a stability he had never felt ANYWHERE else in his life.
He met a man (he doesn't say who, he doesn't name him and I couldn't find out), who he says was such
a "monument of divine peace and quietude that I only wished to sit silently at his side."... Who it is, I
don't know (there's only Nolini who might, possibly, give that impression). He attended the meditation

- he says he had never felt anything so wonderful anywhere. And he left with the feeling this was a
"unique" place in the world from the point of view of the realization of divine Peace. I read that almost
with surprise. And he's a man who, intellectually, is unable to understand or follow Sri Aurobindo (the
horizon is quite narrow, he hasn't got beyond the "unity of religions," that's the utmost he can conceive
of). Well, in spite of that... Those who already know all of Sri Aurobindo, who come here thinking they
will see and who feel that Peace, I can understand. But that's not the case: he was enthralled at once!
It's the same with people who get cured. That I know, to some extent: the Power acts so forcefully
that it is almost miraculous - at a distance. The Power... I am very conscious of the Power. But, I must
say, I find it doesn't act here so well as it does far away. On government or national matters, on the
terrestrial atmosphere, on great movements, also as inspirations on the level of thought (in certain
people, to realize certain things), the Power is very clear. Also to save people or cure them - it acts
very strongly. But much more at a distance than here! (Although the receptivity has increased since I
withdrew because, necessarily, it gave people the urge to find inside something they no longer had
outside.) But here, the response is very erratic. And to distinguish between the proportion that comes
from faith, sincerity, simplicity, and what comes from the Power... Some people I am able to save
(naturally, in my view, it's because they COULD be saved), this is something that for a very long time I
have been able to foresee. But now I don't try to know: it comes like this (gesture like a flash). If, for
instance, I am told, "So and so has fallen ill," well, immediately I know if he will recover (first if it's
nothing, some passing trouble), if he will recover, if it will take some time and struggle and difficulties,
or if it's fatal - automatically. And without trying to know, without even trying: the two things come
together.37 This capacity has developed, first because I have more peace, and because, having more
peace, things follow a more normal course. But there were two or three little instances where I said to
the Lord (gesture of presenting something, palms open upward), I asked Him to do a certain thing, and
then (not very often, it doesn't happen to me often; at times it comes as a necessity, a necessity to
present the thing with a comment - from morning to evening and evening to morning I present
everything constantly, that's my movement [same gesture of presenting something] but here, there is a
comment, as if I were asking, "Couldn't this be done?"), and then the result: yes, immediately. But I am
not the one who presents the thing, you see: it's "just the way it is," it "just happens that way," like
everything else.38 So my conclusion is that it's part of the Plan, I mean, a certain vibration is necessary,
enters [into Mother], intervenes, and... No stories to tell, mon petit! Nothing to fill people with
enthusiasm or give them trust, nothing.
Three or four days ago, a very nice man, whom I like a lot, who has been very useful, fell ill. (He
has in fact been ill for a long time, and he is struggling; for all sorts of reasons of family, milieu,
activities and so on, he isn't taken care of the way he should be, he doesn't take care of his body the
way he should.) He had a first attack and I "saw" him afterwards. But I saw him full of life: his body
was full of life and of will to live. So I said, "No need to worry." Then after some time, maybe not even
a month, another attack, caused not by the same thing but by its consequences. I receive a letter in
which I am informed that he has been taken to the hospital. I was surprised, I said, "But no! He has in
himself the will to live, so why? Why has this happened?" The moment I was informed and made the
contact, he recovered... with fantastic speed! Almost in a few hours. He had been rushed to the hospital,
they thought it was most serious, and two days later he was back home. The hospital doctor said,
"Why, he has received a new life!" But that's not correct: I had put him back in contact with his body's
will, which, for some reason or other, he had forgotten. Things like that, yes, they're very clear, they
37The news and the "diagnosis."
38Which means that Mother does not act personally but she is "acted through" automatically.

take place very consciously... but anyway, nothing worth talking about!
But this man's faith is extraordinary, such faith!... The first word he uttered when he regained
consciousness: "Has Mother permitted my being taken to the hospital?" You understand. So I give him
the full credit for his recovery. With people like that, yes, you can do something, but that's because they
have faith!
Well, then. No stories to tell.
These last few days, while walking in meditation, I said to the Lord, "What do I have? I have no
certainty, no foreknowledge, no absolute power, I have nothing." (I don't mean "I," I mean the body -
this body.) The body was saying: "Do you see my condition? I am still full of..." (it was complaining
bitterly), "oh, full of the silliest movements." Petty movements of apprehension, petty movements of
uncertainty, petty movements of anxiety, petty movements of all kinds of very, very petty things -
those who live a normal life don't take any notice, they don't know, but when you observe what's going
on deep down with that discernment... oh, mon petit! It's so petty, so petty, so petty....
Only one thing (which is not even absolute): a sort of equality that has come into the body - not an
equality of soul (laughing): an equality in the cells! It has come into the body. There is no longer that
clash of joy and pain - always and for everything, every minute, every reaction, "You, Lord, to You,
Lord." As though the cells were chanting, "To You Lord, to You Lord, to You Lord...." And... well,
that's how it is.
There are enough physical miseries to experience what people call "physical pain" - quite enough
(!) Yet, materially, everything is organized to give every possible joy! For example (ever since the age
of five it has been like that), whenever the body felt, "Oh, if I had this.... Oh, it would be nice to have
that," the thing would come in no time. Fantastic! It has always been that way, only it has become more
conscious. Before, it would happen without my noticing it, quite naturally. Now, of course, the body
has changed, it's no longer a baby, it no longer has a child's fancies. But when that kind of Rhythm
comes, when something says, "Oh, this is fine!"... mon petit, it comes in TORRENTS from all sides
without my saying a word. Just like that. There was a time when the body enjoyed it, it was delighted
by it, made very happy by it (even two years ago, a little more perhaps), very happy, it found that
amusing - it was lovely, you see. But now: "To You Lord." Only this, a sort of quiet, constant joy: "To
You Lord, to You Lord, to You Lord...." And on both accounts: for physical pain as well. In that
regard, the body is making progress. Although to tell the truth, its life is made so easy! So easy that it
would have to be quite hard to please not be satisfied - the Lord is full of infinite grace.
No, in spite of everything, the body doesn't have that sort of eternal stability, the sense of its
immortality (immortality isn't the right word), of its permanence. Not that it has a sense of
impermanence, far from it, the cells feel eternal - that much is there. But a certain "something" that
would be sheltered from all attacks. It still feels the attacks. It feels an instability, it doesn't have a
sense of absolute security, it hasn't yet reached a state of absolute security - that's it: the sense of
security. There are still vibrations of insecurity. Yet that seems so mean, so silly! It still lives in
insecurity.... Security, the sense of security only comes through union with the Supreme - nothing in
life as it is, nothing in the world as it is, can offer the sense of security, it's impossible. But to feel the
Supreme's presence so constantly, to be able to pass everything on to Him, "To You, to You, to You,"
and yet not to have a sense of security! A shock or a blow comes (not necessarily personally, but in
life), and there's still a particular vibration: the vibration of insecurity - it still exists. The body finds
that disquieting, painful: "Why?" Not that it complains, but it complains about itself, it finds itself not
up to the mark.
To know that all is You, that You alone exist, to feel You everywhere, to feel You always, and still
to be open to the first thing that comes from outside to give you a blow, a sense of insecurity - how
absurd!

Of course, with a concentration of the true being (gesture above), it disappears instantly - but that
means it isn't the body that feels a sense of security! It's the true consciousness (and quite naturally so,
for it would not be true if it didn't have that sense). But what we want is the body to exist in ITSELF,
by ITSELF, with all qualities WITHIN ITSELF. In other words, God shouldn't need to manifest for the
body to live without anxiety!
No, that's not THE thing!
So it takes a long, long, long time - one year has passed. And if we take stock...
Another example. A year later, I read a letter brought by Nolini.
I began reading the letter, it was four or five pages long and I didn't have time. Nolini didn't say
anything (of course, he is much too well-mannered to say anything), but within himself, he thought,
"Why does Mother waste her time reading this letter when we barely have time to do our work?" It
entered the atmosphere, and even before it reached me, as soon as I saw one, two, three, four, five
pages, I said, "Oh, enough!" At the end of the first page, I said, "Enough!" and put the letter aside. But
the thought from Nolini and the fact that my decision was made just a moment too late, a few seconds
too late... my body was in a sweat from head to toe! It felt terribly exhausted. It took me at least half a
minute of concentration to set things right. You understand, it has become so sensitive that in ordinary
life it would be impossible - but for its transformation it was a necessity. Still, it surprised me.
Naturally, after half a minute it was all over, but I had to concentrate and call for calm.
So the body thought, "Oh, I haven't got beyond that.... If I have to do the right thing in the right way
and right on the dot to keep my balance..." You understand, a sense of insecurity! And very strong,
very strong. Of course, there is something like reason (not quite ordinary reason), something like
reason that says, "When you automatically and always do exactly what should be done, it will vanish."
(Mother laughs) Thank you very much! But as it cannot be a mental decision, then how? You see, you
can learn only through experience, and since everything is in perpetual motion, the experience of the
past cannot help for the future: it's a matter of every minute. So how can you know?... It means we'll
know that we are free from error only when we are all the time, all the time in perfect harmony! But
then there will be no point in knowing it, it will be done! That's the situation. If the body is transformed
and lives naturally in the divine rhythm, why would I need to know it! (Laughing) It will be immaterial
to me, because it will BE. We want to know things when they aren't yet.
The body is like a child who needs encouragement, you know, "Come on now, don't get in a state,
things are fine, you're making progress, you need not worry...." Oh, ridiculous!
There, mon petit.
(Satprem lays his head
on Mother's knees)
A new thing, for example, before ("before" means before last year!), when I gave my blessings, the
Will came and went through me into the person - always. It wasn't an act [by Mother]. But now, it's
visibly perceptible (Mother touches her fingertips), you can almost see the vibration going through the
fingers and into the head [of Satprem]. That's the difference: before, it was always the Consciousness,
the Being working from above - now the body participates. This is different.
Very small things, very small things.

March 27, 1963
(Sometimes she cried out)
I am fed up!
(long silence)
Once I told you about an experience I had, I told you that every time a divine manifestation occurs
(what is called an Avatar), there's always a particular "angle of quest," in the sense of an intense NEED
urging men along the road of evolution towards the Goal, the Transformation, and each avatar saw
from a particular angle, believing it to be THE Goal.39 When I had that experience, I saw it was the
need for Immortality that drove the Vedic Rishis. It came back to me yesterday, and I noted it down:
(Mother reads a handwritten note)
The
Vedic
Rishis
Buddha wanted Permanence....

thirsted

for

Immortality,

Then I looked, wondering, "And what was Christ's path?"... Basically, he always said, "Love thy
neighbor," in other words brotherhood (but that's a modern translation). For him, the idea was
compassion, charity (the Christians say it's the "law of Love," but we're not yet there - that will come
much later). So I wrote:
Jesus preached Compassion....
Then I thought: now, Sri Aurobindo, it's quite clear; for him, the goal was Perfection. Perfection not in
the sense of a summit but of an all-inclusive totality in which everything is represented, has a place.
And I saw that this Perfection would come - must come - in stages. He announced something the
realization of which will stretch over thousands of years. So it must come in stages. And I saw that
what I find essential, indispensable (everything is there, everything finds a place, yet there is a kind of
anguish - not a personal anguish but a terrestrial anguish), is Security. A need for Security - whatever
you attempt, whatever you seek, even Love, even Perfection, it needs Security. Nothing can be
achieved with the feeling that all opposing forces can come and sweep everything away. We must find
the point where nothing can be touched or destroyed or halted. Therefore, it's Security, the very essence
of Security. So I wrote:
Sri

Aurobindo

39See Agenda III, November 27, 1962, p. 436 ff.

promised

Perfection

and
to
what
is Security.

attain
men

it,

the
need

first

requisite,
today,

All the global trends that result in "peace movements" of one kind or another, are nothing but this: they
are expressions of the quest for Security. My own experience is a supersecurity, which can be really
found only in union with the Supreme - nothing, nothing, nothing in the world can give you security,
except this: union, identification with the Supreme. That's what I told you: as long as Sri Aurobindo
was here in his body, I had a sense of perfect Security - extraordinary, extraordinary! Nothing, nothing
could make a dent in it - nothing. So his departure was like... like a smashing of that experience. 40 In
truth, from the supreme point of view, that may have been the cause of his departure.... Though it
seems to me a very small cause for a very big event.... But since in the experience that Security was
taking root more and more, more and more firmly, and was spreading... 41 Probably the time had not
come. I don't know. As I said, from a universal and everlasting (I can't say "eternal"), everlasting point
of view, it's a small cause for a big effect.... We could say it was probably ONE of the causes that made
his departure necessary.
Consequently, according to the experience of these last few days, the quest for Security is but a first
step towards Perfection. He came to announce (I put "promise" deliberately), to PROMISE Perfection,
but between that promise and its realization, there are many steps; and in my experience, this is the first
step: the quest for Security. And it corresponds fairly well to the global state of mind.
(silence)
The nations of the world legitimize that destructive madness of the arms race by saying it's a way to
prevent destruction through fear - that's futile. As an argument, it's futile, but that's the way they think.
It's part of that same thirst or need for Security: nothing can be achieved except in peace, nothing can
be arrived at except in peace, nothing can be realized except in peace - we need peace, individually,
collectively, globally. So let's make horrifying weapons of destruction so that men will be so frightened
that nothing will happen - how childish! But that's the current state of mind. It is still one of those... in
English they say device, a ploy (it's not a "ploy," it's a means - between ploy and means) to urge the
human race on towards its evolutionary goal. And for that, we must catch hold of the Divine: it's a
means of catching hold of the Divine. For there is nothing - nothing, nothing exists from the point of
view of Security, except the Supreme. If we ARE the Supreme, that is to say, the supreme
Consciousness, supreme Power, supreme Existence, then there is Security - outside of that, there is
none. Because everything is in perpetual motion. What exists at "one moment in time," as Sri
Aurobindo says (time is an unbroken succession of "moments"), what exists at a given moment no
longer exists the next, so there's no security. It's the same experience, seen from another angle, as that
of Buddha, who said there was no "permanence." And basically, the Rishis saw only from the angle of
human existence, that's why they were after Immortality. It all boils down to the same thing.
(Mother remains in contemplation)
***
40See Agenda III, November 30, 1962, p. 440 ff.
41Mother commented further on this passage in the following conversation.

Soon afterwards:

I am inundated by a horde of mental questions... flat, superficial - everybody asks me questions in
order to publish my answers! So I refuse. K.G. sent me five or six questions for his journal, each one
more stupidly mental than the other, in connection with the supermind. I am asked to say whether it's
"this way" or whether it's "that way" - the kind of questions you ask a good pupil to see if he has
learned his lesson well!
It turns out that he had already sent me his questions, at the same time last year, and that I had
already sent them back. But they put it all down to my so-called illness, so he sends the same questions
again, now that I am "in a fit state to answer"! So again I return them with the same answer: not
possible. We were joking the other day: Nolini was reading me the questions, and to every question I
answered (tone of a pupil at fault), "Don't know, don't know...!"
(Mother laughs)

March 30, 1963
Last time, you said, "As that Security was taking root more and more, more and more firmly, and
was spreading..." Do you mean that Sri Aurobindo's very presence...
Yes. Yes.
Yet, the world was in quite a turmoil?
That's just what I mean: the world wasn't ready, and there was... (what shall I say?) the paradox of a
center of Security in total contradiction with the general world condition.
He himself said it: "The world is not ready." So...
That's what I meant, his physical presence was the sign of Security taking root, but the world wasn't
ready. So, as the effect of his presence kept increasing, it brought about an increasing contradiction -
an increasing OPPOSITION.
***
Soon afterwards:

We're really going through such a dull period! Dull, dull.
(silence)

There is a sort of review going on of all the elements of the body consciousness, with a sample of the
circumstances of their various manifestations or expressions. All this is passed before me as if to show
me all the points in the body's cells that were contrary to or unprepared for the reception of the divine
Forces. All that comes up in the form of lived memories - things I had more than forgotten (I could
have sworn they no longer existed), but which come back. Un-be-liev-able. And it's not an ego's or a
person's memory, but the memory of a force in motion in the general vibrations. So I see... fantastic
things!
But it's erased immediately; as soon as I wake up, my first movement (gesture of offering) is to
present it all to the Lord: the cause, the effect, the image, the sensation - everything. When it's all seen,
I tell Him, "Now it's Yours." And then I forget - fortunately, thank God!
It goes on every night. It takes the form of all sorts of scenes, of symbols, of memories, from words
to images. It comes in groups and categories of tendencies, it represents the various human tendencies
in detail - it's infinitesimal. It's only because they are multiplied millions of times that they can have
some importance - but they're nothing! Mere nothings. Yet that's just what blocks the way.
It really isn't of interest.
(silence)
After YEARS of it, there may be a tangible result, who knows?... Even then, I am not sure it won't be
limited. If it were a terrestrial result, it would be worthwhile, but it may also be very limited.
It gives me the impression of a miniature painting done with a magnifying glass and tiny dots -
miniatures are painted with a very fine brush, very pointed, and you make tiny dots with a big
magnifying glass. It gives me the impression of that work. And it takes many, many, many tiny dots to
paint just a bit of cheek.
(silence)
Tiny dots, tiny dots.
But it's so dull! So dull, so lackluster, so unchanging, so - uninteresting, really dull - that the
slightest light shines like a bright star! The smallest, slightest, tiniest progress seems like an
extraordinary thing. Like, for example, the attitude in certain cells towards a physical disorder which,
naturally, like all physical disorders, tends to recur. The attitude in the cells changes - not the disorder
(!), the disorder changes only because of the cells' reaction, that's what makes it change; but it recurs
with clockwork regularity - that's its job. It is the way it's received by the cells, their reaction to it, that
brings about the change. And there is now a difference in the cells' reaction. The result of my
observation (an impersonal, general observation) is that there are two types of change (I can't call it
"progress"), two types of change in the reaction: a change that goes on improving, in the sense that the
reaction grows less sharp, the cells are less affected and become not only more conscious but more IN
COMMAND of the reaction (something people are not generally conscious of, but which is what
brings about the cure). And, on the other hand, deterioration: under the unrelenting attack, the cells
panic, become more and more affected and afraid, and it eventually results in a terrible mess and a
catastrophe. Well, the whole thing is observed, studied, experienced; but... (laughing) in ordinary
medicine it's explained away in two words! You see, what I see now is the process - they don't know
the process, only the result. And, well, I notice that as the consciousness grows, the cells panic less and
less and a sort of mastery develops. Of course, it's a pleasing observation, if I may say so, but it doesn't
even make me happy! It seems rather obvious.... Also the proportion is such that to get a really telling
result, it would take years and years and years! Oh, how many years! How slow things are....

So I don't feel impelled to talk about it. I'd rather concern myself with something else - I do the
work, but that's all.

April

April 6, 1963
There is progress in the impersonalization of the physical, bodily consciousness, with consequences
that are probably interesting, but impossible to explain to people who don't understand. For instance...
(silence)
I am conscious of the body, but it isn't the consciousness of this body (Mother touches her body): it's
the consciousness of THE Body - it may be anyone's body. I am conscious, for instance, of vibrations
of disorder (most often they come in the form of suggestions of disorder) in order to see whether they
are accepted and have an effect. Let's take the example of a suggestion of hemorrhage, or some such
suggestion (I mention hemorrhage because it will soon come into the picture). Under the higher
Influence, the body consciousness rejects it. Then begins the battle (all this takes place all the way
down in the cells, in the material consciousness) between what we could call the "will for hemorrhage,"
for example, and the reaction of the body's cells. But it's very like a real battle, a real confrontation.
And all of a sudden, there's something like a general issuing a command and saying, "What's this!"...
You understand, that general is conscious of the higher forces, the higher realities and the divine
intervention in Matter; and after trying to use the will, this reaction, that feeling of peace and so on,
suddenly he is SEIZED by a very strong determination and issues a command - in no time the effect
begins to make itself felt, and little by little everything returns to order.
All this takes place in the material consciousness. Physically, the body has all the sensations - but
not the hemorrhage, you understand. But it does have the sensations, that is, the effects: all the sensory
effects. It goes on for a while and then follows a whole curve. All right. Once the battle is over, I take a
look and wonder (I observe the whole thing, I see my body, which has been fairly shaken, mind you), I
say to myself, "What in the world is all this?" But just for a second, then I forget about it.
A few days afterwards, I receive a letter from someone very close, who has an ardent faith and
really holds on to me with almost perfect faith, exceptional. In the letter: the whole story, the attack, the
hemorrhage, how suddenly the being is SEIZED, the consciousness is SEIZED with an irresistible will,
and hears words - the very words that were uttered HERE. The result: saved (he was dying), saved,
cured.
Just enough time for the letter to reach me.
I remembered my episode... and began to understand that my body is everywhere!!
You see, it's not a question of just these cells here: it's a question of cells in, well, quite a lot of
people, hundreds, maybe thousands - all that clings anywhere and in any way to the higher
Consciousness. And since my mind is silent (I deliberately keep the mind absolutely still, trying not to
react to all that constantly comes to it from "outside," or trying to react almost subconsciously), nothing
is there to think, "Oh, it's this one's body, it's that one's body" - it's THE Body! That's what is so
difficult for people to understand. It is THE body - this (Mother touches her body) is not my body any
more than other bodies (a bit more, in the sense that it is more directly the object of the concentration
of the Force). So everything, all the sensations, the movements of consciousness, the battles, all of it is
everywhere. And suddenly, with this little affair, oh, I understood a fantastic number of things - and
also the difficulty, mon petit!... The difficulty... because really, after this experience, the body was not

ill but very tired. But then it is seized with such things all the time! All the time, all the time, all the
time, you know, they spring up, brrm! pounce on it, brrm! from this side, that side, every which way.
So I have to keep still (gesture of stopping, silent, in the midst of other activities), and then I start
waging the battle.
(silence)
Which means the body has got its own difficulties (no aggregate of cells is free from difficulties in the
present conditions of life), and I think that its capacity to keep still (to an extent) is its only safeguard...
but that doesn't reduce the difficulties at all, since the contact doesn't even depend on the physical
presence!42 But then what tremendous, prodigious power has to be EMBODIED in the physical cells to
withstand all that!...
But there too, a shift is taking place (what I told you once: those abrupt experiences that do not
settle in but are first contacts43 ). After the lesson was drawn from this story, suddenly something arose
in the body consciousness - which isn't ONE body's consciousness but a general body consciousness -
an aspiration, something so pure, so sweet... so sweet... something like an entreaty that Truth and Light
may at last be manifested here, in this. Not "here in this" (Mother touches her own body): it was
everywhere.
Then there was a contact44 - there was a contact - and a pale blue Light, very sweet, very bright,
and an Assurance.
It lasted only a second, but it was like a new chapter suddenly opening up.
Mon petit, you are the only person to whom I can say all this - there is not one, not one! Not one
able to simply understand. Which makes things more difficult, because I am constantly weighed down
by the stupidity of people's thoughts (stupidity in the sense of incomprehension), the thoughts of all
those around me, who think I am ("I," what they call "I," you know, "me"), who think I am ill and... I
can't tell them a thing! If I hadn't spoken to you today, it would be gone. I would never have said
anything. Well, that's the way it is.
So looking at it from an ordinary viewpoint, it's so... fantastic, it means such a... colossal work. Of
course, it's the Lord who does it, but will this hold out? (Mother touches her body) I can't say.
If He wants, certainly He will find a way for it to hold out. But the thing is rather new....
(silence)
My only method is a kind of shield of mental silence (in the ordinary mind), so that all the people's
thoughts do not come and pester me all the time, without letup. But they creep underneath! With some
people, the moment they enter the room, I feel exhausted, because of their attitude. It doesn't work
through thought at all: it's a special vibration in my body.
With others, on the contrary, it's fine.
And I don't try to observe or study or understand - God knows! There is no need to understand: it's
42The contact with other bodies (which in fact are not "other").
43See conversation of March 16.
44Gesture of junction between the Supreme and this general body consciousness.

self-evident.
Only one thing is always present: to keep intact and POWERFULLY conscious the sense of the
divine Presence - that's all. That's the single concern of the cells.
From time to time (Mother laughs), they hold... a kind of little conference among themselves, they
seem to tell each other, "No one can interfere with That!"45 It makes them happy: "All their thoughts
are powerless in front of That!"
That's all, mon petit. More work for you.
It's stupendous. Stupendous.
Yes, yes. I had a strong feeling of something... well, something rather new.

April 16, 1963
(Satprem did not keep note of the beginning of this conversation or of the "personal" questions and the
circumstances that led to the situation. It seems that X had invited Satprem to his place, in spite of their
break, and wanted to continue with him the Tantric sadhana.)
From a deeper standpoint, what connection should I have with X? If I go there, there will be some
interchange despite everything, won't there?
He may influence you, because you were under his influence in the beginning. He does have the power
to influence you - to enclose you in his own atmosphere. But he cannot keep you imprisoned! That's
not possible, you are beyond his grasp! So, if... (how can I put it?) if you can learn to receive his force
without being enclosed in his thought, that's very good. Or rather to receive his force without being
impressed or influenced by his thought - the thought is very narrow, but the force is very strong.
He does put you in contact with a peace, it's a fact - a boxed-in peace, but a peace all the same, a
real peace, a concrete, concrete stillness. So the thing to be done (because that peace is perceptible I've
had the experience of it so many times) is to remain very objective within that peace; then you can
benefit from the peace without accepting its limits. You should, for instance, be able to keep that peace
in the cells (the brain cells if you feel tired) without allowing yourself to be enclosed like that. There is
no need to struggle, just remain turned upward.... It's very hard to explain. But maybe you will
experience it, then you'll understand what I mean.
There is always a vibration subtler than his vibration of peace, and that one must remain free,
without getting enclosed in the other. For example, if something pulls and causes a mental tension in
the head, just keep in contact with that peace (oh, he does have a capacity of mental immobility), and
45The experience of the Presence.

let it penetrate you, but without concentrating all your being on it: allow the rest of your activity to
unfold as usual in an infinity. It's only the vibrations of the physical mind that you should keep in that
stability.
It's difficult to put it into words. But if you are able to do that, it could do you good, it could be
restful.
My experience, you see, is that his mental silence is rigid - rigid, closed - but the mental substance,
the brain's physical substance really rests, his silence can rid you of a headache, for instance.
It's a very, very material vibration, he has some mastery there.
(What follows was unfortunately not kept.)

April 20, 1963
D. was telling me just now that he is advised to meditate with his eyes open (I know, it keeps you
active somewhere), and he said that if by mischance he closes his eyes, he can't move any more! He is
conscious but completely paralyzed: he can't get up, can't move, can't even turn his head!
It's dangerous.
So I advised him to be sure to keep his eyes open: it maintains a certain activity. When you close
your eyes, you plunge into trance (you are perfectly conscious, but you go into trance and the body is
absolutely stilled). That's what Thon had taught me: you free the body consciousness and train it in
such a way that it can act on its own, so that while you are deep in trance, you can get up, write, speak,
do anything - you are outside the body, there's just a link left. But it's a whole training. It's not too easy,
but still it can be done.
I did it to the point that even if the link is cut (I had the experience), the body can go on speaking.
Very useful.
I told D. that I will teach him later, because it's not good to be paralyzed like that: if someone came
in abruptly, anything could happen.
But it requires some work.
In my case I never went into trance in my life, I never even lost the contact with the outside.
Didn't you ever see your body?
Never.46
46This is in fact incorrect. Satprem remembers occasions when, while playing in his room as a child, he saw his body
quietly asleep in bed - only to rush back into it.

Well, it's safer that way than the other way!
I've known several people, especially I., who worked with Dilip (she used to have visions, she
danced also): when she went into meditation, it was all over; even when she tried to come back and
move, she couldn't. Dilip had to come and pull her hands, disengage her fingers and move her body, till
she began coming around. But you understand, that sort of thing won't do at all.
Better be more on this side than on that side.
But it's an incapacity, all the same, isn't it?
It's a lack of connection! She doesn't have any control over her body, that's all. Something that has
never, never happened to me.
I mean that being unable, like me, to go into trance is an incapacity, isn't it?
No, I am certain that you went into trance, because I saw you, but you didn't know it.
In meditation?
No, not in meditation: at night.
In my case, I found out I had that capacity because it made me prone to fainting - not too often, but
off and on it happened. When I was a child and didn't know a thing, I fainted a couple of times; the
fainting, as it happened, wasn't unconscious - it was conscious - and after a bit of practice (not the
practice of fainting!), of occult practice, when I fainted I would see myself. Even before that, I had seen
myself but without knowing what it all meant, I couldn't make head or tail of it. But I would see
myself. And afterwards, whenever I would faint, the first thing I did was to see my body lying down in
a ridiculous position. So I would rush back into it vigorously, and it would be all over.
Of course, I was probably born with some abilities! (laughter)
But are my meditations...
Oh, mon petit, they're excellent, don't speak ill of your meditations, they're perfect! I have rarely seen
such peace. Because I have seen many meditations with some peace, but generally a very tamasic,
heavy peace. But this kind of peace that rises and turns into a white bliss, that's very rare. Very rare.
And it's the same every time: regular, automatic, effortless; it's your natural state. I don't know if you
had it before coming here, I can't say....
No, with you it becomes very concrete. When I'm alone, the perception is more vague; with you, I
almost seem to see.
But that's because when you're alone, it lacks some shakti! (laughter)
Yes, that's true.
But generally, the best I've seen here with people who have practiced a lot is a blank - a blank
silence, you know. It's empty, still, quiet, silent, but blank - so after a while, you've had enough of it!
That can't last very long. That's what people in India generally have... and they come out of it in a daze.
But with you, it's like a surging up into whiteness - something luminous but white - in other words,
it has a CONTENT. Very luminous, very white, and wonderfully still. It's blissful too, one can stay in it
for a very long time - most pleasant.

The only thing I've done since I started meditating with you is a broadening, because at the
beginning, it was a bit limited. 47 It's extremely difficult to have this white peace together with breadth.
Sri Aurobindo said to me (when I told him about all those experiences), he always said to me that to
have this FULL silence - concrete, white, pure, absolutely pure - TOGETHER WITH IMMENSITY...
there are not many who can have it. But I must say that I have broadened your silence a lot, quite a lot.
Now I no longer feel hemmed in - I don't like to feel hemmed in! I no longer feel like that: it's a
spreading out.
It's good. kilo, don't complain of what you have, some people work many LIVES to get that.
The other extreme is an innate ability to go out of one's body, a spontaneous ability to go out of
one's body. To have a trance as you understand it, concrete, absolutely material, one must be able to go
out, come back in, go out, come back in [at will]. But as people generally take great pains to go out,
they don't know how to get back in any more! So they find themselves in ridiculous situations.
I had two experiences of that kind. The first was at Tlemcen 48 and the second in Japan.... There was
an epidemic of influenza, an influenza that came from the war (the 1914 war), and was generally fatal.
People would get pneumonia after three days, and plop! finished. In Japan they never have epidemics
(it's a country where epidemics are unknown), so they were caught unawares; it was an ideal breeding
ground, absolutely unprepared - incredible: people died by the thousands every day, it was incredible!
Everybody lived in terror, they didn't dare to go out without masks over their mouths. Then somebody
whom I won't name asked me (in a brusque tone), "What Is this?" I answered him, "Better not think
about it." "Why not?" he said, "It's very interesting! We must find out, at least you are able to find out
whatever this is." Silly me, I was just about to go out; I had to visit a girl who lived at the other end of
Tokyo (Tokyo is the largest city in the world, it takes a long time to go from one end to the other), and
I wasn't so well-off I could go about in a car: I took the tram.... What an atmosphere! An atmosphere of
panic in the city! You see, we lived in a house surrounded by a big park, secluded, but the atmosphere
in the city was horrible. And the question, "What Is this?" naturally came to put me in contact - I came
back home with the illness. I was sure to catch it, it had to happen! (laughing) I came home with it.
Like a bang on the head - I was completely dazed. They called a doctor. There were no medicines
left in the city - there weren't enough medicines for people, but as we were considered important
people (!) the doctor brought two tablets. I told him (laughing), "Doctor, I never take any medicines."
"What!" he said. "It's so hard to get them!" "That's just the point," I replied, "they're very good for
others!" Then, then... suddenly (I was in bed, of course, with a first-rate fever), suddenly I felt seized by
trance - the real trance, the kind that pushes you out of your body - and I knew. I knew: "It's the end; if
I can't resist it, it's the end." So I looked. I looked and I saw it was a being whose head had been half
blown off by a bomb and who didn't know he was dead, so he was hooking on to anybody he could to
suck life. And each of those beings (I saw one over me, doing his "business"!) was one of the countless
dead. Each had a sort of atmosphere - a very widespread atmosphere - of human decomposition,
utterly pestilential, and that's what gave the illness. If it was merely that, you recovered, but if it was
one of those beings with half a head or half a body, a being who had been killed so brutally that he
didn't know he was dead and was trying to get hold of a body in order to continue his life (the
atmosphere made thousands of people catch the illness every day, it was swarming, an infection), well,
with such beings, you died. Within three days it was over - even before, within a day, sometimes. So
47Mother had once told Satprem that he was in a kind of "white cube."
48Mother means the experience when the link is cut off and one cannot reenter one's body (which means one is medically
dead). The first experience at Tlemcen is probably the one when Thon had a fit of anger while Mother had gone out in her
vital body in search of the mantra of life," and the link was cut off by Theon's anger.

once I saw and knew, I collected all the occult energy, all the occult power, and... (Mother bangs down
her fist, as if to force her way into her body) I found myself back in my bed, awake, and it was over.
Not only was it over, but I stayed very quiet and began to work in the atmosphere.... From that moment
on, mon petit, there were no new cases! It was so extraordinary that it appeared in the Japanese papers.
They didn't know how it happened, but from that day on, from that night on, not a single fresh case.
And people recovered little by little.
I told the story to our Japanese friend in whose house we were living, I told him, "Well, that's what
this illness is - a remnant of the war; and here's the way it happens.... And that being was repaid for his
attempt!" Naturally, the fact that I repelled his influence by turning around and fighting... [dissolved the
formation]. But what power it takes to do that! Extraordinary.
He told the story to some friends, who in turn told it to some friends, so in the end the story became
known. There was even a sort of collective thanks from the city for my intervention.... But the whole
thing stemmed from that: "What Is this illness? You're able to find out, aren't you?" (Laughter) Go and
catch it!
But that feeling of being absolutely paralyzed, a prey to something - absolutely paralyzed, you
can't... You are no longer in your body, you understand, you can't act on it any more. And a sense of
liberation when you are able to turn around.
I had a tremendous fever, which naturally dropped little by little - after a few days I was completely
cured; even immediately, I was almost cured.
There, petit.
So you're going there... [to X's place].
(silence)
As for me, I am debating with Death.
It's exactly the universal state of mind: a state of disbelief, oh, terrible! If we didn't know that
something will come to replace it, it would be terrible.
This Savitri is wonderful, he foresaw everything, saw everything, everything, absolutely everything,
there isn't one point he left unexplored!

April 22, 1963
(Letter to Mother from Satprem)
Rameshwaram, Monday, 22 April
Sweet Mother,

I arrived here yesterday. So far I have spent most of my time struggling against a horrible
impression in my heart, my thought and my body, so strong that if I could, I would catch the first train
home today. I have never had such an impression here. I almost wired you to call for your help. I shall
try to "hold out" here as long as is decently possible, then will leave as soon as I can.
On the material level, the conditions are as wretched as possible - in a word, complete barrenness in
complete squalor. My body isn't too brilliant, but I hope it will get better. On the mental and affective
level = NIL. That leaves the one Thing without which all would collapse.
I need you terribly.
With love,
Signed: Satprem

(Mother's reply)
April 23, 1963
Satprem, mon cher petit,
Your letter has just come. It only confirmed what I had seen and FELT. The last two nights were
downright bad; and it is hardly better during the day.
Of course, you should come back as soon as you find it possible.
Wire me as soon as you have made a decision. I am doing my best to make you feel that I am with
you.
Tenderly
Signed: Mother

(Excerpt from a letter to Sujata)
Monday morning, 22 April '63
............
I have just written a word to Mother to tell her that if I could, I would catch the first train home.
When I arrived here, I got a horrible impression as never before, almost a panic. Everything was so
terribly void and far away. Probably I have grown hypersensitive. If I were not afraid of yielding to that
impression and if it weren't rude to X, I would take noon train today. The new "guest house" is beyond

description49 : cement walls enclosed within cement walls; the plan is so wonderful that not a whiff of
air can blow in here, nor can one see a single blade of grass. There are magnificent wrought-iron
railings and openwork cement designs, but not even the most basic amenities. I absolutely refused to
enter that sarcophagus, so they put me up in an adjoining house purchased by X and used as a garage.
It's unspeakably filthy. It didn't even occur to them to offer me a mat. Finally they brought a bench for
me to sleep on, which I refused.... So much for the material conditions. I hope the body will get better.
As soon as I can decently leave, I shall weigh anchor.
Signed: Satprem

April 25, 1963
(Letter to Mother from Satprem)
Rameshwaram, 25 April '63
Sweet Mother,
I received your card of the 23rd yesterday, and it coincided with an improvement in the
"atmosphere" and even a physical improvement. I have rarely felt your Force and your Presence so
concretely, continuously and powerfully as since I arrived here. To say that it is the only reality is
almost superfluous - That alone really LIVES. All the rest is a false show. I am anxious to leave this
place, but X said he wants to make certain changes in my japa, so I have to wait for the right moment.
It is difficult to hurry X, as you know. I will wire you as soon as the time comes. Otherwise, I am
experiencing X's power of mental stillness, which is quite remarkable. All the rest I find rather poor.
............
More and more I feel, live and see that That alone is real. It is a very engrossing experience.
M, with gratitude
I am at your feet
Signed: Satprem
(Excerpt from a letter to Sujata)

49A gift from the Ashram's businessmen.

April 25, 1963
............
I am waiting for X to make certain changes in my japa, as he said he would, and will then come
back without further delay. These last two days my health has been better. I am no longer constantly
tired as I was before. In the evening I take a walk alone in the vast dunes near Rameshwaram, it feels
like Arabia, and no loudspeakers! You rest in a sort of tranquil infinity.
............
The monkeys stole my mirror while I was taking my bath, and after marveling at themselves in it at
length, they broke it. Then they threw my toothpaste into the well. They were kind enough, however, to
leave me my razor, for fear I would end up looking like them, probably!
............
Signed: Satprem

April 29, 1963
(Letter to Mother from Satprem)
Rameshwaram, Monday, 29 April
Sweet Mother,
On Friday X gave me a new mantra, then the next day he told me that during his puja he received
an "order" to the effect that this mantra was not suitable and he should give me another one. I am
supposed to receive the new mantra tomorrow, Tuesday. X said this mantra would be final and with
effect. I do hope so, for I would really like to be through with all these changes and preparations and
delays, to have the Word, as the Rishis said, and fix myself on it. I would like not to return to
Rameshwaram any more and to be through with these dillydallyings. Anyway, I'll have to wait for
another three days after receiving the new mantra, so that X can see whether it has the desired "effect."
So I cannot leave until Thursday.
I hope this time it will be final and everything will settle into the true Rhythm.
I feel your help very strongly.
With love,
Signed: Satprem

May
May 3, 1963
Did X tell you something about world events, about war?
He said what he always says, that there is going to be war. That war is certain.
War is always there, it seems!
Do you see new things on that level?
You know, I live from day to day. With only the feeling of "that" moving on very fast. By "that," I
mean a large number of things.
It's very hard to say, really.
It's the perception of a terrestrial movement more than anything else. So the details are unimportant
in themselves, but they are symptomatic of the whole. I mean that difficulties, obstacles, battles,
victories, advances are in themselves nothing but indications of a general movement: at times, the
resistance and opposition are formidable; at other times there are fantastic advances or progress,
seemingly miraculous. If you see everything together, you feel, you feel a sort of thrust - an overall
thrust - in which a small cellular concentration seems really unimportant in itself; its importance
diminishes with its lack of resistance, in the sense that the more it allows the Work to be done without
hindering or distorting the movement - without hindering it or making it more complicated - the more
the sense of its importance diminishes. In other words, it appears important only insofar as it hinders.
There is evidently a twofold movement: on one hand, something that tries to draw less and less the
attention and concentration of others, that is, to lessen the sense of intermediary necessary for forces
and thoughts to spread (more and more there is an attempt to undo that 50 ), and on the other hand, an
increase - at times prodigious, staggering - of power. Now and then (seldom, and I must say I don't at
all try to make it happen more often), now and then, for a minute - not even a minute: a few seconds -
comes a sense of absolute Power; but immediately it is covered over, veiled. The effect at a distance is
becoming greater and greater, but that is not the result of a conscious will - I mean there is no attempt
to have more power, none at all. Now and then, there's the observation (a very amusing observation,
sometimes) that for a moment (but it's a matter of seconds), the Power is absolute, and then the usual
hodgepodge takes over again.
The effect on others is increasing considerably, though it too isn't the result of an attempt in that
direction, not at all: those things are automatic. Yet, as I said, at certain seconds, there rises...
something that wills. "Wills," but not in the ordinary way: something that... it's between knowing,
seeing and willing. A little something that has something of all three and is... as hard as diamond... (oh,
how can I explain it? I don't know, there are no words for it), it has something of the emotive vibration,
but that's not it; it has nothing to do with anything intellectual, nothing at all; it's neither intellectual
vision nor supramental knowledge, that's not it, it's something else. It is... a diamondlike, live force -
live, living. And that's all-powerful. But extremely fleeting - it immediately gets covered over by a
heap of things, like visions, supramental vision, understanding, discernment - all this has become a
50Mother means the perception of herself as a radiating center for the higher Forces. Mother commented on this passage
later, on May 29 (see under that date).

constant mass, you understand.
From the standpoint of sensitivity or sensation (I don't know what to call it), when the body rests
and enters the static state of pure Existence... Before, it was (or gave) a sense of total immobility - not
something motionless: a "non-movement," I don't know; not the opposition between something
motionless and something in motion, not that - the absence of any possibility of movement. But now,
as it happens, the body has the sense not only of a terrestrial movement, but of a universal movement
so fantastically rapid that it is imperceptible, beyond perception. As if beyond Being and Non-Being,
there were a "something" that's both... I mean, that doesn't move WITHIN a space but is both beyond
immobility and beyond movement, in the sense that it's so rapid as to be absolutely imperceptible to
ALL the senses (I don't mean merely the physical senses), all the senses in all the worlds.
This is something new.
When I lie down, I go from one state to the other with extraordinary speed. And I've noticed (the
thing is just at its beginning, so I can't really say), I've noticed that in that state, the Movement 51
exceeds the force or power that concentrates the cells into an individual form. And that state seems to
be all-powerful, although devoid of conscious will or vision (for the moment). It's a state... (how can I
explain this?) whose characteristics exceed the power that concentrates the cells into an individual
body. The effect is automatic (not willed): as soon as something takes the form of a physical pain, it
disappears INSTANTLY. But then, and this is most interesting, the second the body reverts to a certain
state - its ordinary state, which isn't the ordinary human state, of course, but its ordinary, habitual state
- it recaptures the MEMORY of its pain, and along with the memory comes the possibility of reverting
to it if a certain number of conditions are not automatically fulfilled. I don't know if what I am saying
makes any sense, but that's how the experience is.... It is probably the passage from the true thing to the
thing no longer true - not what is meant by Falsehood here on earth (that's something else altogether),
but a first alteration compared to the pure Vibration. It gives the impression of a wrong habit, what
remains is merely a question of a wrong habit. It's not the principle of distortion that works here, but
the wrong habit due to the effect of ANOTHER principle. And something is to be found to check -
check, eliminate, prevent - that effect from recurring automatically.
Because it happens CONSTANTLY. It's a constant phenomenon: passing from this to that, this to
that, this to that, to such a point - it's so strong - that a second comes, or a minute, or anyway a certain
interval of time (I don't know), when you are neither this nor that; then you have a feeling of
nothingness. It lasts just an instant; if it lasted longer, it would probably result in fainting or something,
I can't say what. But it happens all the time: this, that (oscillating gesture). And between this and that,
there is a passage.
Life on the surface (what people see of it, what they are in contact with) is certainly a sort of
mixture of the two, with something going on behind the screen, but what you see on the screen is a sort
of combination of the two - they don't really combine, but the visual effect is odd [for Mother]. By
"visual," I don't mean just for the eyes but for the outer consciousness. It's a bizarre life, neither this nor
that, nor a mixture of the two, nor a juxtaposition, but as though both were operating through each
other. It must be intercellular: something that goes this way (Mother intertwines the fingers of one
hand with the fingers of the other in a continuous movement of interpenetration), so that the mixture
must be very microscopic, on the surface.
(Mother remains engrossed,
"looking" at the experience)
51In the next conversation, Mother clarified: "It isn't a movement or a vibration.... To put it accurately, one should say 'this
something.'"

But from a much more external viewpoint, the night that followed your arrival there 52 was dreadful, in
the sense that the consciousness was put in contact with all the most negative and destructive things:
like an entire world, yes, of denial, of refusal too, of opposition, of battle, of ill will - the visual
appearance was chalk-white, you know, the soulless white of chalk, everything was like that, even
black was chalk-white (!). Something absolutely stripped of all soul life. Horrible. I don't know, I
would have to go back years and years and years to find anything like it in my memory. And I was
right in it, it was forced on me; it was as if I were made to stay there and watch it all.
I forgot: immediately afterwards I swept everything clean. Except for what I've just said, I don't
remember what it was - I don't remember what it was because I did NOT want it to exist. But it was
horrible. And in the morning, there was such a painful impression! So I thought something was wrong
over there, and when I received your letter, I understood. But it isn't limited to one person or another,
one place or another: it seems to evoke a universal way of being, that's what troubles me. As if an
entire way of being which I've been resisting for... for, well, more than seventy years at any rate, which
I've been keeping at arm's length so it may no longer exist in a real way, as if it were all forced on me.
Like a thing from a past that no longer has the right to exist.
Afterwards, it got better. That night was the worst.
But during the morning meditation, I was at a loss.... Is it the symbol of a clinging to the past?
Possible. But then there are plenty of people like that in the world, who cling to the past, plenty....
(silence)
The next morning, for an hour, I had an experience.... Everything always happens as if it were in the
body (but this body has become a kind of representative and symbolic object), it always takes place that
way, whether it's a sense of imminent death or a sense of perfect immortality. All that always takes
place in the body - it is the battlefield, it is the field of victory, it is the Defeat, it is the Triumph, it is
everything. So I noted the experience down. (Mother hands a slip of paper to Satprem):
"The
Lord
but
the
and the Victory.

is
Lord

"He
is
the
of
all
that
the
constant
towards a more total and perfect harmony.
"Perpetual
in absolute immobility."

peaceful
also

is

the

joyous
is;

but
effort

resignation,
struggle
acceptance
also

movement

This isn't an intellectual reflection, it's the notation of the experience: the constant, twofold movement
of total acceptance of all that is, as an absolute condition to participate in all that will be, and at the
same time, the perpetual effort towards a greater perfection. And this was the experience of all the
cells.
The experience lasted more than an hour: the two conditions.
52At Rameshwaram, the night of April 21.

That's exactly what made a sharp division in the whole spiritual thought or spiritual will of
mankind. The point doesn't seem to have been understood. Some, like Buddha and that whole line,
have declared that the world is incorrigible, that the only thing to do is to get out of it, and that it can
never be otherwise - it changes, but really remains the same. The result is a certain attitude of perfect
acceptance. So, for them, the goal is to get out - that is, you escape: you leave the world as it is and
escape. Then there are the others, who sense a perfection towards which men strive indefinitely and
which is realized progressively. And I see more and more that the two movements complement each
other, and not only complement each other but are almost indispensable to each other.
In other words, the change that arises from a refusal to accept the world as it is has no force, no
power: what is needed is an acceptance not only total but comprehensive, joyous - to find supreme joy
in things in order to have (it's not a question of right or power)... in order to make it possible for things
to change.
Putting it differently, you must become the Supreme in order to help in His action, in the changing
of the world; you must have the supreme Vibration in order to participate in that Movement, which I
am now beginning to feel in the body's cells - a Movement which is a sort of eternal Vibration, without
beginning or end. It has no beginning (the earth has a beginning, so that makes it easy; with the earth's
beginning, we have the beginning of the earth's history, but that's not the case here), it has no
beginning, it is... something existing from all eternity, for all eternity, and without any division of time:
it's only when it is projected onto a screen that it begins to assume the division of time. But you can't
say a "second," or an "instant".... It's hard to explain.... No sooner do you begin to feel it than it's gone:
something boundless, without beginning or end, a Movement so total - total and constant, constant -
that it is perceived as total immobility.
Absolutely indescribable. Yet it is the Origin and Support of the whole terrestrial evolution.
When you speak of terrestrial things, it's very easy, very easy.
These words (Mother shows the notation of her experience) come long after the experience is over.
There is a sort of silence, of immobility, and it's like something that settles slowly, slowly; and once it
has settled, here is the residue (Mother shows her note, laughing).

May 11, 1963
(The beginning of this conversation was noted from memory.)
... If I could only have the "Word," as the Rishis said, the true mantra, I would keep at it, I'd do
hours of japa if necessary, but I would go right to the end. It's as if I were told, "See this plot of
land, there are ten million cubic feet of earth to dig, and at the end of it is freedom." Well, I'd set to
it, whatever the time needed, because I'd know there is an end. But for that you need a pickaxe.
Nobody can give you the true mantra. It's not something that is given: it's something that wells up from

within. It must spring from within all of a sudden, spontaneously, like a profound, intense need of your
being - then it has power, because it's not something that comes from outside, it's your very own cry.
I saw, in my case, that my mantra has the power of immortality; whatever happens, if it is uttered,
it's the Supreme that has the upper hand, it's no longer the lower law. And the words are irrelevant, they
may not have any meaning - to someone else, my mantra is meaningless, but to me it's full, packed
with meaning. And effective, because it's my cry, the intense aspiration of my whole being.
A mantra given by a guru is only the power to realize the experience of the discoverer of the
mantra. The power is automatically there, because the sound contains the experience. I saw that once in
Paris, at a time when I knew nothing of India, absolutely nothing, only the usual nonsense. I didn't even
know what a mantra was. I had gone to a lecture given by some fellow who was supposed to have
practiced "yoga" for a year in the Himalayas and recounted his experience (none too interesting, either).
All at once, in the course of his lecture, he uttered the sound OM. And I saw the entire room suddenly
fill with light, a golden, vibrating light.... I was probably the only one to notice it. I said to myself,
"Well!" Then I didn't give it any more thought, I forgot about the story. But as it happened, the
experience recurred in two or three different countries, with different people, and every time there was
the sound OM, I would suddenly see the place fill with that same light. So I understood. That sound
contains the vibration of thousands and thousands of years of spiritual aspiration - there is in it the
entire aspiration of men towards the Supreme. And the power is automatically there, because the
experience is there.
It's the same with my mantra. When I wanted to translate the end of my mantra, "Glory to You, O
Lord," into Sanskrit, I asked for Nolini's help. He brought his Sanskrit translation, and when he read it
to me, I immediately saw that the power was there - not because Nolini put his power into it (!), God
knows he had no intention of "giving" me a mantra! But the power was there because my experience
was there. We made a few adjustments and modifications, and that's the japa I do now - I do it all the
time, while sleeping, while walking, while eating, while working, all the time.53
And that's how a mantra has life: when it wells up all the time, spontaneously, like the cry of your
being - there is no need of effort or concentration: it's your natural cry. Then it has full power, it is
alive. It must well up from within.... No guru can give you that.
Well up.... Well, it's a long way to go! I will need a great deal of paper for all those "diagrams"
[Tantric diagrams given by X]: seventy-two every day.
Do you want some paper?
Yes, quite a lot of it!
But how big?
About this big [approximately four inches]. And the paper should be very smooth. You understand,
53Mother later clarified: "'Glory to You, O Lord' isn't MY mantra, it's something I ADDED to it - my mantra is something
else altogether, that's not it. When I say that my mantra has the power of immortality, I mean the other, the one I don't speak
of! I have never given the words.... You see, at the end of my walk, a kind of enthusiasm rises, and with that enthusiasm, the
'Glory to You' came to me, but it's part of the prayer I had written in Prayers and Meditations: 'Glory to You, O Lord, alltriumphant Supreme' etc. (it's a long prayer). It came back suddenly, and as it came back spontaneously, I kept it. Moreover,
when Sri Aurobindo read this prayer in Prayers and Meditations, he told me it was very strong. So I added this phrase as a
kind of tail to my japa. But 'Glory to You, O Lord' isn't my spontaneous mantra - it came spontaneously, but it was
something written very long ago. The two things are different."

it should be written with "chandanam" [sandal paste] and a stick! And assuming each diagram
takes me three or four minutes... for seventy-two that means... it'll be a good four hours! So the
paper should be smooth enough - and a good amount: seventy-two sheets every day.
Seventy-two sheets.... Where can we find that?
I'll have to go to the Press.
They've no paper left, mon petit, with that state of war. But I have some paper.
But you need it.
Not all of it. One ream of paper.... Will you look down there and see if there's a box or something?
Let's see.
(Satprem pulls out a box)
It's turned completely yellow.... Does it matter?
The water would soak into it! Because I have to write with chandanam mixed in water, you
understand, and with a twig of "Divine Love"! [pomegranate]
Without a piece of cotton or anything?
No, nothing. A twig which I cut into a nib.
Are the drawings small?
It's a rectangle divided into three compartments, with figures and letters - a Sanskrit letter. Quite a
job, I can tell you!
Seventy-two every day!... Mon petit! (Mother laughs)
I've got to find something....
When I come out of it, I feel stunned.
But that's just what they want!
I tell you, I know it, they want to stupefy you. And of course, when you're stupefied enough, they'll
put a good dose of force and then it seems like a miracle!
You understand, I am supposed to keep squatting for two hours over those blessed scribblings.
But tell me, couldn't you be allowed to do that sitting on a chair, at a table?
I don't know.
Why not? It doesn't occur to him [X] because he's used to sitting and writing on the ground. It's the
same as if I thought it impossible to meditate unless I sat cross-legged and bolt upright!... Fortunately, I
lived with Sri Aurobindo, who never used to sit cross-legged. He told me right away that it was all a

question of habits - subconscious habits. It has no importance whatsoever. And how well he explained:
if a posture is necessary for you, it will come by itself. And it's perfectly true, for instance, that when
necessary, the body will suddenly sit up straight - it comes spontaneously. As he said, the important
thing is not the external frame but the inner experience, and if there is a physical necessity and your
inner experience is entirely sincere, that physical necessity will come ALL BY ITSELF. 54 This is
something I am absolutely sure of. And he gave me his own example (I had mine, too) of certain things
considered dangerous or bad, which we both did independently and spontaneously, and which were a
great help to us! Consequently, all those stories of posture and so on are the petty mechanical bounds of
the human mind.
It came to me while I was walking [for the japa]. I had a kind of vision of you squatting askew and
writing. And I thought, "But that's awful! He'll ruin his health!"
What is needed is to have the inner attitude.
Well, precisely, the inner attitude... I kind this new work empty and mechanical.
Don't you feel the words you write?
They're figures. Figures and one Sanskrit letter. But you can't say there's much soul in figures, can
you?
Will you show it to me? I'd like to see.
I'll write it for you.
(Satprem draws the Tantric diagram
he has been instructed to do 72 times
a day for three times 72 days. It is a
square divided into 9 smaller squares
which contain figures and one Sanskrit
letter. The first thing Mother
does is to add up all the figures:)
Did you add them up? No? Whatever way you do it, it adds up to 72.... 9 is the figure of birth.
It should be done 72 times for 72 days, and three times over.
And 72, that means 7 + 2, or 9.
And this [the Sanskrit letter] is HRIM.
It's one of the three essential sounds. I don't remember now, but each of them represents one aspect of
the Mother.
Sujata told me it's Mahalakshmi.
54Such is the case, for example, of Anandamayi-M, who was said to be hysterical because of the strange gestures she
made during her meditations, until it turned out that they were ritual asanas and mudras which she performed
spontaneously.

I was hesitating between Mahalakshmi and Mahasaraswati.
(Mother remains concentrated)
It is clearly taken as a symbol of the gestation of the new birth, the second birth, the divine birth. That's
certain.
He said 72 days?
Three times 72 days.... A little more than eight months, that is.
That's it.
It's... ([laughing] I've just asked him!) it's the work of gestation for the birth of the divine
consciousness.
And 7 (7 and 2) is interesting. 7 is the realization; 2 is dual: a dual realization. If you put both
together, you get the figure of gestation.
You see, Mahalakshmi is the Divine Mother's aspect of love, the perfection of manifested love,
which must come before this supreme Love (which is beyond the Manifestation and the
Nonmanifestation) can be expressed - the supreme Love referred to in Savitri when the Supreme sends
Savitri to the earth:
For ever love, O beautiful slave of God!
(XI.I.702)
It's to prepare the earth to receive the Supreme's manifestation, the manifestation of His Victory.
Seen in that way, it becomes clear - comprehensible, and comprehensive, too: it has a content.
(Mother suddenly points to a piece of
paper on the table beside her, on
which the figure 8 is written)
Did you notice this figure?... There's a line in Savitri (I can't quote exactly): "Wherever Nature is, He
(the Supreme) too is there, for, in truth, He and She are one." 55 I was asked to find an illustration for
this line,56 and I found the 8.
The drawing starts here (Mother draws the first half of the 8): it's the Supreme leaning forward.
Then, Nature in its base, Nature in sleep (the base of the 8). And here (the top of the 8), I put two little
drawings (as if to symbolize an eye, a nose and a mouth) to evoke the summit of consciousness. So the
Supreme is leaning forward like this and Nature rises like this (Mother draws the second half of the 8).
All this (the top of the 8) is golden, then it becomes prismatic (the middle of the 8), and deep blue here
(the base of the 8), in the most material part of the creation, and the blue becomes lighter and lighter
55As long as Nature lasts, he too is there;
For this is sure that he and she are one. (I.IV. 72)
56Mother helps a disciple, a painter, to illustrate some passages from Savitri.

(going upward again), and finally golden. Perpetually.
Eight is the symbol of infinity for mathematicians ().
Exactly. It's very interesting.
(Then Mother considers one by one the various figures of the Tantric diagram:)
4 is the figure of the Manifestation (the square is the figure of the Manifestation). So here you have the
manifestation of the Infinite: 4 + 8 = 12.
6 is the figure of the creation.
12 is the perfection of the creation: perfect creation.
30 is... The 3 is Sachchidananda and the 30 its external expression (because 10 means something
expressed). So 30 is the manifestation of Sachchidananda.
Thus we have first 6, then 12 (a perfection of manifestation), then 30, the manifestation of
Sachchidananda, and 48, the manifestation of the Infinite. You see, it's beginning to come alive!
Afterwards comes 42: it's the dual manifestation, that is to say, the Supreme and Nature.
Then 18... The 10 (unless it's 12... 12 is two times 6; also 10 plus 2, but that has another meaning),
but the 10 in itself is something established (the 11 is something beginning, while the 10 is something
established). So if you have 18, it means that the Infinite is established.
Then 36, which is 3 times 12: it's the union of 30 (Sachchidananda) and 6, the creation.
The 12 is the figure of the Mahashakti. It's the essential creation, the creation in its essence - the
creative Power. And perfection, too: the perfection in the execution. The 12 is a very important figure
(24 is two times 12, and 36, three times).
48 is four times 12. It's an extremely important figure. Extremely important.
And finally, we have 9 here: gestation. Gestation in Matter - not on the heights: here, physically.
(Mother begins drawing herself the diagram
with the figures and the Sanskrit mantra.)
Let's see if I remember my Sanskrit....
My eyes are no good, I've lost all my power of expression because of that (Mother takes her
magnifying glass to draw). Before, I used to do these letters so easily, and now I can't see any more....
Here.
Now, it has life, you understand. It has life. And it's the correct drawing, I mean it should be a
square (not a rectangle as you did), a square divided into nine smaller squares. It is the image of the
realization (not realization - gestation), the birth of Mahalakshmi's consciousness in Matter, that is to
say, the form of divine love in Matter.
(Mother pores over the diagram for a long time.
It should be noted that the figures of the diagram must be read
and written in a particular order to have their full power.)
Oh, there's a music!

(Mother starts humming the music or
the vibration which has come to her
and corresponds to the diagram and
the birth of Mahalakshmi's
consciousness in Matter.)
Another point is unclear: after 30, do you go here or there?
After 30 it's 48, then 42....
(Mother starts humming again)
There, mon petit. Now I would advise you to take a comfortable chair, a table on which you can write
comfortably, put it before you and get on with it!
It's a pity we can't note the music down.
(Mother hums again)
There.
But it's full of meaning, it vibrates with meaning!
I am not positive, but when he gave you this diagram, had he had in himself the conscious meaning,
he would have passed it on to you.... I have a feeling he is more like a scholar. He has perhaps more of
an impression than an understanding.
But where does the significance of figures come from?
The deeper significance of figures... There are countless traditions, countless scriptures... which I took
great care not to follow. But the deeper significance of figures came to me in Tlemcen, when I was in
the Overmind. I don't remember the names Thon used to give to those various worlds, but it was a
world that corresponded to the highest and most luminous regions of Sri Aurobindo's Overmind. It was
above, just above the gods' region. And it was something in accord with the Overmind creation - the
earth under the gods' influence. That was where figures took on a living meaning for me - not a mental
speculation: a living meaning. That was where Madame Thon recognized me, because of the
formation of twelve pearls she saw above my head; and she told me, "You are that because you have
this. Only that can have this!" (Mother laughs) It hadn't even remotely occurred to me, thank God!
But figures are alive for me. They have a concrete reality.
And this (the diagram) is meant to prepare for the "second birth" mentioned in the Vedas, the
spiritual birth. Through it one becomes a complete being, consciously complete.
Of course, it's the beginning of realization. But for many people it's the ultimate term.
I hope it won't tire you out any more.
(as Satprem is about to leave)
Do you think your machine [the tape recorder at the other end of the room] has picked up the music?57
57Mahalakshmi's music.

I hope so!
I know someone who could note it down: Sunil could note it down, he knows how to write music. I no
longer do... I've forgotten all that. I have spent all my time forgetting everything.
I used to write my Sanskrit as I write French - all gone.
One must learn to lose everything in order to gain everything. Always, every minute.
There we are.
I asked Sujata to prepare some orange juice for you - it should be prepared by someone who puts
his heart into it.
Good-bye, petit.

May 15, 1963
88 - This world was built by Death that he might live. Wilt thou abolish death? Then life too
will perish. Thou canst not abolish death, but thou mayst transform it into a greater living.
89 - This world was built by Cruelty that she might love. Wilt thou abolish cruelty? Then
love too will perish. Thou canst not abolish cruelty, but thou mayst transfigure it into its
opposite, into a fierce Love and Delightfulness.
90 - This world was built by Ignorance and Error that they might know. Wilt thou abolish
ignorance and error? Then knowledge too will perish. Thou canst not abolish ignorance and
error, but thou mayst transmute them into the utter and effulgent exceeding of reason.
91 - If life alone were and not death, there could be no immortality; if love were alone and
not cruelty, joy would be only a tepid and ephemeral rapture; if reason were alone and not
ignorance, our highest attainment would not exceed a limited rationality and worldly
wisdom.
92 - Death transformed becomes Life that is Immortality; Cruelty transfigured becomes
Love that is intolerable ecstasy; Ignorance transmuted becomes Light that leaps beyond
wisdom and knowledge.
It's the same idea, that opposition and opposites stimulate progress. Because to say that without
Cruelty, Love would be tepid... The principle of Love, as it is beyond the Manifest and the
Nonmanifest, has nothing to do with either tepidness or cruelty. But Sri Aurobindo's idea, it seems, is
that opposites are the most effective and rapid way to knead Matter so that it may intensify its
manifestation.
As an experience, it's absolutely certain: when you come in touch with eternal Love, supreme Love,

the first, immediate... (what should I say?) perception or sensation (it's not an understanding, it is much
more concrete) is that even the most enlightened, kneaded, prepared material consciousness is
INCAPABLE of manifesting That! The first impression is that sort of incapacity. Then comes the
experience of something manifesting a type of... not exactly "cruelty," because it's not cruelty as we
conceive it; but in the totality of circumstances, there is a vibration which is felt as a certain intensity of
refusal of love as it is manifested here - that's exactly the thing: something in the material world
refuses the manifestation of love as it exists at present (I don't refer to the ordinary world but to the
consciousness at its present highest). It's an experience, I am speaking of something that has taken
place. Then the part of the consciousness that has been touched by that opposition calls out directly to
Love's origin WITH AN INTENSITY IT COULD NOT HAVE HAD WITHOUT THE EXPERIENCE
OF THE REFUSAL. Limits are broken, a flood descends which could NOT manifest before, and
something is expressed which was not expressed before.
That happened not very long ago.
Seeing that, there is obviously a similar experience in connection with what is called life and death.
It's a sort of "overhanging" (it comes to me in English, that's why I have difficulty) of that constant
presence of Death or possibility of death. As he says in Savitri, we have a constant companion all the
way from the cradle to the grave, we are constantly shadowed by the threat or presence of Death. Well,
this gives the cells an intensity in their call for a Power of Eternity which would not be there without
that constant threat. Then we understand - we begin to understand very concretely - that all those
things are only goads to make the Manifestation progress and grow more intense, more perfect. If the
goads are crude, it is because the Manifestation is very crude. As it grows more and more perfect and
apt to manifest something ETERNALLY PROGRESSIVE, those very crude methods will give way to
more refined ones, and the world will progress without the need for such brutal oppositions. It is only
because the world is in infancy and the human consciousness in its very early infancy.
It's a very concrete experience.
So, when the earth no longer needs to die in order to progress, there will be no more death. When
the earth no longer needs to suffer in order to progress, there will be no more suffering. And when the
earth no longer needs to hate in order to love, there will be no more hatred.
(silence)
It is the quickest and most effective method of pulling the creation out of its inertia and leading it on to
its blossoming.
(long silence)
There is a particular aspect of the creation (a very modern aspect, maybe): a need to get out of disorder
and confusion - of disharmony and confusion. A confusion, a disorder which assumes all forms, turns
into struggles, pointless efforts and wasted energy. It depends on which level you stand on, but
materially, in action, it means unnecessary complications, wasted energy and materials, waste of time,
incomprehension, misunderstanding, confusion, disorder - what in ancient days they called
deformation, crookedness in the Vedas (I don't know the French word for it, it's something crooked
which, instead of shooting straight to the goal, weaves its way in sharp and unnecessary zigzags). It's
one of the things farthest from the harmony of a purely divine action - which is something so simple....
It looks like child's play... and direct - direct, without those absurd and completely useless twists and
turns. Well, it is clearly the same phenomenon: that disorder is a way to stimulate the need for pure and
divine simplicity.

The body feels strongly, very strongly that everything could be so simple, so simple!
And for the being - that sort of individual aggregate - to be transformed, it needs in effect to grow
simpler and simpler. All those complexities of Nature which man is now beginning to understand and
study, which for the smallest thing are so complex (the smallest of our physical workings is the result
of such a complex system that it's almost unthinkable... certainly it would be impossible for the human
mind to think up and contrive all those things), are now being discovered by science. And it's quite
plain to see that for the functioning to become divine, that is, to escape Disorder and Confusion, it must
grow simpler and simpler.
(long silence)
In other words, Nature, or rather Nature in its effort towards expression, was compelled to have
recourse to an unbelievable, almost endless complexity in order to reproduce the original Simplicity.
It brings us back to the same thing: it is that excess of complexity which makes possible a
simplicity that isn't empty - a rich simplicity. An all-embracing simplicity, whereas without those
complexities, simplicity is empty.
This has been my experience these last few days.
They are making discoveries like that. In anatomy, for instance, they are making discoveries for
surgical treatments that are unbelievably intricate! It's the same for their division of Matter's
constituents - a frightful intricacy! And all that is with the view and endeavor to express Oneness, the
ONE Simplicity - the divine state.
(silence)
Maybe it will go fast.... But the question boils down to a SUFFICIENT aspiration, sufficiently intense
and effective to attract That which can transform all this: complication into Simplicity, cruelty into
Love... and so forth.
It's no use complaining and saying it's a pity things are that way. They are the way they are. Why?...
When things are no longer that way, we'll probably know why. Or to put it differently: if we knew why,
they would no longer be that way.
So speculations such as, "It would have been better if it had not existed," and so on, are all
impractical - irrelevant, absolutely useless.
We should hasten to do what we have to do to put an end to it, that's all, that's the only practical
thing.
For the body, it's very interesting. But it's a mountain, you see! A mountain of apparently tiny
experiences, but in such large numbers that they become sizable.58

58When Satprem later read to Mother the text of this conversation, she remarked, "Scientists will deny it, they will say I am
talking nonsense; but that's because I don't use their language, it's just a question of vocabulary."

May 18, 1963
(Mother asks for a box of paints to demonstrate practically the gradation of colors of the levels of
consciousness, from the most material Nature to the Supreme. The point is to illustrate the symbol of
Infinity, the figure 8, which Mother explained in the conversation of May 11: the infinite play of the
Supreme reaching down to Nature and Nature rising toward the Supreme. Mother speaks in English in
the presence of a disciple, who is a painter, so that he may convey her explanations to H., the disciple
who is preparing illustrations for "Savitri.")
Of course, all these things are lights, so you can't reproduce them. But still, it must be a violet that is
not dull and not dark (Mother starts from the most material Nature). What she has put is too red, but if
it's too blue, it won't be good either - you understand the difficulty? Then after violet there is blue,
which must be truly blue, not too light, but it must be a bright blue. Not too light because there are
three consecutive blues: there is the blue of the Mind, and then comes the Higher Mind, which is paler,
and then the Illumined Mind, which is the color of the flag [Mother's flag], a silver blue, but naturally
paler than that. And after this comes yellow, a yellow that is the yellow of the Intuitive Mind; it must
not be golden, it must be the color of cadmium. Then after this yellow, which is pale, we have the
Overmind with all the colors - they must all be bright colors, not dark: blue, red, green, violet, purple,
yellow, all of them, all the colors. And after that, we then have all the golds of the Supermind, with its
three layers. And then, after that, there is one layer of golden white - it is white, but a golden white.
After this golden white, there is silver white - silver white: how can I explain that? (H. has sent me
some ridiculous pictures of a sun shining on water - it has nothing to do with that.) If you put silver,
silver gray (Mother shows a silver box nearby shining brilliantly in the sun), silver gray together with
white... that is, it is white, but if you put the four whites together you see the difference. There is a
white white, then there is a white with a touch of pink, then a silvery white and a golden white. It
makes four worlds.
I have explained this [to H.] as I am explaining it to you, but H. has not seen it so she can't
understand. I want to show her on paper. It is twelve different things [or twelve worlds], one after
another.59
***
(Then Satprem reads out an aphorism:)
93 - Pain is the touch of our Mother teaching us to bear and grow in rapture. She has three
stages of her schooling, endurance first, next equality of soul, last ecstasy.
... I am still in a period of conflict.
There are all the time periods of conflict between outside ideas and the inner experience.
The problem is this: you can take the attitude of endurance and endure everything, to the point
where you are able to turn pain into ecstasy, as he says - it's an experiment that can always be made, at
59Mother seems to have forgotten the red of the vital, which comes between material Nature's violet and the Mind's blue.
Thus we have twelve worlds: violet, red, blue (the Mind's three blues), yellow, then the Overmind's prismatic colors, which
makes five lower worlds, then finally the three golds of the Supermind and the four whites of the supreme creative Joy or
Ananda.

any given moment. But materialist-minded people will tell you, "That's all very well, but you're ruining
your body." And that's where... (laughing) we would have to carry out all kinds of experiments, as they
do with guinea pigs, to find out whether ecstasy has the power to restore order in the body.
You suffer from, say, a physical trouble, purely physical (morally speaking, it goes without saying,
the thing is quite clear; I mean something purely material). Something is disorganized in the working or
the structure of the organs. The result is pain. At first you endure, then out of endurance comes perfect
equality, and out of perfect equality comes ecstasy - it's perfectly possible; it's not only possible, it has
been proved. But the experiment should be carried through TO THE END to know whether ecstasy has
the power to restore the body's order, or whether it ends in dissolution: you are in ecstasy and die in
ecstasy. That is, you leave your body while in ecstasy. Is that so?... It's not only possible, it's perfectly
obvious. But that's not what we want! We want to restore order, to eliminate disorder IN MATTER -
does ecstasy have the power to restore order in the physical working and triumph over the forces of
dissolution?
The only way to find out is to make the experiment!
But there is always something which says that the risk is great for... We are too - still too cautious.
Or is it a lack of faith? But it's a lack of knowledge more than a lack of faith, because if we say,
"Whatever happens is the Lord's Will, and if the experiment dissolves the body, well, it only shows He
willed it," then there is no need to worry. And it's true, you live in this idea, you feel this way, you
sense this way; but there is something on the outside or from the outside that says, "That's all very well,
but is this need or inclination to experiment legitimate? Couldn't the same knowledge be obtained
without running so great a risk?..."
That's the kind of problem you have to face.
So personally, my attitude (all this has nothing to do with the Bulletin, by the way), my attitude is to
watch it all: this opinion, that opinion, this attitude, that attitude, and I stay like this (gesture of a
Witness completely outside and passive). I refrain from deciding or acting, I become exclusively a
witness - a non-interfering witness. I say to the Lord, "It's for You to decide; it isn't my business, You
will decide. Whatever happens is Your concern." So far, this has always resulted in an intervention that
restored order, but... but with no positive proof that the order was restored in this way or that, because
of this or that. There is no certainty. 60
In this field, we know nothing. Oh, as soon as we get into the field... even the field of sensation, the
vital, all problems are solved. Nothing could be easier, there's nothing to discuss; in the field of
feelings, the work was done long ago. That's not what I mean: I mean when we get to the bottom of the
problem. There, everything, everything is in a sort of incomprehension, of total ignorance, along with
all the ideas that result from the intellectual and scientific development and are so sure of themselves,
so full of impregnable certainty! The certainty of the material experience, of the thing you touch.
To use that without being governed by it, to base yourself on that without being influenced by it, is
very difficult.
Maybe someone much more intelligent, much smarter than me would find the work easier; but he
would probably have more difficulties inside - no such difficulties here! But outside... For example, the
chemical discovery of the structure of Matter would seem to be sufficient to serve as a base for true
knowledge to act on Matter.61 And maybe those scientists, those who have discovered and
60Mother means that there is no proof that the order was restored because of the Lord's intervention rather than by some
other, "natural" mechanism.
61Let us recall that it was in 1952 that the biochemist Stanley Miller discovered the structure of the DNA molecule.

experimented with the structure of Matter, would have no difficulty.... But the field of the greatest
difficulty is the medical field, the therapeutic field: their science is still ABSOLUTELY contrary to the
true knowledge. And when it comes to the body's equilibrium... They know anatomy, they even know a
little (not very, very much) a little about the body's chemistry, they know all kinds of things that the
common man doesn't, on the strength of which they make dogmatic assertions and send you packing
like an ignorant fool. All this business about the body's workings - how much do they know?
Naturally, when you ask them, "But why is it like that?" they reply, "Oh, why? I have no idea."
And their way of telling you, "That's how things are and they cannot be otherwise"! But if you tell
them, "Your experience is ultimately based on statistics, but your statistics are useless, they cover such
a limited field of experience that they are worthless - there is also all that you don't know," then they
feel sorry for you.
They are still in infancy, with the kind of dogmatic certainties characteristic of infancy.
On the other hand, the others, those who know the inside of things, don't have the experience - no
one has transformed his body so far! No one can tell you, "Well, it's done this way and it happened that
way; this is what I did and that's what happened" - no one. That's why it is so difficult.
Very difficult.
And also, oh, there are all those great waves of thought, of convictions (Mother draws great cosmic
waves coming from the outside to assail her), that whole habit of Matter of decomposing and
recomposing itself, being unbuilt and rebuilt.... It comes again and again, very regularly, like waves
beating against a dike.
Very difficult.
(silence)
Probably it's necessary because at times, when everything is in utter confusion, at times I ask for an
Assurance - and I see very well, very well that if my body's cells, the body consciousness were told,
"You are immortal; all those difficulties are experiences; the pain you feel has no importance; this
apparent decomposition has no importance; all those things are necessary experiences, and you will go
on to the end of the experience, that is, to transformation," if it were told that, obviously it would be
mere child's play, just enduring the difficulties - that's nothing. So I wonder.... But never have I been
told that, never, never have I been given the Assurance - now and then the body is in a sort of STATE,
a state of immortality, but it isn't constant, it's dependent on other things; so the minute it's
"dependent," it is no longer a supreme Assurance. There is at the same time a sort of discernment: very
likely there would be a general slackening of the cells' effort if they were told, "Never mind, none of
this is important, because you will last till the work is done." Maybe they would flag. The
concentration of will in the battle would disappear. Which means one of the necessary conditions
would be missing.
Then again something else comes and says, "Oh, you always have very favorable explanations to
comfort yourself!..." You see, I am like a spectator (Mother does the same gesture of great cosmic
waves assailing her) at a sort of contest of all the different reactions. (I put it into words to make
myself understood, but there are no words - only SENSATIONS; the verbal translation is just for
explaining, but they are like sensations, or rather states of consciousness. They are all states of
consciousness.) And they all run into each other... (gesture of waves).
Ah, none of this is for the Bulletin!
***

(Just before leaving, Satprem rests his forehead on Mother's feet. The previous time, when Satprem
had made the same gesture, Mother, who was standing then, had lost her balance and almost fallen.)
You saw last time how I lost my balance. When you touched my foot, there came down a... not a
column, it was a tornado! Of a light so white, so white! Not transparent - sparkling white, white like
milk. But such a powerful mass! It came so violently that I lost my balance. That's all, I only lost my
balance. And it remained there, it was there - you saw how I stood a moment without raising my head,
it was because I was looking at it. It was... it was MUCH MORE SOLID THAN MATTER. Something
very peculiar, it was solid! More solid, MORE MATERIAL THAN MATTER. And a power, a weight,
a density - extraordinary! Like a great column, and everything became pure white. Absolutely white.
Nothing but white, everywhere. It stayed on a few seconds. And the power of it threw me off balance.
I was in no condition to tell you all this at the time!
Didn't you feel anything?
Oh, yes, I felt the Force!
Oh, it was... (laughing) it was compelling enough!
(silence)
I don't recall ever having felt the Force in such a way. It's something (how can I put it?...) more
material than Matter. That's it. It didn't come as a descent of light, no: it was like a mass - an
AVALANCHE.
White! White, white, sparkling, dazzling. You couldn't look at it. That's why I looked down, I
couldn't look at it.
And there was nothing but that - there was no more you or my feet or my body or anything, nothing
but that.
(silence)
At night, sometimes I wake up (not "wake up," rather I come to), I come to enveloped in something
like that, very, very, very dense - dense. Which has weight. Perhaps a chemist could explain that! I see
it as a new thing.

May 22, 1963
(This conversation took place a few days after Satprem had a violent attack of an infectious "illness.")

The other evening, around 6:30, I was in a lot of pain; my head seemed about to burst, I really
suffered: a racking pain. Then I lay down, and suddenly I felt a sort of relaxation - a sudden
reversal followed by an easing. And, the next day, I came to know that it happened at the precise
time when V. told you I was ill.
Not only that, but there was a rather peculiar experience: a Will came into me.... I don't know, a Will:
"Decide." Something that wanted me to decide: "It's for you to decide." So I immediately cast that
Power on you, saying, "He must be cured." It's a new experience. It came very strongly, as though the
final decision were referred to me - to the PHYSICAL consciousness. So I said, "Very well, then! Let
him be cured, that's my decision."
What struck me was the suddenness of it: all at once I felt an easing.
Yes, it isn't gradual, it's all at once. Then the next day I asked for news of you (because I was
interested, the experience was completely new), I asked, "Any difference?" And I was told you were
much better.
(Mother gives a rose to Satprem)
And this one for Sujata: open like her heart.

May 25, 1963
(Regarding a letter from a personal friend of Satprem at the Editions du Seuil, who hints that the
second manuscript on Sri Aurobindo ["The Adventure of Consciousness"] will also be refused: "I do
not know whether P.A.L. has read it yet, he hasn't told me, but as soon as I read the first pages, I felt
that this manuscript would never be published by Le Seuil. It has some defects and clumsy passages -
but that will not be the reason for its refusal....")
Very well! (laughter) Let us wait and see what they say. Of course, I never thought even for a minute
that those people would publish it - but others will.
Once WE have published it, I am certain - certain - that there will be people who will want to
publish it. Besides, it's not the kind of book to have a success for a while and then fall away. It will
have a lasting action.
What does he mean by "clumsy passages"? Whatever he couldn't understand!
He understands. Maybe he means some passages that are a bit lengthy from a literary standpoint.
Anyway, I don't know, he'll write to me. He will tell me.... I'd be curious to know what he
understood. But the man is open-minded.

My own impression is rather that in order to appreciate the book fully, you must already know a lot - a
lot more than those people know.
I have a strong impression - and that's why Sri Aurobindo was so interested in the book and took
such a part in it - that it is the way of explaining things which those with a European education can best
understand. Or those with a modern education, at any rate, with a modern turn of mind, because it's
very appropriate for America, too. And for the whole part of India that's under the influence of British
education, it will put them in touch in a way they can understand.
Not for a second did I think they would publish it - in fact, to tell you the truth, it wouldn't make me
too happy either! It's not a book for their "Collection." Their Collection is much too trite, too
superficial.
Anyhow it wouldn't have been in their "Collection" because it has more than 300 pages and the
books in their Collection have only 150. But it could have been outside the Collection - well, it
doesn't seem it's going to happen.... I'd be curious to see their criticisms.
Oh, they won't understand anything anyway.
Show me his handwriting.
(Mother studies the letter)
Oh, the man is intuitive! Oh, oh!
Oh, he's very fine! Much better than what he writes.
I'd like to ask you a little question. In this book on Sri Aurobindo, I say in passing that the three
aspects - Transcendent, Immanent, Cosmic - probably correspond to the Catholic Trinity, Father,
Son and Holy Spirit. Could you tell me the exact correspondence? The Father is clearly the
Transcendent, but the Son?
The Son is the Immanent.
But then, what about the Holy Spirit and its descent?
Yes, I've often wondered.
I used to know. Once I had a discussion on this with the friend of a cardinal, and he gave me the
explanation, adding that the cardinals were taught this interpretation esoterically, under a vow of
secrecy. They were also taught that the Virgin was Nature, the universal Mother.
But what does the Holy Spirit descending with "tongues of fire" on Pentecost represent? Those
"tongues of fire" don't look like a cosmic symbol, do they?
But I don't see how the Christ could be cosmic? He is very clearly the god within man.
Why? Does the Holy Spirit descend everywhere, or in a limited way?
Tradition has it that it descends on Pentecost.
What's the meaning of Pentecost?

I believe it's forty days after Easter.
Forty days after the resurrection, that is.
At that time, the twelve Apostles were gathered and the Holy Spirit "descended" upon them, in the
form of tongues of fire.
But the Immanent doesn't "descend," mon petit!
Well, of course! But how can the Cosmic (assuming the Holy Spirit to be a cosmic symbol)
"descend" too? And in the form of tongues of fire?
Maybe we're trying to stretch the parallel too far, maybe it's something else.
(silence)
It might rather be part of the announcement (not the Annunciation!), the heralding of the new world -
of a new world. The Holy Spirit would then be the world that will descend after the human world.
I say this because Thon always announced the coming of the "new world." He didn't speak of
"Supermind," he said: "There shall be new heavens and a new earth." That was his explanation. So it
may be that, originally, in the origin of the Catholic religion, they too had the idea that after forty days
(it could also mean forty centuries, maybe forty eons or forty ages), there would come the descent of
the Holy Spirit in the form of flames that would enter those who are ready. I find this explanation more
logical.
Of course, the bird, the "white dove" they speak of, could be the Universal. Maybe it would
manifest openly as a result of that descent?
Basically we always try to cut things into small pieces. It evidently means the manifestation, a new
manifestation of the Divine, which takes place some time after the Divine in man is resuscitated. The
Divine in man is resuscitated, that's very clear: it has become conscious. And after a time (4 is the
manifestation, 10 is the perfection of the manifestation), the perfection of the manifestation of God
resuscitated in man allows that universal or cosmic thing to manifest. If you take it like that, it makes
sense.
That "universal thing" might be a collective transformation. A transformation that's no longer
exclusively individual - the descent of the Holy Spirit into the collectivity?
I had been told that even in the College of Cardinals, things were only suggested, and each one was
left to understand more or less deeply, according to his capacity. It's quite likely. But who has kept the
tradition intact?... We can't say.
Anyway, put like this, it makes sense.

May 29, 1963
I would like a clarification on a passage from a previous conversation [of May 3], in which you
said: "Something tries to draw less and less the attention and concentration of others...." And you
added: "That is, to lessen the SENSE OF INTERMEDIARY necessary for forces and thoughts to
spread...." What is this "sense of intermediary"? Do you mean your "role of intermediary" in the
diffusion of forces? Do you want to lessen that role - to withdraw?
It isn't "role"! The role is a fact, a sort of ineluctable fact, absolutely independent of the individual will
and consciousness - I am more and more convinced of it, fantastically so. The Work is done through a
certain number of elements - whether they are aware of it or not, whether they collaborate or not makes
little difference. It has been decided that way, it has been chosen that way and it is done that way.
Whether you like it or not, whether you are aware of it or not, whether you collaborate or not - very
little difference. It's more a question of personal satisfaction!
And inasmuch as the very cells of the body no longer feel their separateness (that is almost entirely
gone, even in the sensation), then something is done (or takes place), but without any self-observation.
Somewhere (gesture above), something knows, wills and acts; somewhere else, there is a certain
number of things in a state of happy receptivity, and absolutely, extraordinarily passive, not interfering.
And the less it observes, the better. It remains in an inner contemplation, or rather turned to the Heights
(a Height that is everywhere, of course, not just above), a Height perfectly luminous, perfectly
conscious, perfectly effective. And that's all that is needed.
The less the consciousness is turned to the outside, the less it perceives obstacles, resistances - all
that appears more and more unreal, transient, extremely relative.
In the necessary and unavoidable everyday contact with people, there is a growing perception that
whatever the circumstance (which in itself is so simple, simpler than a child, you know - a perfect
simplicity), as soon as it comes into contact with the terrestrial human atmosphere, it becomes ever so
complicated! And quite unnecessarily. It seems as if the normal human occupation is to complicate all
that could be extremely simple. I see this day after day, for all the small events of every day, of each
and every minute. With certain consciousnesses - as soon as it touches certain consciousnesses - it is
twisted, sometimes into terrible knots. Then it takes a fantastic labor to undo it - the whole thing
PERFECTLY unnecessary!
These last few days, in fact, I have been observing it all and wondering, "Why are things this
way?..." It must have been the means - probably the most effective means, I don't know - to emerge
from inertia, from tamas. If everything worked in that Simplicity, that perfect Quietness, well, human
consciousness would be in such a state that it would have simply fallen asleep. It would have reached
the state... not even of an animal, perhaps of a slumbering plant!
That must be the reason.
But when you see it from the other side, it's so absurd - fantastically absurd! To such a point that
the meaning of every single word you utter is immediately twisted - automatically, you can't say why.
With something clear and obvious, which should have gone smoothly, without hurdles, you are
immediately caught in a swirl of complications.
All, all, all activities, all of life is like that.
And then there are little nuances, little differences, which naturally assume considerable proportions
in those distorted consciousnesses: they say, "Oh, now everything is fine," and then, "Oh, now
everything is going wrong," but that's not true! It's always the SAME thing, only with little nuances.

But the true everything is fine, THE TRUE THING as it is, is so simple! So simple, so quiet, so
immediate, so direct that it's almost unthinkable for human thought, much less for human sensation.
Voil.

June

June 3, 1963
(Mother prepares to read a letter of Sri Aurobindo in the original English.)
Do you understand when I read?
Certainly I do! But it will tire you....
No, it doesn't tire me.
(Mother reads)
The body-mind
And there is too an obscure mind of the body, of the very cells, molecules, corpuscles.
Haeckel, the German materialist, spoke somewhere of the will in the atom, and recent
science, dealing with the incalculable individual variation in the activity of the electrons,
comes near to perceiving that this is not a figure but the shadow thrown by a secret reality.
This body-mind is a very tangible truth; owing to its obscurity and mechanical clinging to
past movements and facile oblivion and rejection of the new, we find in it one of the chief
obstacles to permeation by the supermind Force and the transformation of the functioning of
the body. On the other hand, once effectively converted, it will be one of the most precious
instruments for the stabilisation of the supramental Light and Force in material Nature.
(XXII.340)
It corresponds exactly to my own experience.
It is this mind of the cells which seizes upon a mantra or a japa and eventually repeats it
automatically, and with what persistence! That is to say, CONTINUALLY. That's what Sri Aurobindo
means when he says it can be a help: it keeps at things indefinitely (Mother clenches her fist in an
unwavering gesture).
A few days ago, at the end of an activity or a situation which demanded an effort, almost a struggle,
I heard (it's odd), I heard the cells repeat my mantra! It was like a choir in which each cell was
repeating the mantra, automatically.... "Well, this is odd!" I thought. And it was just after that, the next
day and the day after, that someone showed me this letter.
It is astonishingly true.
I heard it - I heard THE CELLS repeating the mantra. Automatically, in the difficulty (there was a
difficulty), they were repeating the mantra. Like a choir, an immense choir in a church, it was very odd.
As if there were lots of little voices, innumerable little voices repeating and repeating the same sound.
It gave me the impression of a church choir, but with lots and lots and lots of choirboys - tiny little
voices. Yet the sound was very clear, I was dumbfounded: very clear. The sound of the mantra.

But is this the mind the Tantrics use? For instance, when you speak of the "deep blue light" in the
physical mind, is it the same cellular mind?
I don't think so.
Because it's also through japa, mantras, the awakening of the physical consciousness, that the
Tantric power operates.
I think their power comes from a higher layer [higher than the cellular mind]. Because their action is
very cerebral: its effect is always here (gesture at the forehead and temples), it takes you here (same
gesture) - it's even painful!
It's cerebral.
But how does that power act in Matter? Because they do have a power over Matter.
Because it's very material - the brain is material! It's just a little less mechanical than the cellular mind.
But it Is material; it isn't the higher mind, certainly: it's a mind confined to the body (same gesture to
the temples). But the mind I was speaking of, the body-mind, is EVERYWHERE, in every cell: every
cell has it within it; whereas that power is specifically situated at the brain level. It's a very cerebral
action, enveloping the forehead and the lower part of the face, not even down to the throat.
***
How is your "writing" coming on? All right?
Yes, I am no longer tired as I was before, but... It's a domain that seems so mechanical to me!
Yet I put the Force in it.
I put the Force in it, because I can SEE your yantram like this
(Mother closes her eyes and says aloud): 6, 12, 30
I see it, it exists.
It has a reality now.
And there's a rhythm - a very nice rhythm: 6, 12, 30, 48
Can you see when I say it?
It has become real, I can assure you.
***
Shortly afterwards:

Yesterday I saw a seven-month-old baby... who is a sage.
He looks at you with his soul. When I looked at him, his eyes lit up.
Doesn't cry, doesn't speak, but he made a sort of noise - he stretched out his arms to me and seemed
to say, "Aaah!" Then I took him in my arms, and he laid his head there, on my heart - he didn't close
his eyes, he became ecstatic.

Extraordinary! I have never seen that before, it's the first time ever.
Then Champaklal (who had brought the baby) didn't want him to go without having touched my
feet (I thought it was going to cause a disaster): Champaklal put him on the floor, bent his head forward
- as soon as the baby saw my feet, he caught them with his two hands, one hand on each foot!
Seven months old!
And not a noise: only that "Aaah!"
He had never seen Champaklal before; Champaklal took him, he didn't say anything, didn't protest:
he was upright, sitting upright on Champaklal's arm.
His eyes! Eyes that look within already. When I looked into his eyes, there was an immediate
response - a response I have rarely seen in people's eyes here.
He didn't ask for anything, he was happy. And all of a sudden, that "Aaah!" I took him in my arms -
he immediately put his head here, on my heart. Didn't move any more.
I don't know who it is.
I thought I would know afterwards, but I don't. I don't know. I have only a kind of knowledge in the
background that it's not a complete person, it's an emanation of someone who has come and established
himself there consciously. But someone... I wouldn't be surprised if I were told it's Sri Aurobindo. As if
Sri Aurobindo had made an emanation and put it there (I don't say so, I don't know). But it's not just
anyone or anything.62
Either it's one of the unincarnate beings, or else it's Sri Aurobindo, who has allowed himself that
indulgence!
He is very small, very small, but not with a big head and a small body: well-proportioned. Very
small, no bigger than this. Seven months old.
But well-formed: lovely hands, lovely arms, lovely feet. Very well-formed.
It's a new thing, I have never seen such a baby, never.
He came to earth in America (that's already a sign), but his parents are Indians. Entirely conceived
and formed, all nine months, in America. And born in America. He spent the first four or five months
of his life in America.
His mother, before marrying, told me, "I will have a child only when I want it and, I hope, in the
way I want it." It was no accident.
Ah, we'd better get to work!

June 8, 1963
It was yesterday, I think, in the night (not last night, the night before, the 6th of June, that is), for more
62Mother will see the child again four years later and will then discover in him an emanation of an ancient Pharaoh (see
Agenda, May 10, 1967).

than three hours without stop, there was no consciousness of anything any more - not a thought, not a
will, not an action, not an observation, nothing. Everything was at a standstill. For instance, all that
happens when you have experiences and you work in the subconscient - all that, everything, everything
was at a standstill. It was like the action of a Force. Without any thought or idea, only the sensation and
a sort of perception (awareness is the right word) of a Force, but a stupendous Force, you know, like
the Force of the earth - all the combinations of the forces along with an action that came from above
and worked on them. It was going through me (especially around the head down to the chest, but it was
going on in the whole body, and it was spherical), it went through me and out, and out, and out in this
direction, that direction, another direction, innumerable directions, and nothing but movements of
Force (there was something like a perception of colors, but not in the ordinary way: like a knowledge
that certain vibrations corresponded to a particular color), but it was an incalculable MASS, almost...
indefinite, at any rate, and simultaneous. At first I said to myself (laughing), "What's going on?" Then I
thought, "All right, it doesn't matter, I'll just let it happen." And it went on and on and on - three hours
without letup.
I didn't know... I didn't know anything any more, didn't understand anything any more, had no
bearings any more; there was only a Force on the move, and what Force!... It was a Force that came
from beyond and acted upon all the forces of the earth: on big things, on small things, on small, precise
points, on enormous things, and it was going on and on and on, on this point, that point, all points
together and everywhere.... I suppose that if the mind had been associated with the experience, it would
have gone a bit mad! It gave that impression, you see, because it was so overwhelming that... And all
the time, all the time in the physical center (the physical center, that is, in the corporeal base), with
something in an ecstatic state; it was very interesting how that ecstasy - an ecstasy that sparkled like a
diamond - was there, so sweet, so sweet, so peaceful, as though it were there all the while, telling the
body, "Don't be afraid, (laughing) don't worry, don't be afraid, all is well." As though the supreme
Power were saying all the while, "Don't worry, don't worry, leave it to me, leave it to me...." It lasted
more than three hours.
I wondered, "What will my condition be like when I get up? Completely dazed, or what?" - Very
quiet, nothing different, with only a sort of... something that was smiling and saying, "Oh, so things
CAN be that way."
The mind was absolutely silent, absolutely: all the connections with all that people keep sending
from everywhere were cut - all of it was completely gone. There were only the universal forces in
action, with something that came from above and impregnated them all, sent them all out. And with it,
a point - it was like a point in that immensity - a sparkling point, absolutely ecstatic, in such a peace!
An extraordinary ecstasy, which was deliberately saying, "Don't worry; you can see what's going on,
can't you, so don't worry, don't worry," because certainly the thing had gone beyond all possible
individual proportions.
It's the first time. I've had currents of force, I've had actions on the earth, I've had forces coming to
me, all sorts of things; but this was different: it was all of that together. It was everywhere at the same
time, everything at the same time, with that Inrush, and it was... There was certainly something that
wanted me to be very quiet and not to worry. It was necessary that I should keep very quiet.
I had a feeling that I was given the awareness of something that's taking place right now. Because at
night, generally, I disconnect myself from everything and universalize myself - no, "universalize" isn't
the word: I identify myself with the Lord. That's my way of resting. I do it every night, it is the time
when I have my deep rest. But now I've been made aware of this Force at work. Often experiences
come (there have been a number of them lately), but it's the first time this one has come, because... It
was certainly something happening FOR the earth; but it didn't come from the center of forces that
generally acts on the earth. It wasn't the usual working of forces on the earth. It was "something

happening." And it gave the sense that the earth was very small - the movement was towards the earth,
it was for the earth, but the earth was very small.
Very small.
(silence)
There were no psychological perceptions (what I call "psychological perceptions" are, for instance,
vibrations of love, vibrations of peace, vibrations of light, vibrations of knowledge, of power), they
weren't there in that form, it wasn't that. Still, all that must have been there, because there were many
things, many things that were all one thing, but one thing which assumed different forms; but I didn't
see the forms, I didn't see the colors. It was only a question of pure sensation. A pure vibratory
sensation: only vibrations, vibrations, vibrations, on a... colossal scale.
It is a new experience.
(silence)
Obviously, there was... there must have been a cause for alarm, because as soon as I became conscious
of the experience (it started before I became conscious of it; when I did, it seemed to me it had already
been going on for a long time; so when I say three hours, it means three hours during which I was
conscious, but it had started long before; it was around eleven at night and lasted till three in the
morning), so the second I was made conscious of the "thing," obviously there was a cause for alarm,
because immediately I was told, "You see, this is what is going on," and it was thanks to that ecstasy in
the body that there was no alarm: "Oh, things are fine, everything is fine." And when the experience
was over, it didn't end like an experience exhausting itself; it ended as if, very slowly, the thing were,
not exactly veiled to my consciousness, but as if my consciousness were turned away from it, with the
feeling, "Don't worry." At the start and at the end. All the same, when I woke up, I thought (because
my head felt strange, there was a bizarre sensation as if I had become quite swollen! Swollen,
inordinately swollen), I thought, "Maybe when I get up tomorrow morning (I get up at 4:30), I'll find
myself in a complete daze!" That's why I observed - but everything was fine, there only remained that
sort of feeling of being swollen. I feel (yet it was two nights ago, not last night), I feel as if my head
were swollen! But the clear-headedness is the same as ever!! (laughing) Nothing's been disturbed!
On the contrary, there is a sort of... like an acuteness, something more acute in the perception, a
little bit ironic - I don't know why. A magnified impression that all the things in the world are much
ado about nothing, a lot of fuss about nothing - I've had that feeling for... for centuries, I could say, but
there is in addition something ever so slightly acute and ironic.
But otherwise, crystal clear!
(silence)
If someone could tell me...
But I am not supposed to know, evidently. Probably I am too much of a chatterbox (!), I always tell
you all my stories, which probably isn't necessary, so I am not told. But, you know, people are so fond
of putting labels on things: "This is what it is, that is what it is...." We don't want that! It sounds so
"smart," you know, like newspapers headlines: "The latest development." (Mother sketches big,
sensational headlines) We don't want that.
You may have an experience for an hour, two hours sometimes, but here there was an impression
that... all of a sudden I was made aware. And that I participated: this (the body) was allowed to

participate, because for some reason that I don't know (maybe because of the work going on in the
body, I don't know, that must be why), it seemed necessary that I should participate. But the impression
is that something stupendous is happening right now. You see, when I had that experience of the
pulsations of Love in April last year, I had the perception of the color, the "psychological" perception
of the state I was in (how can I explain?), for instance, the quality of the vibration of Love (something
that has absolutely nothing to do with earthly things). At the time, I was That, I was those vibrations,
but I was fully aware of the quality of those vibrations, and remained so for months - this is completely
different! It was nothing but an action. NOTHING but an action. And an action, you know, in which
the human body is less than an ant. Much less than an ant: an imperceptible point. Yet there seemed to
be ONLY this body! As if this body alone were there and it were going through that. This body was a
body... it was THE body! And that point - that comforting point of ecstasy - was very small. Very
small. But it was there, quite insistent, very conscious, telling me, "Don't interfere; leave it to me
entirely, all is well - see, all is well." Very small, very small.... Yet it was my body: I tell you, my head
still seems swollen!
Strange.(silence)
But are they new forces, or is it something going on habitually? Is it a new work on the earth, or is
it that you have seen something that goes on habitually but of which you were unaware previously?
I wondered.... But the question isn't put correctly. It is something eternal which, because of what
happened at that time (not at that minute, because, as I said, it must have been going on long before and
long afterwards)... it has become something new, for that reason, BECAUSE of what happened. 63
Coming back to all the things we know, we could say (but that's the usual idle talk) that it is something
newly manifested.
But my impression was... an impression of Eternity. An Eternity BEYOND TIME (not something
that lasts forever: something timeless), yes, the word would be: "manifesting," "making itself
perceptible," or "becoming active" - that's not it, because... Yes, acting, becoming perceptible because
it acts.
That was my impression.
I could also say: something universal which becomes individual; not individual in the sense of a
small person, but conscious of itself.
But the remarkable thing is that it had ABSOLUTELY NOTHING to do with all the intellectual
activity, high or low - nothing. Nothing. Nothing to do with knowledge, or observation, discernment,
intellectual perception, understanding, judgment and whatever.... Nothing, nothing, nothing to do with
all that. It was... a Force in motion.
"Force" means nothing! Force is something very small. It's... the impression of "something"
stupendous!
It had nothing to do with either Knowledge or Light or understanding (the whole angle of light and
intellectual knowledge); nothing to do with Love (which I had felt last time and which has its own
particular vibration). The best definition we could give is Power. It was Power in its most formidable
aspect - crushing. With REAL All-Powerfulness; Power in its all-powerfulness, with that something
unshakable, immutable, untouchable.64 Yes, really Power, that's right.
But Power, you understand... For example, a hurricane's power is nothing in comparison. All the
63Mother probably means because of the fact that she became aware of the thing.

powers a human being can withstand, even probably imagine, are nothing - nothing... it's (Mother
blows in the air) like soap bubbles.
The feeling of something that can be neither withstood nor felt, because of its formidable state.
And it was quite clear that a solicitude, the supreme Solicitude, took great care to reassure me: "All
is well." Without that, obviously, the feeling was that everything, everything was going to be dissolved.
So if we use our little wits, maybe we can say it's the supramental Power which has manifested, I
don't know.
(silence)
But there was no perception of light, nothing that might give a hint; there was no perception of feelings
or love to give a hint. There was nothing of the kind, nothing - only something that makes you puff out
your cheeks in disbelief (!), so formidable that it's indescribable. Indescribable.
Evidently it's Power.
We always conceive of power acting ON something, ON an object, with an object, WITH A VIEW
to realizing something; we cannot separate the two - but it was none of that, it was... Power in action.
But not an action ON something.
I had the feeling it was a decisive turning point which far exceeded my little understanding.
(silence)
We will know, one day.
But the explanation comes afterwards: it's brought down to our small scale... (laughing) to make us
happy!

June 12, 1963
There was something happening.... I was brushing it away when something said to me, "If you don't tell
this to Satprem, it will be lost forever." But I was already erasing it, so now I don't remember what it
was....
It was last night, in the middle of the night.
(silence
Mother tries to remember,
the clock strikes)
It was a rather acute sensation that when the world, the earth, goes from one state to another, there is a
64Mother is referring to the "point" that sparkled like a diamond.

sort of transition; it is always like a ridge between two mountains (gesture of a precarious balance),
and there is a very perilous moment when the slightest thing can cause a catastrophe - which means a
lot of things would have to be built anew. The same phenomenon exists too on a very small scale, for
individuals, in the sense that when they go from one state of consciousness - a collection of states
which constitutes their individuality - to a higher state, or when they introduce into their state an
element that will yield a higher synthesis, there is always a dangerous period when a catastrophe is
possible. And the sensation I had last night was that the earth is now going through one such period of
transition, and there is - there was or there is - a possibility of catastrophe.
(silence)
So if one can keep one's balance (it's almost a question of balance) and not fall on this side or that, if
one can keep one's balance and get through that moment, then there could be a whole period of normal
development which would be very harmonious.
(long silence)
It is a law of progress: whether the progress of the worlds, of the spheres, or individual progress, it's the
same thing, though on different scales. I have a feeling that we are in one of those periods.
One must be very careful to keep one's balance.

June 15, 1963
I've received a letter from a friend in France who speaks at length of someone who has written
three volumes entitled "Gnosis."
Ohh!
That person lives in Switzerland, he's a Russian named B.M. He has a center with disciples. I asked
for his photograph and I'd like you to help me understand what type of man he is.
(Mother studies the photo) He is an intellectual, at any rate - clearly not a spiritual man. He may have
some vital powers (that's generally what gets hold of people). Yes, an intellectual, an idealist.
Do you have his handwriting?
No.
He's terribly well-mannered, that's what bothers me! (laughing) A well-mannered gentleman!
I had the same feeling: a feeling of someone extraordinarily bourgeois.

A very "respectable" gentleman.
He must have some wit, a rather sharp wit. An ironist: he must be very clever at answering, really
what we call esprit in French.
There is no sign of powers in the photo, but if he has any over people, it must be a vital power.
He is not a great mind; he doesn't go beyond the idealistic intellect. But that's more than enough for
people, because true spiritual power is completely above their heads - of course, they are very sensitive
to a little bit of vital power, mental-vital.
He's a man who could have practiced some Tantrism in the way Woodroffe did; I can't say. There
are also many people of that kind who were converted to Sufism - they are very easily converted to
Sufism. But true spiritual life, there aren't many....
He has written three volumes entitled "Gnosis."
Quite an ambition.
But he's an intellectual, he may have received some inspiration on the intellectual level.
Is your letter from France?
Yes, from a friend, and as this B.M. seems to be spreading, for my own guidance I wanted to know
if he is in good hands or dubious hands.
The ceiling isn't very high, but that doesn't necessarily mean "bad hands."
An aristocrat your gentleman. Maybe a former aristocrat from Russia?
My friend is an aristocrat, a marquis "of something." But he's no ordinary marquis: he's an
adventurer.
Well, yes! It's part of the character. It's the Kshatrya 65 element, it's part of the character: being an
adventurer.
But this one is terribly well-mannered! (Laughing) Excellent manners, a refined man perhaps. An
intellectual.
But is he humanitarian, does he work for the good of mankind?... Or for the good of his own glory?!
He says he has received a Message. He has a Message.
Ah, he has something to reveal to the world - Lord, poor world! How many revelations!...
Anyway, let's wait for the book, we'll see.
Because do you know the story of that Romanian who was tortured by the Communists and had
visions of Sri Aurobindo66 (he didn't see him as he is, in fact, he saw him according to his own
conception: thin and ascetic), and finally the apparition told him, "I am your soul," and so on? But he
had never read Sri Aurobindo's name, he only heard it, and he wrote it in a very odd way ["Aurobin
Dogos"].... It SEEMS to be something of Sri Aurobindo. Anyhow it gave him the strength to go
65Kshatrya: the caste of warriors and kings.
66Silvius Craciunas, author of The Lost Footstep.

through all those tortures - appalling tortures, unimaginable. And he was able to escape, somebody
helped him escape (now he is safe in England). But before that, he suffered so much that he thought of
letting himself die, and that "voice," that apparition which came and spoke to him for hours, was what
gave him courage and told him that "the soul NEVER gets discouraged, it has something to do, and you
must endure." He endured thanks to that voice.
Well, similar things may have happened elsewhere and some people may have received inspirations
- we cannot say.
It's clear that wherever there is a receptivity, the Force acts, there's no doubt.
***
(Mother returns to the previous conversation, in which she spoke of perilous periods of transition for
the earth and for individuals, when everything hangs in a precarious balance.)
It keeps happening fairly often.
This morning again, for a stretch of several hours (it started at the end of the night, between 3 and 4
o'clock, and went on till 6:30 or 7 in the morning), there was a sensation of hanging in balance on a
kind of ridge (gesture): you must be very careful, keep very quiet - not immobile but quiet.
It must be (on a much lower level) at such moments that you fall ill; when people fall ill, it must be
(on their scale, of course, probably a very, very small scale), it must be due to that (gesture of
precarious balance): they must be going from one moment to another, from one balance to another,
and if they are not careful, they topple over. Then it's IN the illness that they find a new harmony -
(laughing) either here or in another world!
***
(Then Mother comments on the visit Pandit Nehru paid to her two days earlier, on June 13:)
With the visit, which we could call presidential, naturally there was a lot of hullabaloo here: everybody
was excited (most people were, at any rate). The visit was, so to speak, forced upon me, in the sense
that I didn't want to see him - I didn't feel I was in such a state that the visit could have a paramount
importance. Some people had high hopes in this visit (here and there, even in Switzerland, even in
America), they thought I would be able to do something.... But practically speaking, it was an illusion,
naturally.
And all at once, it came so clearly, as though the Lord Himself were arranging something, and it
was translated into, "Give him a bath of the Lord." You understand, to make an atmosphere (no need to
speak, no need for words), an atmosphere that is a bath of the Lord. So that all those who enter the
atmosphere automatically enter the bath of the Lord. It was so lovely! And so simple, so smiling,
nothing showy, no big words: something very simple and natural. So, early in the morning, I went to
the room over there; I had many people to see beforehand, a host of people who came to see me in the
morning, but nevertheless early in the morning I had already started preparing my bath of the Lord! I
was finished seeing people about an hour before Nehru's arrival, so I stayed in the room, preparing the
"bath".... It was very charming.
He may have felt something - they are very thick-skinned, you know, necessarily so: overworked,

full of self-conceit, naturally, and convinced that they know everything and can do everything (and
unfortunately they can do a lot), so the whole of life is organized so as to BLOCK all inner receptivity.
But he did have the bath!
He was supposed to stay two or three minutes - he stayed fifteen minutes.
I didn't say anything. Somebody who was there spoke. And towards the end, I could see (I had
given him a comfortable armchair), I could see he wanted to get out of his armchair, as if to say, Now I
must go. So I simply told him, You need a little rest - you should have seen the man's face:
immediately everything relaxed. All the while, his fingers were fidgety like this (Mother drums her
fingers on the chair's armrests), two fingers of his hand moving nonstop, even though I kept putting
Peace and Quietness on him, but still his fingers were moving, because he was always active inside.
And when I told him that, something relaxed in his face and the fingers stopped. But it was very late
and everybody was waiting, so after a little while I let him go. It was very interesting: I simply told
him, You need a little rest - everything stopped.
But mentally, you know... (Mother makes a gesture: completely obtuse). There is a prince of
Kashmir who came here once, a young man 67 ; he went to England, and there he wrote a thesis on Sri
Aurobindo's political life, Sri Aurobindo, Prophet of Indian Nationalism, with a preface by Jawaharlal
Nehru. I read the preface, but afterwards, the day after I saw Nehru - it's awful! Understands nothing,
he understands nothing, nothing, nothing, absolutely obtuse. It's very kind, but written by someone who
understands nothing.... I will tell you the thing: between my first and second visits here, while I was
away in Japan and Gandhi was starting his campaign, 68 he sent a telegram, then a messenger, to Sri
Aurobindo here, asking him to be president of the Congress - to which Sri Aurobindo answered "No."
Those people never forgave him.
Yes, he never understood why Sri Aurobindo did not resume his political life.
No. And then, you see, he takes Gandhi's asceticism for spiritual life - always the same mistake!
There's no way to pull them out of it. Unfortunately, the entire world has caught the same idea.
Then when there was that Cripps proposal, 69 I believe it was Nehru (or Gandhi, I don't remember
which of the two) who said, "He has withdrawn from political life, why is he meddling! It's none of his
business." They never forgave him. That is to say, completely obtuse, unable to understand that one can
have a knowledge higher than practical knowledge.
There you are.
Do you see new threats hanging over India?
The Chinese?... I don't know. There's a lot of talk about them.
Anyhow, X had announced it would be April - nothing happened!
It came a few days ago, I started to think again of "up there." So I looked, and I thought, "But April
is behind us, isn't it?" It was just a few days ago - they may be preparing something, I don't know.
67Yuvaraj Karan Singh.
68Gandhi arrived in India in January 1915 from Africa. He started his "noncooperation" campaign in 1920.
69See Agenda III, November 17, 1962, p. 420.

But the Chinese are fairly receptive, in spite of their Communism. They are receptive to an idea of
human goodwill, in the sense that they think their political organization is the best from a human point
of view, and therefore would like the whole world to adopt it - there is a sincerity in their conviction,
they believe it's the best way of life. They are not entirely ill-willed. And they are very intelligent.
At any rate, they had the power to do whatever they liked [last October, at the defenseless northern
borders of India], yet they did nothing.
Yes, that was extraordinary!
(Mother smiles) Not so extraordinary. But at any rate, it's proof of a certain receptivity.
They'd rather have a mental and political domination than wage war. They aren't bent on
slaughtering people, you understand.
It seems (it's what I heard, I don't know) that all the prisoners (they had plenty of them - many of
the Indians, unfortunately - and most of them were released), they all said they had been admirably
treated. I heard that from all quarters.
And Nehru, you see (that's what Pavitra told me yesterday, he went to the town hall to listen to
Nehru's speech), Nehru is an out-and-out social democrat who believes that the ideal organization for
mankind, instead of only an "elite" being able to progress, is that the entire masses should progress (as
if they wanted to!... but anyway). It's an idea - everyone has his own ideas. But then it seems that when
the Chinese attacked, it was a violent blow to his conviction: he thought it impossible that the Chinese
would do such a thing (!) He was very deeply shattered.
Naturally, they see no farther than the tips of their noses, and then they are surprised when
circumstances (laughing) don't agree!
But OUTWARDLY, there is nothing that can be done [to act on Nehru and the politicians]. It's only
if you are sitting in your armchair, very quiet, that you can do something - provided not too many
people are aware that you're doing something (!)
So there you are.
The other day, I had asked S.M. to come while Nehru was here (he is a friend of Nehru's and has his
confidence), and S.M. did all the talking. But I saw that if he had been silent, if Nehru had been sitting
in his armchair with me saying nothing and no one to listen to, he couldn't have stayed! He would have
left. It would have been too strong, he couldn't have stayed. Whereas listening to S.M., he didn't pay
attention, and slowly, slowly, I was able to do my work. Which means it can be done only in a
COMPLETELY roundabout way, completely.
After he left, there was almost an invasion... a totally unexpected invasion [of Nehru's retinue].
When I saw that, I thought, "Well, well! That's how I am protected!" If anyone of those people had had
some mischief in mind, he could have just walked in! An invasion of the whole Pondicherry
government: the councilors. Like a crush of... I don't know, if I say "a rough sea," I give them a
compliment! I hesitated, I was about to say "a herd," but a herd doesn't have the vulgar skepticism of
those people; a herd is harmlessly unconscious, while these are unconscious but harmful.
I didn't know them (I know them, but I don't know them!), but I understood who the person was just
from the way his face reacted to the atmosphere of the place! It was very funny. Two of them, in
particular, when they came in, I thought, "Oh, it must be so and so," and the other, "Oh, this is certainly
so and so," merely from the reaction on their faces - the contortion of their features on entering the
bath! But in all that crowd there was one man, a sturdy fellow, in a military uniform - only one -
whose face... (what's the word in French?) became dignified. A sense of dignity suddenly came over his
face. He was the chief of the Madras police (!)

Only one.
I wonder why they allowed that mob to come up, they shouldn't have left you...
I tell you, I am at the mercy of anything! Unless people give prior notice that they're up to some
mischief, nobody will stop them from coming upstairs!
But people like G. are notorious bandits!
Yes, it was G. I recognized. G. and D. are the two I recognized. I thought, "Oh, this is G.," and the
other, "Oh, this must be D.," just from what came over their faces!
Oh, you can't imagine the crush! Twenty people at the same time. I thought, "Indeed, I am not
protected physically." Unless a murderer comes and says, "I've come to murder," (laughing) they
wouldn't stop him from coming up!
Nolini felt a bit embarrassed; he told me, "I tried to stop someone from passing but he pushed me
aside, saying, 'I too am a Minister'"!! (laughter)
Oh, they're so ridiculous!... What a farce!
***
(Before leaving)
Is there nothing particular you'd like to eat?
No, Mother, I really have everything I need.
Are you sure?
Everything, but everything.
Except a bit of padding!... Though it's true that it's too hot to eat. Do you feel hot?
Oh, yes, but one gets used to it.
With me, it's a wonderful thing (I give thanks to the Lord): I feel neither hot nor cold nor anything any
more. But I can see that people suffer from heat.
I suffer when I write. When I write, I burn. I burn, my body literally burns! When I wrote the book
on Sri Aurobindo, I was exhausted - it burns me, you see, I am ablaze! And then I get covered all
over with salt: I don't sweat but I get covered with salt!
Oh, you're really a man of the West.
Hem....
It's true, people are generally built for the place where they are to live, but in my case, I felt

comfortable only here. Up to the age of thirty, my whole childhood and youth, I always felt cold -
always cold. And in winter... Yet I went skating, did exercises, I led a very active life - but cold,
terribly cold! I felt as if I lacked the sun. But when I came here: "Ah, at last! (Mother takes a breath)
Now I am comfortable." The first year when I came here, bringing all that accumulated cold in my
body, at the height of summer, in this season, I was going about in a woolen suit! A skirt, a blouse and
a cloak. People would stare at me.... I didn't even notice it - it was my natural dress.
When I left again, I went by boat (people didn't travel by plane at the time), and when I came to the
middle of the Mediterranean, I fell sick - sick from the cold, in the Mediterranean! So you see, I was
built for the work here, (laughing) it was foreseen!
But couldn't we do something about that burning sensation?
Oh, as long as I don't write, it doesn't matter - I don't suppose I'm going to write books all the
time?!
Next time, I'll give you a bottle of lotion. Before writing, rub yourself with it! (laughter) It keeps you
cool.

June 19, 1963
This is a really difficult period right now.
All last night...
There are activities that take place in a semidarkness, which the people of the place - people who
are here at the Ashram - regard as light... and where everyone attends to his affairs with his own ideas
and what he considers to be his "knowledge." Everything takes place in a semidarkness, a great
confusion and a... you know, a most oppressive sense of powerlessness. It went on for hours. Finally, I
absolutely wanted - I wanted to get out of that place at all costs and return to the Light (the real one)
and the open. But it was literally impossible: whatever path I took to get out suddenly collapsed, or
disappeared as if swallowed up in a wall or a complexity of incoherent things, or else it came to an
abrupt end, plunging straight down very deep.... I remember one of those places, I absolutely wanted to
find a way out, and when I got there, there was a sheer gulf, and I said to myself, "What am I going to
do?" Just then I saw a man, I don't know who he was, but he was dressed (it was symbolic) as a
mountain climber, with all the equipment needed to climb down a sheer cliff, and with the help of his
ice ax he fastened himself to the cliff and climbed down. Then I said, "This is PRETENDING to find
the way, but it's not finding the way." I was there concentrating, and as I concentrated, suddenly I was
able to find a path which led me up to a terrace.
I was accompanied by three or four people (but they are symbolic people). Everything was taking
place in a half-night, and outside it was complete night. But when I reached the terrace, there was one
of those big electric street lights, which turned on and gave a white light (like the half-light of an
electric lamp in the night - which is nothing). The terrace was a very long one, but with a drop on
every side: there was no way to get out; at one end, the way was blocked by a sort of house, and on

both sides it plunged straight down into a black hole. And then that sense of powerlessness, of knowing
nothing - you don't know where to go, you don't know what to do. It was... And it is THE ORDINARY
STATE OF HUMAN CONSCIOUSNESS - the consciousness of human activity. But in my
consciousness (I was shut in there, you understand), it was truly... it was almost a torture, last night; it
was frightful.
I was saying to myself, "But what's the way to get out of here?" I concentrated, became conscious
again of the divine Presence, but there was something telling me, "Nothing is responding, it's not
working." It was horrible. "Nothing is responding, it's not working; it's not working, it can't change,
nothing is responding; nothing is responding, it's not working." I was there like that, with two or three
people. I sat down (some rooms were higher than others and it made a difference in level between the
terraces), I sat down on a ledge, questioning intensely within, "What can I do? What can I do? What's
the way? What can I do? Where's the lever?" I was trying to find the lever for changing it all. But I was
unable to find it. Suddenly, from the room at the end a little old man came out, very old, who gave the
impression of an attachment to old things; just the same (he was all blue), just the same when he
arrived (it must be the symbol of an old method or an old discipline), I told him, "Ah, now that you are
here, can you tell me the way out of this place? What's the way to get free, the way out?" That started
him laughing: "No, no! There's no way, no way out, you must be content with what you have." Then he
looked at that poor light above, which really didn't give much light at all, and he said (in a highsounding tone): "But in the first place, I came to tell you that you must put out that sun! I don't want
that dazzling sun here." Ah!... I thought, "That's what he calls a sun!" I was so disgusted that finally I
woke up. Something pulled me out abruptly. But with such a strong impression - so strong - that I was
gripped by anguish: "What can be done to change that?" The WAY, you see, the way was inadequate -
inadequate. That was the anguish: "My own experience is inadequate, it has no effect THERE, so
what's to be done? What's to be done? What can be done?" So that's how I was for hours this morning:
"What's the way? What's the way? What's the way to change that darkness into light?"
It wasn't very cheering.
I'm not giving you all the details, but all sorts of people were there, with all their plans, all their
ideas; one would come (what I've just said was only at the end, but before that plenty of people had
come) and say, "Oh, look how cleverly I've organized this!" Then another one would come with
another plan, then they would confer among themselves, then... It was just life, you see! A whole
mental domain of life.
And my experience did not REACH there; there was no contact, I was powerless. What little light
that turned on because of my presence and was considered as a dazzling sun was to me a mere street
lamp.... It was painful.
I thought, "Why? Why am I not happy and quiet here, too?" And something answered, "Because I
want to change that." If I accepted it, I wouldn't even notice it; it's because I want to change that
darkness. So then... then there will be joy only when we have FOUND the way - and how to find it?...
All the methods I use for the yoga and for transformation, all were useless, useless, useless, no action,
no action, no effect, no effect.... I've never seen a place so unreceptive! No effect, none at all. And
everybody VERY content with what he knew!
It is evidently a mental domain. A mental subconscient. But it's horrible. Horrible.
Then in the morning, I asked myself, "What? Is there still a lot like that?" A world! A whole world,
a mass of things. And that powerlessness in which you find yourself; which means that unless I am
given the key, there is no way. That funny little old man, oh, he almost made me angry (I cannot get
angry, but I was almost angry and that's what woke me up), I was indignant. "Aah, aah (Mother takes
the old man's rasping tone), so you want to get out of here?! But no one gets out of this place! And
why do you want to get out?... There's no way to get out, can't you see that there's no getting out of here

- and why do you want to get out?!... Anyway, I came to tell you, I only came to tell you to put out that
sun! That dazzling sun, you know!"
Well....
Those are my nights.
So you get the feeling it will take centuries - centuries to change! Or else a catastrophe.
Though even a catastrophe... (Mother shakes her head negatively) it shakes it all up, then
everything sinks back to the bottom.
(silence)
And I kept trying to go down.
It must be to reach subconscient and inconscient depths. That's always what gives difficulties - an
abyss.
I haven't yet tried to take the plunge. So far, nothing ever pushed me to plunge down - several times
I did find an unexpected way, but there was never the impulsion: "Too bad, I'll throw myself off."
I don't know why.
(long silence)
It is becoming increasingly positive - positive. And as if the problem were drawing closer and closer,
growing more and more tight and stifling.
(silence)
It's perfectly obvious that people can live, that men can exist and live BECAUSE they are unconscious.
If they were conscious, really conscious of the state they live in, it would be intolerable. And I can see
that there is a very difficult period when you go from that unconsciousness (unconsciousness of the
habit of living in that state) to a conscious vision of the state you live in. When you become totally
conscious of things as they are - of what you are, of your condition - and when you do not yet have the
power to get out, like last night, it's almost intolerable. And there was a very clear awareness, very
precise, that it isn't a question of life or death: it doesn't depend on that sort of thing, which ultimately
changes nothing but a wholly superficial appearance - that's not it! You know, people who are unhappy
think, "Ah, a day will come when I'll die, and all my difficulties will be over" - they're simpletons! It
won't be over at all, it will go on. It will go on until the time when they get out for good, that is, when
they emerge from Ignorance into Knowledge. It's the only way out: to emerge from Ignorance into
Knowledge. And you can die a thousand times, it won't get you out, it's perfectly useless - it just goes
on. Sometimes, on the contrary, it drags you even further down.
That's the thing.
But if you know this too soon, there's something... intolerable, intolerable. For a minute, it's really
intolerable. If there weren't the inner faith to answer that there WILL be an end, that you WILL
emerge...
It must require a tremendously powerful lever.
I suppose people without solid heads become unhinged. Although truly, there is a remarkable
Grace, because people are given a dose of experiences exactly according to their capacity. But this
morning there was an hour... an hour when I was absolutely conscious, absolutely conscious, and

conscious of one single thing: the powerlessness - the powerlessness to get out of Ignorance. The will
to get out of Ignorance and the powerlessness to do so. It gave me a whole hour of tension.
When I woke up, the tension was such that my head was like a boiling kettle; so immediately, I
said, "Lord, it's Your concern, not mine; it's not my business." And naturally, everything calmed down
instantly.
But those who do not have that experience (it's not a question of words, it's a question of
experience), those who do not have that experience, were they to have that half-knowledge, the
knowledge that we live in Ignorance, that we live in Ignorance with a sort of incapacity to get out -
"There is no way out, no way to get out" - and that human wisdom is like that little old man who
comes and tells you, "But why should you want to get out? Why should you - that's the way things are,
just the way things are."... It's appalling. I felt, you know, like when you concentrate forces to the
bursting point, as they do with their bombs; it was exactly like that: so concentrated, so overwhelming
that I felt as if everything were about to burst. So much so that it would be utterly impossible for
humanity to live with the awareness of the state it is in, if, at the same time, there weren't the key to get
out (the key hasn't been found yet), or the assurance that we will get out.
I'm not speaking of things of the higher mind, because there the key to the way out was found long
ago, a long time ago: I mean down below, in the material world - the material world. That's why all
those people, like the old man last night, go somewhere else - it's all the same to them, why should
they bother! "Why do you want to change that?... And don't try to give light here, it's no use and in
addition it's a nuisance. Leave this Ignorance in peace."
It is very clearly symbolic. But it's a frightful anguish, hard to bear.
That's why they all said, "Flee, flee, flee - leave it all, stop bothering about that, there's no getting
out."
(silence)
It is the work in the physical mind we spoke of the other day - the material mind.
(silence)
It was very strange because I was in that state all the time, saying to myself, "I must find something, I
must find something, there's something to find...." And I tried to call down the experiences of the
higher beings,70 but it couldn't reach down - it couldn't reach down, couldn't make contact. So when I
saw that old man come (I knew perfectly well that he could do nothing whatsoever, but I thought, "I
must ask him, I must ask him just the same, I must ask him"), I asked him - although I knew perfectly
well that he couldn't give me the key. There was that double thing: the knowledge that all that goes on
there71 is useless, useless, that that's not where the solution lies; and yet you should neglect nothing,
overlook nothing, leave no stone unturned. Give everything a try.
(silence)
And I came out like this (gesture as if Mother suddenly emerged from the experience with a movement
backward and upward). How can I explain?... I was trying to find my way by going down, to find a
70The higher parts of Mother's being.
71In that mental domain.

way out down below, but I couldn't find it. So when that old man came, someone who was with me...
very obligingly went to turn out the light [on the old man's orders]! Then I felt within myself, "I can't
bear it, I can't stand here and watch this light being turned out - this light which turned on when I came
- I can't bear that!" And I left abruptly like this (same gesture of stepping backward and upward), and
found myself instantly back in my bed.
Yet the way I seek is ever descending, descending, descending - never to the heights. It's always
descending, descending, descending.
Oh!... When will it be over?... I don't know.
(silence)
All the details are clear - it would take a book to write them. Everybody now has his place and
meaning.72 And they're all so content, so content! So BLISSFULLY ignorant of the condition they live
in. And I'm not speaking of people who know nothing: all those who were there last night were people
full of philosophy, of knowledge, of "spiritual experiences" and all that - the cream.
The elite of mankind....

June 22, 1963
I had a rather amusing experience while walking [during japa]. I was looking at people's attitude (I
mean those who think they lead a spiritual life, who think they have made a surrender), and how they
are utterly vexed when things don't happen the way they want! (They don't always admit it, they don't
always say it to themselves, but it's a fact.) Then all at once, I saw a huge robot - huge, magnificent,
resplendent, covered with gold and jewels - a huge being... but a robot. And all-powerful - allpowerful, capable of doing anything, anything at all; anything you could imagine, he could do it: you
had only to press a button and he did it. And it was... (laughing) as if the Lord were telling me, "See,
here is what I am to them!"
I couldn't have recounted the experience just like that, but I made a note of it. He said, "See, this is
what I am to them." So I wrote it down.
(Mother first reads out
the French version of her note)
Then I wrote it in English (if there's a "gap" in the Bulletin, I'll put it in!):
"The Lord is not an all-powerful automaton that the human beings can move by... (laughing)
the push-button of their will...
72Mother often said that each of the Ashram disciples was the symbol of a particular difficulty to be conquered.

It's very funny!
... the push-button of their will - and yet most of those who surrender to God expect that
from Him."
I read it to Pavitra; he said, "But still, that's rather like the way things work!" He didn't quite understand
(Mother laughs).
***
(Mother comments on the previous conversation, in which she was looking for a way out "down below"
but abruptly came out of the experience "above":)
In order to be complete, we should add that we are aware (not aware: we know it, it's a certainty) that
all the upward paths are open, traveled, you can go there as you like and when you like. That's it, and
that's why, when I wanted to come out of the experience, it meant going upward, quite naturally. Not
that the passage above is closed, on the contrary, it's traveled, explored - but inadequate. We must find
the corresponding passage down below.
(silence)
All the means of getting out have been found and practiced. But only for getting out individually, or
above - nobody has ever found the key to the change, the way to make that "thing" cease to exist.
Because it can cease only in order to become SOMETHING ELSE.
And to become something else, there must be that leaven of transformation.
There is a period (a period which from the human point of view may seem long, but which can
certainly...), a transitional period which must begin with the perception of what has to come, followed
by the aspiration, the will to become it, and then the work of transformation.
How far have we gone in that work of transformation?
(silence)
Sri Aurobindo came with the notion, or the Command, or the conviction that it was in the present. But
to what extent is the transformation present? And what does "present" mean? What span of time does it
cover?...
There is such a certitude - such a certitude that the thing is ALREADY there, but that's when you
see it from the other end. Seen from this end here... When you see it on the scale of human beings and
world events, how much time will it take? I don't know. And how far have we traveled, where are we
on the road? I don't know.
And quite clearly, certainties as WE conceive of them, I mean someone who knows (and someone
who knows can only be the Supreme) and tells you clearly, "Here is where you stand," and with YOUR
way of seeing things, well (Mother laughs), such certainties aren't to be expected, it seems! Probably
it's quite stupid to ask the question.

You do feel it's a bit stupid, but you often feel the need to know! (laughter) It's stupid, but....
It's not much, not a large part of the being that would like to know. It happens when the body feels
quite... bizarre, not at all, AT ALL as it was before, but also not at all as it thinks it should be. A
transitional period which is truly unsatisfactory, in the sense that you no longer feel the strength you
had, the capacities you had, but you don't feel at all the Power and capacities you expect either - you
are halfway between, neither like this nor like that. With, now and then, some absolutely bewildering
things, things that make you stare wide-eyed, "Oh, that's how it is!" But at the same time, such tiresome
limitations, tiresome....
That is the part (a completely childish part) which needs a little encouragement: "Come on, don't
worry, you're on the right track." But that's childish. The only way is to keep quiet and go on without
worrying.
There is somewhere a sort of capacity for acute discernment, which can very easily turn into a
censor (it's still there; probably it serves a purpose), and that's what demands certainties. The major part
of the being says, "It's not my concern. I am here because You want me to be here. If You didn't want
me to be here, I wouldn't be here." There is nothing like an attachment or a desire. (That went away
quite a while ago! But now it has become an almost cellular condition.) "And since You keep me here,
it means I am doing something here, and if I am doing something here, that's all I need, that's why You
keep me here...." It comes full circle, of course.
How long will it last? That's not my concern. Maybe something would be a bit... frightened if it
were told the time it will take (we can't say, we can't foresee the reaction). So it's best to keep quiet. But
there's nothing of interest. Nothing to make interesting literature - nothing, nothing at all... absolutely
nothing.
Patience.

June 26, 1963
(Regarding Satprem's Tantric yantram)
I made an experiment: writing the letter OM. When you have written it four, five, six times, it becomes
excellent!
I wanted to know why you were asked to do that work and what you could draw from it. So I sat
down to write your yantram, and it became very living, I could see it in front of me - I kept seeing it all
the while. "But then," I thought, "the VERY FACT of writing must have an effect." Then I started
writing the letter OM carefully.... Well, when I came to the fourth, the fifth, it became excellent -
excellent, as though it were creating a vibration. That's the power it has, an external power. But then it
was very amusing (the body is like a child - really a child), suddenly it said, "Oh, what a lovely game!
To be sitting like this and writing, oh, how amusing! If I had the time, it would be great fun to write
and write, lots and lots and lots of times." I saw that in the body - in the body's cells. Then I

understood.
Basically, these are almost methods for children (children from the spiritual viewpoint), young
souls - child-souls. They are methods for child-souls.
I used to write my whole japa fluently like that, in Sanskrit, 73 now I have forgotten everything
again.
(Then Mother starts writing from memory Satprem's yantram with its nine figures, in the prescribed
order. A few days earlier, Mother had done it without a single mistake; today she stops in the middle:)
Impossible to remember anything in the ordinary way (not that I try, either). The things I have to
remember come spontaneously: they become living and present, they have a reality.
Just now, as I tried to remember, suddenly I started "thinking" - thought that you were here and
that... All gone, I forgot everything!

June 26, 1963
(Letter to Mother from Sujata)
Wednesday
Little Mother,
I had a dream this afternoon. I told it to Satprem, who said I should write to you about it.
I was on a staircase that looked like the one leading to the meditation room. Two Ashram girls,
about sixteen or seventeen years old, were there, waiting to go upstairs to see "mother." When I heard
that, I was seized by a sense of great danger. Because I KNEW that You weren't there. So I began to
give instructions to the two girls, whom I knew, in fact, one especially. I don't remember what I told
them but it was a matter of will - of life and death. The girl who knew me well promised she would do
as I said, the other didn't seem to understand, and time was running out. In fact, the first girl had hardly
had time to understand when the door opened and the "mother" was there to receive us. I had a glimpse
of her. She was shorter than You in size, but her face resembled yours, though not the look. Also she
had all over her round black spots (not jet black, rather brownish black). But for that, she was white.
After that glimpse, I turned and went back, because, Little Mother, I felt that if that false Mother
could lay her hands on me once, I would never come out alive. Whereas if I could go out of that place,
I might find a way to save the life of at least one of the girls. So before my absence was noticed, I
started downstairs. The staircase has become narrow. The door is shut and a dark-looking guard is
73Satprem has entire pages written and rewritten in Sanskrit by Mother.

there. He is surprised to see me and does not want to let me out. I insist that he must open the door. He
asks whether I saw "the Mother." I answer yes. He doesn't seem convinced. I add that she is covered
with black spots. He is obliged to let me out but thinks that the second guard farther on may stop me. I
go downstairs; I see the second guard but go another way; then there are closed doors everywhere, and
I open some doors which, according to them, I should not have been able to open. Finally I come to a
courtyard, with the last door closed behind me. I still had to cross the courtyard unseen and climb over
the high walls that surrounded the house. At that point, I was awakened by servants before I knew
whether or not I was able to get out.
With my pranams at your feet.
Your child who loves you,
Signed: Sujata

June 29, 1963
(Mother glances through a collection of Playground Talks and chances on the following question,
which she answers immediately:)
"Why isn't the universe a place of perfect bliss?"74
Because it's progressive. There is no other reason.
***
(Then Mother speaks of the new Pope, Paul VI, who was elected a few days earlier:)
Sri Aurobindo seems to have taken interest in the Pope's successor... because two nights ago (not in the
night, at four in the morning), I was with him - I spent a half hour with him (a half hour of OUR time,
which is very long), he had just returned from a "tour," in Italy especially. We didn't directly talk about
it, but some people were there (there were all kinds of things, many things), and from his comments to
this or that person, or on this or that, I knew he was returning from Italy, where he had gone for the
nomination of the new Pope. And he said something like: "It's the best that could be done under the
present circumstances." That is, he appeared satisfied on the whole.
I told you, didn't I, that I saw the death of Pope [John XXIII] without even knowing he was ill?...
One night, I suddenly saw in the mental atmosphere of the EARTH quite an awesome movement, that
74Questions and Answers, July 18, 1956.

is to say, quite global: there were great mental waves (nothing but mental), great waves of anxiety, as
though all human thought were very upset; but it wasn't the anxiety of the believers, it was a very
global movement - the earth's mental atmosphere was stirring with great movements of upheaval and
anxiety (Mother draws waves in the air). I thought, "What's happening?... What's happening that can so
upset men?" (as would happen, for instance, with a world war or events of that kind), "What's
happening that can draw the attention of the whole earth's atmosphere, its mental atmosphere?" And the
next day, I was told that just at that time, the Pope died. So I thought, "Indeed!..."
Afterwards (because I am not concerned with all those things), I learned what he was doing: his
"Ecumenical Council" and all his reforms, his attempt, in short, to bring everyone together as much as
he could (all the Christians, at least), and the fact that he had become a friend of the Russians, etc. So
then, I concentrated, because according to natural logic (the logic of Nature's actions), the next Pope
should be a horrible reactionary - in a word, it didn't bode well. I concentrated and tried to make things
work out for the best. And I see that Sri Aurobindo did find the thing important, since he concentrated
over there.
According to the little popular wisdom, it seems his successor is a man with still more progressive
ideas. I saw his photo... (but it's a newspaper photo, they're generally very bad: you can't have any
contact, you only see this much [gesture on the surface]). The thing that struck me most is a sort of
insincerity. A benevolent and ecclesiastical insincerity - if you know what I mean?
Very well.
There was also the photo of the cardinal of India (the first and only cardinal in India), a straightforward
man and a wholehearted believer - he must be a fanatical Catholic, but with a sincerity, a fervor. The
other fellow is very intelligent - oh, he has a mouth I cannot look at, dreadful.
Anyway, we'll see what happens.
It seems Kennedy is Catholic. That is a serious matter.
They say he was the first person the Pope saw after his... what's the word for Popes?
Investiture?
I don't know. When he first appears in public: "Here is the Pope!"
Anyhow, after the ceremony of investiture, he saw Mr. Kennedy: the first person.
(silence)
Catholicism has two things that Protestantism lacks: the occult sense (not only the sense but even a
certain occult knowledge), and the Mother - the Virgin. The Protestants have something the Catholics
lack: the inner divine presence.
It's only through those two things that you can catch them. But...
Well, we'll see.
I don't know, when I saw the photo of the new Pope, I got a strong impression of a very shrewd
man, a politician.
(Mother nods approvingly)

Someone very, very shrewd. I didn't feel anything spiritual.
Oh, but the last one didn't have anything spiritual either!
But he seemed good.
He was a good man.
This one gave me an impression of someone very shrewd and dangerous. A politician.
(Mother nods her head) Sri Aurobindo used something like these words: It is all that can be done in
the present circumstances.
Which means it seemed to be the man of his choice, because he certainly went to the conclave and
saw the situation, that's how he worked - he influenced the vote. Among all those people ([laughing]
there are eighty of them, mon petit!), among all those people, this one was probably the one the most
likely to do what we want him to.
He may do it for unavowed reasons, but anyway... It generally happens that way in the present state
of the earth: people's motives for doing things should not be taken too seriously - what's important is
what they do. And if you look at things from a certain height (where everything is DECIDED, you
understand), people and things are COMPELLED to act in a certain way, but the conscious human
motives that determine their actions are irrelevant - "irrelevant" in the sense that they're not always... to
put it more clearly: you VERY rarely do things from the TRUE motive.
At any rate, Sri Aurobindo is interested in world events, which means he considers the Pope's
election has a certain importance.
(silence)
But in reality, Catholicism finds its equilibrium because of Communism; so that the rapprochement
between the two was a masterstroke. And I don't think the new man (who is a sly fox, I find) will want
to lose the advantage the other had gained. The friendship with Russia is very clever. They are today's
two platforms of influence in the earth's atmosphere.
We shall see.
I think the foremost idea of the one who left was to prevent war. Consciously, he wanted all
Christians to love each other! (Mother laughs) A childish hope. To love each other in Jesus - whom
they leave on the cross.
As Sri Aurobindo says, men... men LOVE grief, that's why Jesus is still nailed on the cross.75
It's magnificent, that thing.
(silence)
With the others, the Communists, it's the opposite: they want everyone to be happy; but they have
succeeded in making everyone unhappy! Everyone: before, a few were happy and many unhappy; now
they're all unhappy!
That's what they call "serious matters."
75See Aphorism 35: "Men are still in love with grief; when they see one who is too high for grief or joy, they curse him and
cry, 'O thou insensible!' Therefore Christ still hangs on the cross in Jerusalem."

***
(Later on, regarding Sujata's dream of the "false Mother":)
Apart from that, how are you?
Quite well, Mother.... Did you see anything particular regarding Sujata's dream?
Oh, I forgot to tell you.
It's an excursion in the vital.
You can tell her she got off lightly.
From the occult standpoint, if, for instance, she had said to the people who guarded the doors, "In
the name of the Mother, let me out," probably doors and people and everything would have vanished.
It's difficult to remember those things in dream. But anyway, she has an inner trust, and thanks to it
she got off lightly.
It was not chance that she was woken up - it wasn't chance: she was HELPED.
Quite likely, someone other than she wouldn't have seen the spots.
Ohh!
It was her sincerity that made her see the spots. And it was because she disclosed what she had seen
that the guard was unable to stop her, because it was the sign of a power of inner sincerity.
It left me a bit pensive... in the sense that I don't find it quite admissible that some persons [the false
"Mother"] play that kind of game - though I know it does happen, I know there are such persons.
But I think it has helped to cleanse the atmosphere a little.
Yes, I told her to write to you because, besides her, there were also two Ashram girls who seemed
to be in danger.
Yes. Oh, but there are many who are in danger - because they're not sincere, anyone can deceive them.
You know, in such cases, for occult danger, the ONE THING that's absolutely indispensable is
sincerity. It's the safeguard and security. Sincerity is security. For example, in the presence of that
being, insincere people would have said, Oh, it's the Mother. They WOULD NOT HAVE SEEN, you
understand. But she saw - it's her sincerity that saw.
The only thing... (but it doesn't matter, it will come) is that if instead of trying to escape she had
taken a determined attitude and said, "In the name of the Mother, open the door," brrrt! she would have
seen everything vanish. But that... I don't think it will happen again, but if it does, she will know what
to do next time. It's a kind of sense of the battle.
You did well to ask her to write, it was important enough that I should know, because I have to
cleanse the area a little. But I tell you, there are too many, too many insincerities, that's what opens the
doors - insincerity is just like a sentry who opens the door, it's nothing but that. And unfortunately,
there are lots and lots of insincerities....
But anyway she got off lightly.
Here, let me give you a rose for her. A big one, a very big one, there!

***
(Just before Satprem leaves Mother speaks suddenly:)
There is a boat being built (the symbol of the yoga, obviously), it's made entirely of pink clay, and what
a pink!... A boat of pink clay. I was there with Sri Aurobindo - a very agile Sri Aurobindo who was
going about supervising the construction; I too was going up and down with extreme ease.
Clay.
There were some workmen, in particular a young man who was extraordinary - I don't think they
are purely human beings. But it's a long story....
But clay, that was something really new - and lovely! Pink. Pink, a warm, golden pink. They were
cutting out [of the clay] rooms, stairways, ship decks and funnels, captains' cabins.... Sri Aurobindo
himself is as he was, but more... with a harmony of form: very, very broad here (in the chest), broad
and solid. And very agile: he comes and goes, sits down, gets up, always with great majesty. His color
is a sort of golden bronze, a color like the coagulation of his supramental gold, of his golden
supramental being; as if it were very concentrated and coagulated to fashion his appearance; and it
doesn't reflect light: it seems as if lit from within (but it doesn't radiate), and it doesn't cast any
shadows. But perfectly natural, it doesn't surprise you, the most natural thing in the world: that's the
way he is. Ageless; his hair has the same color as his body: he has hair, but you can't say if it's hair, it's
the same color; the eyes too: a golden look. Yet it's perfectly natural, nothing surprising. He sits down
just as he used to, with his leg as he used to put it [the right leg in front], and at the same time, when he
gets up, he is agile: he comes and goes. Then when he went out of the house (he had told me he would
have to go, he had an appointment with someone: he had promised to see two people, he had to go), he
went out into a big garden, and down to the boat - which wasn't exactly a boat, it was a flat boat - and
he had to go to the captain's cabin (he had to see the captain about some work), but it was with that boat
that he was returning to his room "elsewhere" - he has a room elsewhere. Then after a while I thought,
"I'll follow him so I can see." So I followed him; as long as I saw him in front of me I followed him.
And when I came to the boat, I saw it was entirely built out of pink clay! Some workmen were working
there - admirable workmen. So Sri Aurobindo went down quite naturally, down into the ship under
construction, without... (I don't think there were any stairs), and I followed him down. Then I saw him
enter the captain's room; as he had told me he had some work to do, I thought (laughing), "I don't want
to meddle in others' business! I'll go back home" (and I did well, I was already late in waking up!), "I'll
go back home." And I saw one of the workmen leaving (as Sri Aurobindo had come back to the ship,
they stopped the work). He was leaving. I called him, but he didn't know my language or any of the
languages I know; so I called him in thought and asked him to pull me up, as I was below and there
was a sheer wall of slippery clay. Then he smiled and with his head he said, "I certainly don't mind
helping you, but it isn't necessary! You can climb up all by yourself." And indeed he held out his hand,
I took it (I only touched him slightly), and climbed up all by myself without the slightest difficulty - I
was weightless! I didn't have to pull at his hand, he didn't pull me up. And as soon as I was up, I went
back home - I woke up and found myself in my bed... five minutes later than my usual time.
But what struck me was the clay - it means something very material, doesn't it? And pink! A pink,
oh, lovely! A golden pink.
They are building something.
It must be.... We aren't told anything, but our work "is being done" for us.
There you are.

It left a very strong sense of Power - concentrated.
That was yesterday.

July

July 3, 1963
(This conversation took place a few days after the new Pope, Paul VI, was enthroned. Mother had
asked Satprem to erase the recording, except for a few fragments, but he thought it fit to retain at least
its integral transcription.)
Here, your flowers [roses]. A magnificent color....
Then I have another photo of the Pope (Mother shows "Time" magazine).
It seems it's the photo he chose himself for the press, to announce his election.
It's better than the last one.
(Mother hands the photo to Satprem) So, what do you have to say?
You should be the one to say!
I have to say.
I have to say that I know this man. I have met him several times. I don't know whether he is
conscious, I mean I don't think he remembers when he returns to his body. But for a long time (not
recently, certainly at least for a year, maybe two), the man has been involving himself in world affairs,
which means he takes interest in global movements.76 I met him in this connection. I cannot say we've
had interesting "conversations" or anything of that sort, but he is part of the organizations.
I hadn't seen that at all in the other photo [published by the daily newspapers]... it's his eyes. The
mouth is bad as in the other photo, but bad in another way: he looks almost malicious. But the man has
power - real power; not a Pope's power, I mean: real power, inside him.
Vital power, you mean, or spiritual?
Not spiritual! Not spiritual: power. Power - which means a somewhat higher mental capacity along
with a vital realization. He's a man who, were he not the Pope, would have no scruples.
But he happens (laughing) to be obliged at least to appear good!
I get a sense of hardness.
Very hard. Just the opposite of the other one [John XXIII].
But he has publicly pledged to continue what the other one had begun. Only, the other one had no
power whatsoever: he was simply a good man on earth. This one isn't a "good man"! He's an effective
power in the terrestrial organizations.
And now he has a position.
It's a bit outdated [the papacy]. But not so much as one may think. I saw that when the other one
76Occultly speaking, Mother means.

died, oh, how it stirred the earth's mental atmosphere, it was considerable. Which means that many,
many human beings are still governed by that.
But I never concerned myself with that domain. Even when I saw the Pope, the one before the last
one [Pius XII], who came to offer me the Keys (I told you the story, didn't I?), even with him, who had
a SPIRITUAL rapport with the universal Mother, I never concerned myself. I never did anything for
him, I never concerned myself with him. This time, for whatever reason, there is something that keeps
pulling and pulling me in that direction.
I don't know, maybe something decisive is going to be achieved? I don't know....
But is his power of organization a power for the "good," if I may say so, or what?
I tell you, it's a power of domination. But now he is the Pope, so his domination will have to be at the
service of his position, you understand.
But maybe... The very fact that I met him (he may have been already thinking of becoming Pope, I
don't know), but anyway, long before anyone except him thought of it, the fact that I met him while
seeing to certain terrestrial arrangements shows that, probably unconsciously (I told you right away: I
don't think he is conscious in his body), he is nevertheless under the influence, if not the control, of the
higher forces.
Why is my attention drawn all of a sudden in that direction? Generally, I am not interested in all
those things. For the action, I am concerned only with the little field of experience I have been given,
and my terrestrial action is of quite another nature; it's on a higher plane, very independent of
individuals.
I find there are three noteworthy points: First, this man was already concerning himself with
terrestrial affairs when he was a mere cardinal in Milan (in Milan he was very involved in labor
problems - there are many workers in Milan - and that interested him, he liked to solve workers"
problems). Then there is the continuation of the other one's work: the rapprochement, so to say, with
Russia, which is truly interesting. Last, there is the fact that Kennedy is Catholic. And also, that all this
is happening just now, I mean when AT LEAST (I don't say at best, I say at least) the foundation of the
new world is being prepared....
The foundations are being prepared.
We shall see.
(Mother looks at the "Time" magazine photo again:) With these photos it's very interesting, I have
intriguing experiences: all at once I'll see crystal clear (much clearer than I see physically), I'll see the
individual very clearly - he comes alive, the eyes speak to me - and I'll say, "Oh, he's like this and like
that...." Everybody brings me photos, because I am used to reading people's characters in their photos,
that's very easy for me, elementary; but sometimes when I am given a photo, suddenly I see somebody
and I say, "Oh, but it's such and such person, he's like this and like that...." But if I am shown the
SAME photo a few days afterwards, it's just a photo and I see nothing. It's a method that's used to "let
me know" certain things, and once I know them, it's finished. For instance, the first time I saw this
photo of the Pope, when they brought it to me, I saw the man (I know him, you see) JUST AS I see him
over there. But if I look at it now - it doesn't evoke anything in me any more, only the kind of things
you see in a photo: a mouth that's not good, far from it.... Certainly, that he chose this photo means he
LIKES authority - he wants to be seen in his aspect of authority.
The odd thing is that he is seated [in the photo], while all the time I see him standing. He is seated
with his hand on the armrest, but I keep seeing him standing - holding his head high, facing life,
standing. He must be fairly tall: the man I know is fairly tall, he looks very much like this one. It's

unmistakable, I mean, when I saw the photo I saw the man I knew.
But I think... not "think," I see that his belief is, first, simply a question of habit, because he was
born in that religion, and then a question of political necessity - I don't think he has the conviction that
it is the pure Truth. Whereas the previous Pope really believed in it. This one knows too much in his
supraconscient to believe that Christianity is the pure and exclusive Truth. Only, you see, when you're
lucky enough to be the Pope, you've got to believe that the Pope is the Pope! Try to imagine, look at the
global situation from a distance: of course the whole world isn't Catholic, but there are Catholics all
over the world.
What seems... bizarre to those who have gone beyond the petty, purely terrestrial limits - human
terrestrial limits - is that belief in a SINGLE divine manifestation on the earth; all the religions are
based on that, everyone says, "Christ was the only one," or "Buddha was the only one," or elsewhere
"Mohammed was the only one," and so forth. Well, that "only one" is something IMPOSSIBLE as soon
as you rise a little above the ordinary earth atmosphere - it appears childish. You can understand the
thing and accept it only as a sort of recurrent movement of the divine Consciousness on the earth.
Of course, officially there is only Christ; maybe for this man [Paul VI], he is still the greatest, but I
would be surprised if he thought Christ was the only one. Only, Christ "has to" be the only one - you'd
cut out your own tongue rather than say he's not!
I don't think the question bothers him much (!) His concern is how to exert his power and keep
people in it, so as, maybe, to prove his superiority.
This much conviction they still have, you see, that their religion IS superior to all others, their
power is superior to all others, and therefore they have to be more powerful than the others. That's the
main idea: "To be the most powerful." And what's the way, now, for them to gain that allpowerfulness? Already for two or three generations, they have understood the necessity of a
broadening: the narrowness of their dogma gave them too many weak points.... But he [Paul VI]
understands maybe even better. We'll see what happens.
Look what I've received (Mother hands a garland of jasmine), you'll give it to Sujata - it smells
nice!
(silence)
But he seems to me by far the most interesting Pope in a very long time.
It's strange, I got a sense of repulsion.
Repulsion?
The only danger with these people is a spirit of Inquisition, but is that possible nowadays? I don't
think so.
No, but under the cover of a "synthesis" or a broadening of the doctrine, they may very well be
trying to expand further the power of Catholicism over the world.
Of course. Oh, but it's obvious. That's their intention.
Only, there is always an irony in things: if they grow too vast, they'll be engulfed in their own
magnitude! It cannot be otherwise.
If, out of the need to enlarge, the Pope accepts, for instance, all the different sects (they've already
started to accept the Protestants), if he accepts all those sects, (laughing) little by little they will either

break apart or be drowned! You follow, if we look at it from above... Let's even assume it's an Asuric
power - it isn't... (Mother hesitates) it isn't clearly and distinctly an Asuric power, because by his very
position, the Pope is OBLIGED to recognize a god higher than himself; that god may, of course, be an
Asura, but... I have a sort of memory - the memory of a very ancient story no one ever told me... in
which the first Asura challenged the supreme Lord and told him, "I am as great as You!" And the
answer was, "I wish you would become greater than I, because then there will be no more Asura."
This memory is very living, somewhere.... If you become the Whole, it's finished - you see, the
Asura's ambition is to be greater than the supreme Lord: "Become greater than I, then there will be no
more Asura."
On a very small scale, it's the same thing on the earth.
(silence)
In a certain state of consciousness, it becomes absolutely impossible to worry about what may happen 77
; everything becomes visibly, obviously, the work of one and the same Force, one and the same
Consciousness, one and the same Power. So that sense and will and ambition to be "more" - more
powerful, greater - is again the SAME Force which pushes you to expand to the Limitless. As soon as
you cross the limit, it's finished.
Those are old ideas - the old ideas of two powers opposing each other: the power of Good and the
power of Evil, the battle between the two, which of the two will have the last word.... There was a time
when children were entertained with such stories. They're just children's stories.
Some people (or if you like, some beings, or forces, or consciousnesses) in order to progress need to
give themselves, to merge, and in total self-annihilation, they attain Realization; for others the path is
diametrically opposite: it's a growth, a domination, an expansion which assumes fantastic proportions...
until the separation disappears - it can no longer exist.
Some prefer this path, others prefer that one - but when we reach the end, it will all meet.
(silence)
Ultimately, the one thing necessary is to abolish limits.... There are many ways to abolish limits.
And maybe they are all equally difficult.
(silence)
That religion is perhaps the one I have fought the most. For a very simple reason: its power, its means
of action (the power it uses as a means of action) is fear. And of all things, fear is the most degrading.
I saw two examples of this, one physically and the other intellectually (I am referring to things I
was in contact with materially). Intellectually, it was a studio friend; for years we had done painting
together, she was a very gentle girl, older than I, very serious, and a very good painter. During the last
years of my life in Paris, I saw her often and I spoke to her, first of occult matters and the "Cosmic
philosophy," then of what I knew of Sri Aurobindo (I had a "group" there and I used to explain certain
things), and she would listen with great understanding - she understood, she approved. Now, one day, I
went to her house and she told me she was in a great torment. When she was awake, she had no doubts,
she understood well, she felt the limitations and obscurities of religion (she came from a family with
several archbishops and a cardinal - well, one of those "old French families"). "But at night," she told
77Mother is referring to Satprem's "worries" in the face of Catholic expansionism.

me, "I suddenly wake up with an anguish and something - from my subconscient, obviously - tells me,
'But after all this, what if you go to hell?'" And she repeated, "When I am awake it doesn't have any
force, but at night, when it comes up from the subconscient, it chokes me."
Then I looked, and I saw a kind of huge octopus over the earth: that formation of the Church - of
hell - with which they hold people in their grip. The fear of hell. Even when all your reason, all your
intelligence, all your feeling is against it, there is, at night, that octopus of the fear of hell which comes
and grips you.
That brought home to me... the magnitude of the problem - it's terrestrial. There are Catholics
everywhere: in China, in Africa among the Negroes; people who don't give a thought to these things
yet are under the sway and caught by the octopus.
Another time, when I was younger, I was in Italy, in Venice, painting in a corner of St. Mark's
Cathedral (a marvelous place of great beauty), and I happened to be sitting right next to a confessional.
One day, as I sat there painting, I saw the priest arrive and enter the confessional - that man...
completely black, tall, thin, the very face of wickedness and hardness: a pitiless wickedness. He
closeted himself in there. After a short while there came a rather young woman, perhaps thirty years
old, gentle, very sweet - not intelligent but very sweet - entirely dressed in black. She entered the box
(he was already shut in and could no longer be seen), and they spoke through a grille. I should add that
it's far more medieval than in France, it was really... it was almost theatrical. She knelt down there, I
saw her long gown flowing out, and she was speaking. (I couldn't hear, she was whispering; besides,
both of them spoke in Italian, although I understand Italian.) The voices were barely audible, there was
no sound. Then all at once, I heard the woman sobbing (she was sobbing in spasms), and it went on till
suddenly - a collapse: she crumpled in a heap on the floor. Then that man opened the door, shoving
aside her body with the door - and he strode away without a backward glance. I was young, you know,
and if I could have, I would have killed him. What he had just done was monstrous. And he was going
away... it was a chunk of steel that walked out.
Incidents of that sort have left me with a peculiar impression. The stories of the Inquisition had
already given me a sufficient... Now, of course, you've heard what I told you [the story of the Asura],
and that's really my way of seeing the thing. But there was a time when I might have said, "No religion
has done more evil in the world than this one."
But I am not so sure now. It's one ASPECT of that religion.
It's yet too human a vision of things. I prefer - I prefer the vision of the Lord telling the Asura, "Go
ahead, keep on growing and growing and growing... and there will be no more Asura!" (laughing)
That's better.
(silence)
This man [Paul VI] may have been like that priest in Venice. He was a tall young man, couldn't have
been more than thirty, very thin, with a face like a knife blade, oh!...
Fear is not a negative thing: it's a very positive thing, it's a special form of power that has always
been used by the Asuric forces - it's their greatest strength. Their greatest strength is fear.
I can see: whenever people are defeated, it's ALWAYS through fear, always.
So if you (Mother turns to the photo) intend to make use of it, you'd better beware!
(Mother stares at the photo)
What comes to me is a magnificence....

Well, we'll see.
***
(Later, the subject is the English translation of Satprem's recent book on Sri Aurobindo:)
I think E. will be able to find a public over there, in America especially - more than in France.
(silence)
In France, all those who have an awakening, a spiritual need, rush back to the Catholic religion. Which
means the octopus still has a great deal of power there - a very great deal.
Some time ago, I don't remember on what occasion, I recalled the time when you couldn't say that
the earth rotates, or even that it's round - they killed you! Can you imagine that....
All the same, we've covered a good bit of ground.
When I realized that I knew this man [Paul VI], a thought came to me as if in jest: what if someone
showed him my photo (because I know some people who can do it), and if he himself said, "But I know
this woman!" Then I saw that old instinct, that habit not to allow anyone even to say or express
opinions contrary to theirs. And I saw the curve - the curve we have traveled just the same towards
freedom.... He would be almost obliged to tolerate me. His predecessor's predecessor [Pius XII]
forbade the archbishop here to excommunicate people who came to the Ashram. (The archbishop
wanted to do that, but he couldn't without the Pope's permission, and the Pope answered him, "Keep
quiet.") The next archbishop renewed the excommunication here from his pulpit, but it didn't go
beyond that. So I wondered, "What will be the Pope's attitude?" Because naturally, that kind of
individual is quite capable of ordering the excommunication of something he considers and KNOWS to
be true - that's just what you're seeing in this photo [Satprem's sense of repulsion]. Naturally, in them
the political spirit overrides everything else.
Don't record all I've said. I don't want to have it here, I don't want it kept. Because the time hasn't
come for me to meddle in these affairs.
Voil.
There's a whole part in me that very often sees itself as a warrior when I come into contact with
that Christian octopus. Something in me immediately feels an urge to fight against those people.
But isn't it chiefly mental? You feel the battle of ideas.
Yes, but almost in the way of those monks of old who went about preaching - I don't see myself
preaching (!), but I see myself fighting them through speech.
Yes, through speech, that's what I mean.
Because you have a great combative power in the mind, very great, and that's immensely useful, but
on the vital level I've never seen anything in you like a warrior.
Oh, yes! To go about the world preaching, to go about fighting with ideas, like, for instance, the
great sages here who fought through speech - that, of course. But not as the general-in-chief of an
army!

No!
Not a Napoleon, I mean.
But the urge to fight! Because I feel so strongly the Evil hidden there....
Oh!
And a vicious evil - a vicious evil hidden there.
Under the cloak of charity and total benevolence: a hypocrisy. Yes, those are the things that always
made me get up in arms.
And in a way, it pains me to see that what little I can do, this book on Sri Aurobindo, for instance,
isn't understood. There is a wall in France - a refusal, I can't get in there, it's blocked. It pains me.
With the people I know there it's the same thing; everywhere I meet with a wall of incomprehension
- it's absolutely and completely closed.78
(Long silence) With France's intellectual quality, the quality of her mind, the day she is truly touched
spiritually (she never has been), the day she is touched spiritually, it will be something exceptional.
Sri Aurobindo had a great liking for France. I was born there - certainly for a reason. In my case, I
know it very well: it was the need of culture, of a clear and precise mind, of refined thought, taste and
clarity of mind - there is no other country in the world for that. None. And Sri Aurobindo had a liking
for France for that same reason, a great liking. He used to say that throughout his life in England, he
had a much greater liking for France than for England!
There is a reason. We'll see.
Things are perhaps going to move a little - I have a sort of feeling they're on the move. Only, there
may be casualties - whenever things move fast, there is a possibility of casualties. Periods of stability
when things settle down and take their place are more peaceful. But at the moment, it's more
dangerous.
More dangerous.
(Mother takes back
the Pope's photograph)
Leave me my Pope! (laughter)

July 6, 1963
78Things have changed much since then.

Then?
There are some texts from the Agenda.
Again! But I didn't say a word! I said you should cut out everything.
But some things should be kept.
All right then.
There is also the previous conversation: your experience of the pink clay boat....79
Ah!
You know, the next day, I saw Sri Aurobindo again - it was Sri Aurobindo, he was with me, but a
bit taller than the previous time, a bit slimmer, with his skin almost white, almost like mine (not the
white of northern people but a kind of golden white). So I looked at him and smiled (because it had
changed, you see!), I didn't say anything, but (laughing) he told me: Yes, to meet all tastes! I found that
admirable!
That day, he was very busy with the external organization; he asked me for some information and
made remarks about everything. Then there was an incident (I don't yet know what it means), and he
said, Oh, there (but I can't remember which country that was - we were dealing with countries and
governments), oh, there, all is all right, isn't it? And I answered him, "Yes, certainly, all is all right
since all the people in the government are our people." And he seemed to be showing me... (at night,
Europe is always to my left, and America is always to my right, as if I were always facing north), he
was showing me the left side and I too was pointing to the left, and it was there, all the people were
ours: Everything is quite smooth. But I can't remember (probably on purpose); the name of the country
or place or whatever has been wiped out - I could not remember it.
But I can still see Sri Aurobindo, a little taller than me, and myself bent forward and smiling,
pointing to the left, and he said, "Yes." And I could see - I saw lots of people. Because it's a strange
thing, the eyesight is absolutely different (it's in the subtle physical), the sight is absolutely different
from physical sight: you see thousands of miles away and very near at the same time, and distance is
implied only by a given place in the atmosphere (I don't know how to explain this), but what's far away
is as near from the standpoint of action as what's very close by. You see, the action is just as concrete
and close, but it is as though differently placed (Mother shows different levels in the atmosphere).... I
never gave it a thought, but probably in that activity of the subtle physical we are physically much
taller, I think; yet the proportions remain the same; but things are smaller [than Mother or Sri
Aurobindo]. It's the same for going up or down, it doesn't have the meaning it has here. And that
country I was pointing to was to the left, a little... not backward, a little forward and lower down, like
this (gesture).
Sri Aurobindo was very tall there. But I, too, was tall.
It was just the day after that first experience, at the same hour, but instead of looking after one kind
of thing he was looking after another: all the material organizations, down to the smallest details, all the
administrative details.... I remember very well looking at him like this (Mother raises her head, as if
Sri Aurobindo were a little taller than she was) and telling him, Oh there, it is quite all right, it is all
our people, you know. It is all our people, so everything goes smoothly.
79On June 29.

?
(Laughing) There's no such place on earth!
None that I see!
Maybe it will come.
Maybe it was a premonition!
But the impression was very pleasant. Then he asked me a question on some detail of organization
(but not a small thing, it was a big thing), and I answered, "Oh, I don't know, I don't see to that. I let
them do as they think best. I only give the general orientation, and for details I let them do as they think
best." Then he nodded his head approvingly.
I didn't see him the next day - I was expecting to see him, but I didn't see anything. I saw something
quite different.
***
Shortly afterwards:

For some time (I mean a year or maybe a year and a half), I have quite often been seeing some very
ugly faces pass before me, and also all kinds of queer objects - things I didn't use to see formerly. I had
seen ugly beings only once, when I was with Sri Aurobindo: during the day I caught a sort of influenza
(it was more vital than physical), because I had attended and, so to say, presided over the "festival of
arms"80 of the workers here. And they threw all their woes on me, asking to be protected, relieved and
so on - there is a sort of spontaneous sincerity in those people, and I answered straightforwardly,
without protecting myself. I didn't even think for a minute of protecting myself: I answered all of them
(inwardly, of course). I came back inside.... In the night, I had a frightful fever. But in the midst of that
fever I was entirely conscious; I had the fever people call delirium, and I saw what delirium is: there
were hordes of beings from the most material vital rushing at me with such violence! It was a real
battle against an army of beings from the lowest, most material and also most violent vital - they came
in waves and I kept throwing them back (which probably people are unable to do): one wave and I
threw them back, another wave and I threw them back, and so on the whole night long. I had a fantastic
fever. Sri Aurobindo was there, sitting beside my bed, and I told him, "Well, that's what gives what
people call delirium." It attacks the cerebral region, it's really a frightful battle. The next morning, I had
an influenza that looked like typhoid fever - I knew where it was coming from, I had seen it, I saw the
whole thing, you understand.
It happened once and then it was over: quite naturally the atmosphere gave protection. This time it
had the same character, in the sense that twisted faces, very base instincts, very ugly things come and
ENTER, which means there must be some work going on on that level, and for it to be done some
contact is necessary (naturally when I have my white atmosphere around me, try as they may, they
cannot touch it), but this time they entered.
Well, I peered at the thing (laughing), not without some curiosity. (The first times, I was surprised,
I thought, "Why am I starting to see such ugly things!" But then I soon understood it was because a
work had to be done.) I peer at the thing with some curiosity, and I see I just have to do this (gesture
80Ayudha Puja, during which workers and servants invoke the divine presence in tools and machines.

like the flick of a feather duster), simply a little effortless movement and... prrt! off it runs with
fantastic speed.
But some of the faces I saw had come with the intention of making certain suggestions - I saw that
(I don't know what their suggestions were, it didn't interest me and I kept sweeping it all away, so it
went away). I didn't attach any importance to it, except that I kept answering in the same way (the
feather duster), and I thought, "This must be putting order somewhere!" But today, N. read me a letter
and told me the story of a boy who was here - a very nice boy who worked well - and who suddenly
was overcome by disquiet and fear and got so ill at ease that finally he said, "My family is calling me,
they want me, I must go." Then (I don't know when it happened, it was a while ago), he wrote that
some time after he came back home (I don't recall the details), he came to know that a magician was
regularly doing black magic against him (he was seeing ugly faces, incense burning, all kinds of odd
little gestures - he tells the whole story in his letter - and it affected him very much), and that the
magician (who I believe was more or less connected with the family!) was doing that regularly to make
him leave the Ashram. Then he went to see the magician, or rather someone went to see the magician
and told him, "The boy is back now, you need not continue, he is here, so there is no more reason to..."
And from that moment on, everything immediately disappeared: his feeling of disquiet and all his
visions. Anyway, it was clear proof that the magician's work had put him in that state, and that as soon
as the magician stopped his work, everything ceased.
Well, I have lived many years, and we know those things to exist, but I didn't attach any importance
to them because to me they seemed powerless.... Indeed, they have never affected me (a few Tantrics
did do some magic and succeeded in making me ill, but that had quite another character; this boy's
story is in the lowest, most material vital domain, you see), and only lately did I notice those little
games. They didn't affect me in the least - it was like images shown on a cinema screen, unsightly
images, and I just thought, "What's the point?" Still, I did my cleanup, out of habit. But then, when I
heard that story, I thought, "Well, I must be teaching a good lesson or two to all those people who do
dirty magic!"
In other words, one domain after another, one difficulty after another, one kind of obstacle after
another (obstacles that are either subconscious or in the most material consciousness or the lower vital),
it all comes for an ACTION. An action which is very sustained and varied; even when some other thing
(some other difficulty or problem) is in the foreground, predominant in the consciousness, everything is
there [in the surrounding atmosphere], and all the time there is that Light (Mother makes a gesture of
cleaning in the atmosphere) which has always been with me - of which I became totally conscious
with Madame Thon, who told me what it was - a Light I have always kept with me, a white Light,
absolutely pure, so dazzlingly white that eyes cannot look at it, a Light which is...
(long silence
Mother goes off into that Light,
her eyes closed)
I will say what it is later.
But at any rate, that is the force Durga wields. And that force is INVINCIBLE for Asuras - it's a
fact. What it is... we will know later.
(silence)
But it isn't total Victory, no. It isn't the power of transformation. The other day, I told you, I think, that
one of my present activities consisted of a sort of conscious concentration on one person or another,
one thing or another, to obtain the desired result. For years on end, the Will and Force acted from

above, and the outer conscious being [of Mother] wasn't concerned with anything further, knowing that
it would only make things more complicated instead of helping them, and that the Force left to itself,
directly under the supreme Impulsion, worked things out far better and far more accurately. But over
these last months, there have come a will and a tendency to make the material being [of Mother]
participate consciously in the details of execution. It has a kind of passive obedience, and so, once that
was willed [the need for Mother's material intervention], it began to happen. There was a case recently,
with a very good friend of the Ashram, a man with an important position who has been very, very
useful. He had to be operated on (I won't tell the whole story, it would be too long); we received two or
three wires a day, I followed the thing step by step. There was a very powerful force of destruction - it
was a very grim battle - and there was a will to keep him, because in this body he had been very useful,
he was still very useful and could still be very useful. He had a great faith, a great trust, and he was
conscious (his consciousness was very sufficiently developed: I saw him constantly and constantly he
came to me). He fell into a butcher's hands; anyway, it was a wretched thing. Still, even though
everyone expected him to leave his body, he held on and was constantly saying (we were kept informed
by his son) and feeling that it was I who was keeping him alive. I could even see what they should have
done and constantly I sent the formation, the thought, "But THIS is what should be done," insistently.
Finally they caught my thought, but I think (I can't say, I don't know the details, the small material
details), I think probably they didn't do exactly what they should have - that's why I say they must have
been butchers. Thus they performed three operations in a row, and after undergoing all that, he came to
me (before also he used to come very often - they said he was drowsy all the time, in a semi-coma, but
that's not it: he was living inwardly), he came to me, totally conscious as usual, but he said, "I am afraid
my body is irretrievably ruined, and if I survive now, instead of this body being a help and a tool of
work, it will be a hindrance, an impediment, a source of difficulty, so I have come to ask to be freed - I
prefer to enter a new body." I answered immediately, "But as you are, you are useful, very useful; the
position you occupy makes you very useful; you are totally conscious; it would be good if you could
recover." He listened, again insisted a little, I too insisted, and then he left.
The next morning, he was much better. I was hoping he had decided to stay, but we were without
news for about twenty-four hours, till suddenly we were told he had stopped breathing and was being
given oxygen. And then he left.
And I saw it so clearly: had he consented... (naturally, every being's soul is free, it is free to decide),
had he consented to stay on, I would have had enough power to keep him, to maintain his body in a
condition good enough to keep him alive, BUT I DIDN'T HAVE THE POWER TO UNDO THE
DAMAGE DONE - that isn't there yet.
That showed me the exact extent. That isn't there yet. The transformation isn't there yet.
I mean it's not something I have at my COMMAND and can pass on to someone. Many other
powers are at my command and can be passed on to one or another, but this...
Now I'll try (I always say "try" because... there are always ill-intentioned ears listening in!),
anyway, the next step is to give him a new dwelling. This belongs to the domain of things that are not
only feasible but done all the time.
He was very conscious, with a lovely faith. He was an active man, very energetic (a short man).
How active! And very energetic, with great authority, oh!... The idea of being dependent on people
who would have to nurse him... he preferred to leave. He was conscious enough to know that the
essence of his being, of his experience, is not lost - but still there is all that materially one has built
painstakingly, and especially in his case, his position is the result of a whole life. I don't know....
Begin again in a little baby?... (Mother shakes her head negatively) There's the rub, you see. When
Sri Aurobindo left, he said, "I will return in a being formed supramentally - entirely conscious, with
full capacities."

July 10, 1963
(Regarding the English translation of "The Adventure of Consciousness":)
... What's impossible to translate is the musical rhythm of the sentence - that's impossible. Because the
English rhythm and the French rhythm are very different in character, and if you translate literally
something that has a poetic rhythm in English, it may not come out poetic at all in French. So a
translation is a translation, we have to settle for it.... But there will still be quite enough ideas left to do
people some good!
Yes, but sometimes it becomes quite jerky. The French has a staccato, powerful rhythm, so in
English it gives an impression of small bits cut and pasted together. But anyway, I think she is
doing as well as can be done.
But Sri Aurobindo always told me that French once translated makes good English, while English once
translated makes poor French. Because there is a precision in the language that comes from the
translation, but that doesn't exist in natural English. Anyhow, I know it will do.
***
(Then Mother reads out a passage from "Savitri":)
There's something here....
A
slow
reversal's
movement
then
took
A
gas
belched
out
from
some
invisible
Of
its
dense
rings
were
formed
these
million
Upon earth's new-born soil God's tread was heard.

place:
Fire,
stars;

(II.I.101)
It's magnificent... magnificent.
In French it would be poor.
I don't seek to translate poetically, I only try to render the meaning. I read the English sentence until
I SEE the meaning clearly, and once I see it, I put it into French, but very awkwardly - I don't claim to
be a poet! Only, the meaning is correct.
This translation will not serve any purpose - it serves a purpose only for me. But I don't even have
the time, I can hardly spare half an hour a day for this work - I hope I can offer myself half an hour a

day!
***
(Satprem reads Mother a previous conversation, of May 11, in which Mother said that the true mantra
is not the one given you by a guru but the mantra that wells up from within spontaneously, like the cry
of your soul.)
But how is it, if the mantra automatically contains the power of the experience, that it is always
said that unless you have been "given" the mantra by your guru, it has no power?
That's when you have no power of your own, naturally! If, for example, just anybody comes to me and
asks me for a mantra, I won't tell him he should find his own mantra inside....
What I said there applies to those who are in contact with their soul. But those who have no
conscious contact with their soul cannot find their mantra - their head will search for words, but that's
nothing. I said the mantra must well up from within - but for them, nothing will well up! They won't
find it. They won't find it, not a chance! So in that case, the guru passes on his own power.
Yes, but when you read a mantra in a book, for instance, it is said there's no force in it - how is
that, since the vibration is there?
But if you have the power within yourself and read the book, you will get the force! (Mother laughs)
What's required is the capacity to feel and make contact.
Ultimately, what does the guru do? He connects (gesture of junction), he is nothing but a link. It's
not "his" power he gives you (that's what he thinks, but it's not true): he is the link. He brings you into
contact with the Power - a contact you don't have without him. But those who don't need a guru will
make contact WITHOUT a guru.
It's not at all like something he pulls out of his pocket and offers you! That's not it at all: it's the
power to make contact.
(silence)
Ultimately, it's simply a question of consciousness: people (ordinary people) have a consciousness that
reaches up to a certain point (a point not very far away generally), and what's beyond it, to them, is the
"unconscious" (although it's full of consciousness!), but it's unconscious to them because they can't
make contact. It's the same as when at night you wake up in another state of being, become conscious
and have a "dream" (what people call a dream, meaning an experience), then you return to your
ordinary consciousness, and as there is no contact between the two consciousnesses, you don't even
remember your dream. But you can, through methodical development, extend your consciousness and
make a connection between the two; and the minute the connection is made, it takes very little to
remember everything. But what's difficult is to extend your consciousness.
Basically, the guru's real power is to fill up the gaps! To bring you into contact: when you are in the
higher planes, to bring you into contact with the Highest. Or to bring you into contact with your soul,
your psychic being within, or to bring you into contact with the Supreme - but that not many can do.

(silence)
That's what I saw when I spoke to you the other day about what I called a "bath of the Lord." The
atmosphere was full, really chockfull of a Presence (you can't even call it a "vibration," it's much more
than a vibration: it's a Presence), but when people enter it, they don't feel anything! Or if they do, they
don't even understand, it doesn't correspond to anything in their consciousness. But if I concentrate a
particular vibration on their consciousness, I bring them into contact with it. And all of a sudden they
feel something, with the impression that it's a new thing - it's nothing new! What's new is their capacity
to perceive the thing.
In a general way, that's how it works: the Lord is everywhere, His vibration is everywhere, but
what's new is the capacity to feel Him or be conscious of Him. From all eternity He has been there, for
all eternity He shall be there.
And the experience I have constantly - constantly - isn't that I go in search of something that's not
there and bring it where it wasn't! When I tell the Lord, "Manifest Yourself," I don't mean He hasn't
manifested! I mean: "Give us the power to feel Your manifestation." We should say: "Become
manifest.... Grant that we may grow conscious of Your Presence."
And that gives a clear sense of Unreality and Unconsciousness - and of all the consequent disorder.
Because there is a CONSTANT Reality, a CONSTANT divine Order, and it's only the incapacity to
perceive it that makes the present Disorder and Falsehood.
The experiences go on multiplying. But then, outwardly, everyone seems to start squabbling and
quarreling with each other (laughing) much more than before, even (!), over the most futile things in
the world and most unnecessarily, without any ground, just like that. And then, to me the two sides
become visible at once: the true thing and its deformation; the event as it should occur and its
deformation. Yet the event REMAINS THE SAME - the deformation is merely a sort of excrescence
added on to it, which is absolutely unnecessary and complicates things atrociously, for no reason. And
also which gives a strong impression of Falsehood (in the English sense of falsehood, not lie81 ):
something without meaning or purpose, absolutely unnecessary and perfectly idiotic - then why is it
there??... Seized and twisted - everything is seized and twisted. Where does that habit of twisting
things come from? I don't know.
Ultimately one wonders who finds it amusing?! People complain, they say they're wretched - but
it's their own fault! They're the first to twist things! If they didn't have that habit, everything would be
perfectly simple.
And events would NOT be changed.
(silence)
Voil.
Nothing else?
Or do you want to ask something?
No.... I was contemplating what you said.... It's true, we see things from the wrong end.
Exactly! That's exactly it!
These days I am EXPERIENCING that every minute, for everything, everything - everyone and
81In French the same word, mensonge, has both senses.

everything around me, at EVERY minute. It's extremely interesting.
I'll give you the example of what Pavitra told me yesterday: he always used to go out of his body in
his aspiration and to rise very high - I told him a hundred times that he shouldn't do it, it wasn't good
(for HIM; to another I would have said to do it). He never understood, and every time he meditated,
brrt! he would go out of his body. Then the other day he told me, "Ah, now I've understood! I was
always seeking Mother up above, till suddenly I couldn't find anything any more. So I concentrated
here [in the body], and I found Mother immediately." And he added, "It's because now Mother is here!"
(Mother laughs) I didn't explain anything, but that was exactly the point!
I didn't tell him anything, but I smiled as though he had made a discovery!
People try to come into contact with something that's HERE!
(silence)
And the Power... I would have to tell a mountain of experiences. For years and years and years, the
Power was like this (gesture above the head): the Consciousness is there and the Power acts from there
(same gesture). But it takes a long time to materialize (it depends on the person, but anyway, it always
takes some time to materialize), and it gets distorted on the way, so that what's left is a rather
ineffective residue. And I was wondering within me, "But for all that to change, a DIRECT power is
needed! A power that would make itself felt directly, in other words, that would pass from cell to cell:
vibrations of the same quality...." It's beginning to come. But I was also wondering why it didn't come
faster.... Although I know very well: it's because we distort everything; we are so accustomed to living
in a MENTALIZED consciousness that we distort everything, and naturally the Power cannot come
just to get distorted. So now, the lesson is this: the Power comes for a specific action, for instance, to
act on someone - the Power is here, it acts - and at the same time, I am given the opportunity to
observe, really to VISUALIZE the... (how should I put it?)... Sri Aurobindo uses the word accretion
("outgrowth" isn't the word, it gives the feeling of something growing from within out - that's not it, it's
something that comes from outside and is added on). I visualize how deformation sets in and is
automatically added on to the Power - which spoils everything. So the Power stops short, everything
reverts to its place... and it starts all over again.
It takes a very sharp, attentive, and above all impersonal observation (impersonal in the sense of
objective, without any reaction) to see those things.
Only little by little, little by little do you learn the true functioning; because those things that are
added on and spoil everything aren't deliberate additions arising from a desire or impatience or
overenthusiasm - it's none of that, it's due to... a habit. It's quite simply a habit. That is, the
psychological element is purified and doesn't interfere: it's just a habit. The SUBSTANCE has the habit
of doing things that way, and so it does them that way. So it must be taught not to stir, to keep quiet, so
that when the Vibration comes, the something that always rushes forward doesn't do so.
It's very interesting.
As though you were standing on the threshold of a stu-pen-dous realization that depends on a
VERY SMALL thing.
(silence)
Sri Aurobindo said somewhere that miraculous realizations do not last (they do occur, but they don't
last), and that transformation alone will effect a lasting change - now I understand! Because some
people happen, for some reason or other (a moment or a flash, or for a particular purpose), to receive
the Force: all at once the Force comes, goes through them and acts, producing a fantastic result, but... it

doesn't recur. It cannot recur, because it's like a combination of circumstances, nothing else. It's only
when a modest work of this kind, a work of "local" transformation, so to speak, is completed and when
there is the FULL consciousness with the FULL mastery of how to use the Force without anything
interfering, that... it will be like a chemistry experiment you have learned to perform correctly: you can
repeat it at will every time it's necessary.
That's the period of work under way. Very interesting. But there's no glory in it!

July 13, 1963
I receive letters from everywhere, from Argentina, Canada and so on, from people I don't know but
who are really sweet. Listen to this one (Mother takes a letter from beside her), it's from the mother of
Z, who is here: If I were within walking distance of you, I would pick a rose, not yet full bloomed,
laden and fragrant, to lay at your feet. This sounds like a love letter - well, it is! My son has been
trying to teach me through you that all letters should be love letters.... It's lovely. So I replied like this:
Indeed, all life is love if we know how to live it.
And then Nolini told me...
(Mother relates
some Ashram affairs)
... The Force seems to act more strongly at a distance than near at hand - it's odd. That is to say, it
catches hold of people and won't let go of them. Naturally, near at hand, there is always in me the
constant will not to influence: to act without influencing, allowing a total freedom. And that... to tell the
truth, people aren't ready for it. Yet that's how I understand things! I have the feeling that the world
cannot be true unless it's absolutely free.
And the more power you have, the less you should influence.
But it [the will not to influence] is probably in my very material consciousness, so at a distance it
doesn't count: people are caught, seized, held tight, and the Force won't let go of them. Very
interesting.
***
(Then Mother tells about X's visit)
I gave him his "bath of the Lord"!
It was very interesting. I had to see someone before him, and I wanted enough time to prepare the
atmosphere, but it didn't last too long. Then "it" condensed and accumulated. It made an absolutely still
atmosphere, with only the internal vibration - I don't know how to explain.... I've said this a few times

already: there is a Force which doesn't move and consequently can be said to be absolutely still, yet has
an INNER intensity of vibration far more considerable than the vibration of motion. And it's a PALE
golden light: it isn't white at all, it's golden. But not an intense gold: a pale color. It filled everything
(there were no more walls in the room), and it was condensed, so condensed, as if... tight as if... under
pressure, you know. There was nothing left but the inner vibration.
He came in, and there was only the ripple of his coming in. It took him maybe a minute or two to
adapt. I don't know what his first impression was, but he looked visibly somewhat embarrassed - not ill
at ease, but almost surprised, as if wondering, "What's going on?" Then after not even two minutes, he
made his usual movement and stayed exactly twenty-two minutes without ANYTHING stirring.
Nothing stirred. The atmosphere was absolutely still, without a thought, a movement, a reaction or
anything.
Afterwards there came from outside the thought that the time was up (I had asked C. to open the
door, and it hadn't opened yet), it made a slight disturbance, and it came precisely from where C. must
have been. Then I saw that the door was open: it was twenty-two minutes later. So I looked at X once
or twice and he opened his eyes.
I must say it's exceptional.
For five minutes, ten minutes (with one or two people I even went to a little over ten minutes), it
happened that everything stayed like that, absolutely motionless: not a thought, you understand,
nothing. The atmosphere was well prepared, but generally it doesn't last with people, even the best
disposed in the world: after a while, they can't hold on - they can't bear it any more.
And the remarkable thing with him was the silence. The mental silence.
The other times, I told you, I more or less followed him to see what happened. The first time I saw
him here [in the upper room], his aspiration rose in a cone, but a cone that was a little rigid and with a
spiritual silver light that gave a feeling of... (what shall I say?) a commonplace light, I don't know how
to explain... something very common, nothing exceptional. It was like a cone, tapering to a pointed tip,
a very pointed tip ending in a nonexistent point - a nonexistence. It wasn't very satisfying. But this
time... As a matter of fact, that was why I wanted to prepare the atmosphere, I wanted to see. It was
good.
***
A little later:

So what do you bring me?
A letter from the publisher.
Ah!
Here's what he says: "I must now bring myself to write to you. With regret and sadness, I confess,
since it is to inform you that we do not think it possible to publish your book 'Sri Aurobindo or the
Adventure of Consciousness.' I confess that what prevented me from writing to you earlier is not so
much the fear of causing you pain, for you are able to rise above the shock such news cannot but
cause, as the fact that I knew it would be impossible to explain our reasons to you. Frankly, we
cannot really understand this book. And how to explain the reasons for not understanding
something? As for me, I often had the feeling of passing from one plane to another, from the level of

fact to that of conjecture, from the level of logic (with defined terms as a starting point) to that of
presupposition (within a coherence unconnected with the knowledge you offer). I know that all this
is disputable. I also know or guess that behind those pages lies an entire lived experience, but one
doesn't feel the reader can participate in it. For what reason? Once again, I cannot say. The
reader's blindness, quite possibly. The mind's limitation, too. But a book must build a bridge, pierce
the screen, and there are doubtless cases in which doing so no longer depends on the author. I must
therefore return this manuscript to you." (signed: P.A.L.)
He's all at sea. It's very funny!
It doesn't matter at all.
??
Yes, it means the book is really very good.
!?
I had a feeling Sri Aurobindo put a lot of his force into it to make it a revelation - a lot. And I became
convinced that my impression was correct when Pavitra told me it had opened some doors to him that
had never opened before. But that means it has to be read by people who already know a lot. This book
is perhaps a step forward, not merely an explanation.
We'll see in America; I think it will be a great success there.
There are fewer barriers there.
They're younger, that is. They're young and still feel they WANT to learn - they blunder, they make a
mess of many things, but there remains that need to learn.
The French are a little stale.
They're caught in refined but terrible constructions.
Yes. And also they are too aware of being intelligent. They're imprisoned in intellectual castles!
I almost felt like sending my blessings to your publisher.... If he began to understand, it would be
fun!
I'm not all that hopeful!
Do you think the cells aren't over there!
No, but there's their whole formation.
That's on another level.
It will come one day.
No, but I've had a contact.
?

Just now, as I spoke to you. That's why I told you I felt like sending him my blessings. "With my
blessings THAT YOU MAY UNDERSTAND!"
Yes, suddenly a contact.
We'll witness some strange things - you can be sure of that.
The Force works in extraordinary ways.... I will tell you about that another time, not today.

July 17, 1963
Nolini told me that every day since the Force has been on the increase, there's a shower of letters from
people who cry out their misery, whether moral or material. It's a general cry for help, and, he told me,
"The remarkable thing is that no one asks for material help," they all ask for my blessings and say
(because they have faith) it brings them relief. He said, "It's the identical note in almost all the letters."
Contacts with the outside have increased considerably; formerly, it was only with people who knew
me, but now it's with scores of absolutely unknown people.
During the part of the night reserved for the work (generally between 2 and 4:30 in the morning... it
varies a little), daily now I see people whom I don't know physically - all the time, all the time, and
with lots of work. The work I used to do with the people around me now seems to be spreading: I go to
some places that I don't know at all. And always, always something under construction - always under
construction, always. Sometimes I am even testing some new constructions, I mean I try to go this way,
that way, do something, try this, try that.82 And at the same time, I am working with people who, on the
other hand, aren't part of those constructions - they're on the sidelines. To such a point that when I
woke up this morning I said to myself, "But isn't this going to stop? Won't I get some rest!" But it was
always an answer (an answer not in words but in FACTS), an instantaneous answer - taking no time,
not gradual: instantaneous.83
And along with this, there's a vast, "dead-calm" rest (if you know what I mean?) in that Light -
probably the Light as it will manifest. It's a golden Light, not very intense or very pale either; a little
less pale than the one that I said comes when I concentrate 84 ; a little more intense than that, though not
dark - a golden Light, absolutely immobile, with such an inner intensity of vibration that it's beyond all
82A few days afterwards, as Satprem was referring to these "constructions," Mother interrupted him with this observation:
"Last night, it wasn't that way! I spent more than an hour in all the possible theosophical groups, and they had magnificent
buildings! They were rather old (!), but magnificent anyway, with gardens, halls, auditoriums - magnificent places. But
there was no sign of any new construction. It was solid with hundreds and hundreds of very busy people. I was there for
more than two hours. Which means there are places where no construction is going on - people live in what has already
been built."
83Mother is referring to her own answer in the form of help or action.
84See last conversation, when Mother spoke of X's visit.

perception. And then it's perfect rest - instantly. So as soon as I complain, the same ironic remark
always comes: "Oh, when one can have that in the midst of work, one ought not to complain!" The two
states are... I can't say simultaneous (naturally it's not one after the other, both are there together), but
it's not like two things next to each other, it's... two ways of looking, I could say, two points - not
points of view... a horizontal look, and a look that's... or rather, a specific look and an overall look. A
specific look, that of the immediate activity, and an overall and constant look, that of the whole; and as
soon as you look at the whole, it's... (dead-calm gesture) immutable peace, unvarying rest. And then
things seem to become swollen - swollen with an infinite content.
It requires no preparation, it isn't something you have to attain: it's ALWAYS there. Only, it also
stems from the fact that I am not here (that's so clear, so clear, it needs no reflection or observation, it's
such a well-established fact)... I am not here for anything, anything whatsoever, any satisfaction of any
sort, on any level, any point - none of that exists any more, that has no more reality, no more existence.
The only thing I still FEEL is a sort of... not an aspiration, not a will, not an adherence or enthusiasm,
but something that is... maybe it's more like a power: to do the Lord's Work. At the same time, I feel
the Lord... you understand, He isn't in front of me or outside of me! That's not it, He is everywhere
and... He is everywhere and I am everywhere with Him. But what holds these cells together in a
permanent form is that something which is at once the will and power (and something more than both)
to do the Lord's work. It contains something which probably is translated in people's consciousnesses
as Bliss, Ananda (I must say it's an aspect of the problem I am not concerned with). Something like the
intensity of a superlove as yet unmanifest - it's impossible to say.
Some time ago I made a discovery of that kind: someone asked me if there was any difference
between Ananda and Love; I said, "No." Then he said to me, "But then how is it that some people feel
Ananda while others feel Love?..." I answered him, "Yes! Those who feel Ananda are those who like to
receive, who have the capacity to receive, and those who feel Love are those who have the capacity to
give." But it's the same thing: you receive it as Ananda, you give it as Love.
So, probably, someone more on the "receiving" side would call that Vibration Ananda - maybe
that's what people call the "joy of life," I don't know.... It has absolutely nothing to do with what human
beings call joy. It's really the feeling of something full rather than empty - life as people live it, as I see
them live it, is something hollow, empty, dry. Hollow. Hard and hollow together. And empty. So when
I do that work, as I told you, all that's around me, all the work and everything is... yes, it gives an
impression of being dry and hollow; while when the other thing is there, you instantly get an
impression of full-full-full-full - full! Overflowing, you know, no more bounds. So full that all, but all
bounds are swept away, erased, gone - and there remains only That, that Something. That's why the
cells remain held together - it's because of That, for That, by That. For no other reason.
It's growing increasingly constant and evident - natural, spontaneous. And the growing feeling that
You - you know, the You, the You of adoration - You... is only for the fun of it! I don't know how to
explain. It's almost like a burst of laughter... so obvious is it that there is no difference. Yes, there's only
this: "Oh, it's so much fun to say 'You'!" That's how it is.
All this goes on here, in the body.

July 20, 1963
So what would you like to tell me? Tell me a story!
I don't have anything interesting to tell. I have quite a stagnant feeling.
Anyway, this time I've observed, carefully observed X's arrival, stay and departure. Because there were
different opinions: some very unfavorable, that he always brought difficulties; others, that he always
brought something positive. Well, to tell you the truth, there is nothing to it, ONLY what people think.
Yes.
Simply what they think. Otherwise, his arrival, his stay, his meditations, his departure: absolutely
neutral. In other words, I noticed neither increased difficulties nor improved conditions. Things carry
on in their own sweet way without any difference. The two atmospheres mingle without anything
changing.
I had decided I would study the thing very carefully, absolutely objectively, in order to be sure -
because I had around me all the waves of all the impressions, well-disposed as well as ill-disposed, and
I found all that whirl ridiculous. I conducted my observation in a most scientific and objective way: the
whole, entire effect is purely mental. The whole whirl - mental.
There you have it.
That's all.
And for you, did he tell you anything? For your yantram? Didn't you ask him?
I've lost the habit of asking him!
He doesn't answer.
So I stopped asking long ago.
But, no! It's because he doesn't know what to answer.
Maybe!
No, no, now I am sure! At the beginning I thought: maybe it's because... But, no. I am sure.
All right.
How long do you still have to do it [the yantram]?
Till the end of December.
The end of December.... The Force, the Power may act, mind you - only, X as an instrument is... barely
conscious. It may pass through him - I don't say it won't. Because the remarkable point in the
meditations (I took a good look this time) is that at the moment of his best, most complete receptivity, I
had to come down to X's most material form to find a form - all the rest, there was no more form.
Which means the inner being isn't individualized: it's identified, merged. And that's precisely what Sri
Aurobindo explains so well: the difference between one who identifies with the Supreme through selfannihilation and one who can express the Supreme (gesture of pulling downward) in a perfected being

and everywhere. That's what makes the whole difference. Of X there remained only the outer husk, so
to say (a coarse enough husk, besides, thick and heavy, with very heavy vibrations), it was there, sitting
in front of me and empty: the consciousness was gone (gesture showing the consciousness spread out
or dissolved in the Infinite). So his power acts in an almost mediumistic manner, which means that
when it is X who speaks, it's something quite ordinary, but the Force can come through him.
But curiously enough, that "yantram" seems to exasperate the physical mind.
Doesn't it set something at rest in your mind?
Generally, it makes the most material mind extremely active.
Extremely active...?
I have great difficulty keeping a hold on it. A domestic detail, for instance, some utterly material
things invade my consciousness. The rest is always quiet, but utterly material things become very
active.
Probably it pulls the Force down into a very material domain....
All right. It will calm down as it develops.
Yes, I think so. In fact I can see that it's good, it's useful.
Oh, yes! Certainly.
But apart from that, I've had a great sense of inner stagnation for a few months: there's no
progress. Up there, there's always something: if I climb up there and meditate, if I connect myself
up there, everything is fine, but... it seems to me it can go on for centuries!
Yes.
... Without anything changing. I have no sense of progress.
It's because the action, the power of progress now acts in the thick of Matter. And down there, there's a
long, long way to go - a long way, oh!...
We can only arm ourselves with patience, that's all. That's the only thing we can do. Be patient.
But materially, is your body better or...?
Because that's where the progress is taking place.
(silence)
All the habitual rhythms of the material world have changed.... The body had based its sort of sense of
good health on a certain number of vibrations, and whenever those vibrations were present, it felt in
good health; when something came and disturbed them, it felt that it was about to fall ill or that it was
ill, depending on the intensity. All that has changed now: those basic vibrations have simply been
removed, they no longer exist; the vibrations on which the body based its sense of good or ill health -
removed. They are replaced by something else, and something else of such a nature that "good health"
and "illness" have lost all meaning! Now, there is the sense of an established harmony among the cells,

increasingly established among the cells, which represents the right functioning, whatever that may be:
it's no longer a question of a stomach or a heart or this or that. And the slightest thing that comes and
disturbs that harmony is VERY painful, but at the same time there is the knowledge of what to do to
reestablish the harmony instantly; and if the harmony is reestablished, the functioning isn't affected.
But if out of curiosity, for instance (it's a mental illness in humans), you start asking yourself, "What's
that? What effect will it have? What's going to happen?" (what the body calls "the desire to learn"), if
you are unlucky enough to be that way, you can be sure (laughing) that you'll have something very
unpleasant which, according to the doctor (according to ignoramuses), becomes an illness or disrupts
the body's functioning. While if you don't have that unhealthy curiosity and, on the contrary, will the
harmony not to be disrupted, you only have to, we could say poetically, bring one drop of the Lord on
the troubled spot for everything to be fine again.
The body is unable to know things in the way it did formerly.
So there is a period when you are in suspense: no longer this, not yet that, just in between. It's a
difficult period when you have to be very quiet, very patient, and above all - above all - never become
afraid or irritated or impatient, because that's catastrophic. And the difficulty is that from all quarters
and without letup come all the idiotic suggestions of ordinary thinking: age, deterioration, the
possibility of death, the constant threat of illness, of the slightest thing - illness, dotage... decay. It
comes all the time, all the time, all the time; and all the time this poor harried body has to remain very
quiet and not to listen, preoccupied only with maintaining its vibrations in a harmonious state.
Sometimes I catch it (that must be something quite common among human beings) in a sort of haste
- a haste, a kind of impatience, and also, I can't say fear or anxiety, but a sense of uncertainty. The two
together: impatience to get out of the present moment to the immediately next, and at the same time
uncertainty as to what that immediately next moment is going to bring. The whole thing makes a
vibration of restlessness - what's the word in French?
Febrility, agitation?
That's too much - "agitation" is too much, it's rather a lack of rest. Not agitation really, but something
that lacks the rest of certainty. I constantly catch my cells being like that. Naturally I react, but for them
it's a very normal state: always straining after the next moment, never the quietude of the present
moment. The result (the words I use give a very concrete character to something rather fluid), the result
is the feeling that you have to bear or endure, and the haste to get out of that enduring, along with the
hope (a very faint and flimsy hope) that the next moment will be better. That's how it is from moment
to moment, from moment to moment, from moment to moment. As soon as the Consciousness comes
(gesture of descent) and concentrates, as soon as I bring the Consciousness into the present moment,
everything becomes quiet, immobile, eternal. But if I am not CONSTANTLY attentive, the other
condition [of restlessness] comes almost as a subconsciousness: it's always there. And VERY tiring - it
must be one of the most important sources of fatigue in mankind. Especially here (Mother touches her
forehead and temples), it's very tiring. Only when you can live in the eternity of the present minute
does it all stop - everything becomes white, immobile, calm, everything is fine.
But it means constant vigilance - constant. It's infinitely more difficult than when one worked even
in the vital; in the vital, it's nothing, it's child's play in comparison. But here, phew!... Because, you see,
in the mind or the vital, it's all movements of organization, of action, of choice, of decision - it's very
easy to decide, to rule! But that cellular tension is there EVERY SECOND: it's the activity inherent in
material existence. It's only when you go into samadhi that it stops. That is, when outwardly you are in
trance. Then it stops.
From time to time - two, three times a day - I am given a few minutes of it. It's a marvelous

relaxation. But I always come out of it (I mean the BODY comes out of it) with an anxiety, in the sense
that it says, "Oh, I've forgotten to live!" Very odd. Only one second, but a second of anxiety: "Oh, I've
forgotten to live!" - and the drama starts all over again.
No, it's no fun. It's interesting only for someone who finds interest in EVERYTHING, to whom
EVERYTHING is interesting, that is to say, who has the sort of will for perfection that neglects no
detail - otherwise, it isn't... As soon as you enter the mental realm, of course, the mind says, "Ah, no!
No, it's a waste of time." It isn't, but the mind regards all that as twaddle.
(silence)
I said just now that when I come out of those moments of trance, the body feels, "Oh, I've forgotten to
live...." It isn't "live," it's the feeling: I've forgotten to act or concentrate, or to do the thing needed; the
feeling of a servant who for a minute has stopped his work - that's it. It's just a flash, then at once
comes the sense of the divine Presence, and it's all over.
It's not the word "live," no, it's "To do what one is supposed to do."
It happens especially during daytime (between 12:30 and 1 o'clock - not for long, a few minutes, I
can't say; and between 5:30 and 6). At night it's not the same, because (I think I've told you already) as
soon as I stretch out, the whole body is like a prayer. It's more than an aspiration, it's an intense need:
"Lord, take hold of me ENTIRELY! So there may be nothing but You," and that always brings about a
result [the trance] - which may last more or less long, until (how can I put it?)... the moment "agreed
upon" comes! Then when I wake up, or rather when the body emerges from that state, it knows it's
agreed upon, it doesn't have that anxiety. I don't know how to explain.... In terms of consciousness it's
almost like a child: very simple, very simple. No complications, no complications whatever, very
simple: to do what is to be done in the proper way while expressing the supreme Will.... That is, to
bring as little mixture as possible to the supreme Will (it's not a question of Will: the Movement, the
Vibration), as little mixture or distortion or deterioration as possible to the Vibration - we always
translate into words that are too intellectual.
But the body is docile, full of goodwill. Only I find it's a little bit of a whiner (that must be
particular to this one, I am sure other bodies are different), it isn't spontaneously joyful. Not that it
complains, not at all, but... Perhaps it's due to that sort of concentration of Force of progress - it's not a
blissful satisfaction, far from it. It's a long time since it stopped enjoying ordinary satisfactions, like the
sense of taste, of smell: it doesn't enjoy any of that - it is conscious, very conscious, it can discern
things very clearly, but in an entirely objective way, without deriving any pleasure from them.
Yet it has a spontaneous tendency to find itself incapable; and it receives the same answer all the
time: "That's still the ego." That happens so often, it says to the Lord, "Look how incapable I am of
doing what You want," and pat comes the answer, direct, in a flash: "Don't bother about that, it's not
your business!" Naturally, I put it into words to express myself, but it isn't words, it's only sensations -
not even "sensations": vibrations.
Voil.
So all that must be having repercussions on the others, like Pavitra, when he told me the other day
he was seeking me "up above" and could no longer find me! This very down-to-earth state (we can
really call it down-to-earth), this very down-to-earth state of things may also create... not an increased
heaviness (because God knows it isn't heavy! It's so luminous, vibrant, luminous, so vibrant, vibrant),
that's not it, but it's really at ground level. At ground level. It has none of the flights and enthusiasms of
mental things, visions and all that. So it appears a little monotonous and very much at ground level.

Yes, but we don't have the sense of participating in something. You are conscious, while we're not.
Exactly, there's nothing to satisfy you one way or the other!
Yes, but if we were conscious, at least we would see that something is happening, but as we are
unconscious, we aren't aware of anything.
But how can you say that something is "happening," mon petit!
We would see a work is being done.... As it is, we don't see anything.
But, no, you can't "see"! How can you?
(silence)
I have a kind of certitude (not quite formulated in words: a certitude in sensation, in feeling) that once
this work is completed, the result will be... almost like a thunderbolt. Because the Power's action
through the mind gets diluted, qualified, adapted, altered, and so on, and how much reaches down here?
(gesture as of water disappearing into sand) While the day it acts through this matter (Mother touches
her body), obviously it will be overwhelming. There isn't a shadow of doubt. But when will that be?
After how long? I can't say. When you see the thing in detail, you know, it appears interminable.
I console myself with the thought that the ways of the Lord are unknown to us, and that the day it
pleases Him to declare, "Here, now it's all changed," (Mother laughs) all we'll have to do is
contemplate!
But when? I don't know. Voil.
We must have endurance, patience, and trust too - to last and last and last. Because ultimately,
whatever way you look at it, that's the only solution. All the roundabout routes people follow (zigzag
gesture as if to show the spiritual disciplines and all the usual human quests) are simply to give you the
illusion that you are doing something.
That's quite clear.
(silence)
All the same, I have some hope that in February next year 85 something will be tangible. But...
(laughing) Sri Aurobindo says that man lives on hope from the cradle to the grave! Anyhow, mine isn't
the same kind of hope: it's a sort of sensation. Something may happen next February - we'll see.

July 24, 1963
85Second anniversary of the supramental Manifestation.

(Mother first reads in English an unpublished letter of Sri Aurobindo's:)
"About the present civilisation, it is not this which has to be saved; it is the world that has to
be saved and that will surely be done, though it may not be so easily or so soon as some wish
or imagine or in the way that they imagine. The present must surely change, but whether by
a destruction or a new construction on the basis of a greater Truth, is the issue. The Mother
has left... (Mother laughs) this question hanging and I can only do the same."
(September 1945)
It's marvelous! (Mother laughs) Marvelous. And it was written in '45, that is to say during the war - the
war hadn't ended yet.
It was the end.86
I intend to distribute this for August 15.
(Satprem, in English:) Is it still hanging?
(Mother laughs
and does not reply)
There are two other letters:
"To bring the Divine Love and Beauty and Ananda into the world is, indeed, the whole
crown and essence of our yoga. But it has always seemed to me impossible unless there
comes as its support and foundation and guard the Divine Truth - what I call the
supramental - and its Divine Power...."
(XXIII.753)
Here it's clear: he says that what he calls the "Supramental" is the Divine Truth, and that it must come
first, and the rest comes afterwards.
And yet, for some time now and increasingly, there has been an extremely concrete Response to a
kind of aspiration (a call or prayer) in which I say to the Lord, "Supreme Lord, manifest Your Love."
(It comes at the end of a long invocation in which I ask Him to manifest all His aspects one after
another, one after another, and it ends like that.) But then, remarkably enough, at that moment there
comes a Response which is growing clearer and clearer, stronger and stronger.... But Sri Aurobindo
says that Truth should be established first, and that what he calls the Supramental is the supreme Truth,
the Divine Truth. It corresponds to what I noticed while translating that last chapter on "the perfection
of the being" in the "Yoga of Self-Perfection": I kept thinking, "But that's only the aspect of Truth; all
that he expresses is the aspect of Truth; always and everywhere, it's the angle of Truth; and his
supramental action is an action of Truth."
I didn't know he had said it, but it's written clearly here:
"... But it has always seemed to me impossible unless there comes as its support and
foundation and guard the Divine Truth - what I call the supramental - and its Divine Power.
86May 7, 1945, in Europe and August 15 in Japan.

Otherwise Love itself blinded by the confusions of this present consciousness may stumble
in its human receptacles and, even otherwise, may find itself unrecognised, rejected or
rapidly degenerating and lost in the frailty of man's inferior nature. But when it comes in the
divine truth and power, Divine Love descends first as something transcendent and universal
and out of that transcendence and universality it applies itself to persons according to the
Divine Truth and Will, creating a vaster, greater, purer personal love than any the human
mind or heart can now imagine. It is when one has felt this descent that one can be really an
instrument for the birth and action of the Divine Love in the world."
(XXIII.753)
They don't give the date, but I find it most interesting.
And the last one:
"The importance of the body is obvious; it is because he has developed or been given a body
and brain capable of receiving and serving a progressive mental illumination that man has
risen above the animal. Equally, it can only be by developing a body or at least a functioning
of the physical instrument capable of receiving and serving a still higher illumination that he
will rise above himself and realise, not merely in thought and in his internal being but in life,
a perfectly divine manhood. Otherwise either the promise of Life is cancelled, its meaning
annulled and earthly being can only realise Sachchidananda by abolishing itself, by shedding
from it mind, life and body and returning to the pure Infinite, or else man is not the divine
instrument, there is a destined limit to the consciously progressive power which
distinguishes him from all other terrestrial existences and as he has replaced them in the
front of things, so another must eventually replace him and assume his heritage."
(The Life Divine, XVIII.231)
It's amusing.
(silence)
Aren't you replying to my question?
No! (laughter)
No, barely two or three days ago, someone asked me a similar question: "Will there be another
great destruction or not?" Those are things one ought not to talk about.87
(silence)
You know that X ceaselessly repeats, "There will be war, there will be war, there will be war... even if I
don't want it, there will be war"!! He had said war would come by April - it's now July.
87We find it worthwhile to publish here a letter Mother wrote (in English) to Prithwi Singh, Sujata's father, just a few days
before Sri Aurobindo's letter published at the beginning of this conversation, on August 30, 1945: "I do not see that the
Supramental will act in the way you expect from It. Its action will be to effectuate the Divine's Will upon earth whatever
that may be. On men Its action will be to turn their will consciously or unconsciously on their part towards the way in which
the Divine's Will wants them to go. But I cannot promise you that the Divine's will is to preserve the present human
civilisation."

For the time being, the Chinese are quite clearly those who represent in the world the aggressive
attitude; they've even quarreled with the Russians because of that - a serious quarrel. You know the
story, I suppose.
(silence)
Those are things it's better not to talk about.
***
Then Mother comments again
on Sri Aurobindo's second letter:

And were Love to manifest before Truth, there would be catastrophes.
It's curious, for a-very long time, for months and almost years, something always stopped me when
I asked for Love's manifestation, a sort of very clear impression: "No, it isn't time yet, it isn't time
yet...." Until suddenly one day it started off and there came an overwhelming Response. That was
several months ago, and ever since then there has been a Response - an ever-increasing Response.
Yet I can't say in all sincerity that the Truth has manifested!
Perhaps the preparation is sufficient?
Perhaps it's an individual question - yet my action isn't individual, there's a constant perception of
the earth's atmosphere.
Never mind, to say so gives some comfort!
(silence)
Your health - all right?
All right, Mother.
Good. That's the one thing needed - important, very important: to keep the body in good health, in a
sort of balance. We must keep our balance. Very important. The rest doesn't matter!
(Mother laughs
and so does Satprem)

July 27, 1963

(Mother first comments on the death of a disciple, M.)
How they treat those poor dead!...
Naturally, they rushed to cremate him; they asked me candidly (because his nephew was coming
but not before the next morning, that is, a little less than twenty-four hours after M.'s death - nearly
twenty hours), they asked me, "Should we keep him or not?" I answered, "It depends. If you ask me as
far as HE is concerned, certainly the longer you keep him the better." Then I see eyes open wide, a
mouth open wide - don't understand anything! I told them, "It takes QUITE A WHILE for the
consciousness to come out slowly! Otherwise, when you burn him, it's pushed out violently, it gives a
terrible shock."
To tell the truth, people burn the dead in that way to destroy the vital, I am sure of it. The idea is not
to have any ghosts.
A little before his death he had asked me for a new name. He had nearly died twice, but he was
saved (the doctors were sure he would die), he was saved by his faith; he had such faith, such an
irresistible faith that twice it pulled him through: he was paralyzed, couldn't see any more, it was
terrible. And twice all his faculties came back (his eyes weren't too good, but anyway he could talk and
move around). The third time, he wanted to get completely cured, because he was a businessman and
had made a resolve to earn ten lakhs88 of rupees for me (he had already given me four lakhs in the past,
but he wanted to give me ten). So he absolutely wanted to live, but as he found himself not too well (he
was quite deteriorated!), he called for one of those kaviraj (you know, those self-styled doctors), who
finished him off: he couldn't eat or sleep any more. And the "doctor" went on telling him, "You're
much better"! While the poor man was sitting up all night in a chair.... Finally, he was rushed to the
hospital and died there. And the day of his death, about an hour later, I was informed that his son (he's
not a child, he's a man) absolutely HAD to see me immediately. It was the time when I don't see
people, but I said "all right" (I felt there was something to it), I said "all right" and went to receive him.
It was 11:00 A.M. (I think he died at 9:30 A.M.). I go there (I don't remember if it was in the morning
or early in the afternoon, anyhow it was very soon after his death), I sit down, the son is ushered in, and
along with him comes a small boy, no taller than this (gesture), all golden, joyous, alive, happy!... And
he rushed to me. He stayed like that, leaning against me, quite still. And how he laughed! How happy
he was!
It was M., his psychic being.
Ever so lovely! All luminous - luminous with a golden light - and so happy, so glad! Like a baby,
no bigger than this (gesture). Waving his arms and legs about, so happy! He stayed there - stayed put.
So naturally, I received him and did the needful.
I've seen thousands of cases, you know, but it's the first time I've seen that! And he had a
remarkable knowledge, because in order not to risk any hitch, he clung to his son and urged him to
come to me so as to make sure of reaching me without mishap, without any interference from the
adverse forces, from currents and all sorts of things. He clung to his son, who was quite unaware of it,
except that something in him WANTED him to come to me. And the poor son was crying; I told him,
"Don't worry, he is very happy"! (Mother laughs)
And lovely! A lovely thing. The sight of it filled me with joy - so happy, so happy, he seemed to be
saying, "At last I am with you! I won't budge now, no one can take me away." This small.
I told you the story of the other one who came to be operated on and died 89 (that makes two in a
row, among our best workers). The other one had an important government position and did us some
88One lakh: one hundred thousand.

incredible services (he was a very intelligent man and had been chief justice for a very long time), he
was very helpful and full of faith and devotion. This one [M.] had even promised to lend some money,
but he died just before - a few days before he was due to give it! 90 But the first one was a conscious,
highly mentalized being, with a very well-formed mental being; he knew a lot and he told me, "I am
very conscious and now I know that I am fully alive and fully conscious, so I don't want an impotent
body that constantly requires someone to nurse it or move it around. I prefer to change." He asked me
to find him a good one (!) This one didn't ask to take a new body, but the last thing he said (afterwards,
he was paralyzed) was: I must live, because I want to give ten lakhs of rupees to the Mother. And he
left with that - so an appropriate body has to be found.
But this one [M.] knew very little, he wasn't an intellectual, he was a man of action, very psychic -
very much so! Lovely, oh, lovely! He was like a little child, naked, of course, a baby this big, with
small arms, small legs - dancing about, he was glad, laughing and laughing, he was happy. And all
luminous. I immediately told his son (he did a "pranam" and rose with his eyes full of tears), I told him,
Don't weep, he is now where he wants to be and perfectly at rest. I didn't tell him the story - he
wouldn't have understood a thing!
***
(Then Mother reads two letters by Sri Aurobindo which will appear in a future "Bulletin":)
This I find very, very good:
"What the supramental will do the mind cannot foresee or lay down. The mind is ignorance
seeking for the Truth, the supramental by its very definition is the Truth-Consciousness,
Truth in possession of itself and fulfilling itself by its own power. In a supramental world
imperfection and disharmony are bound to disappear. But what we propose just now is not to
make the earth a supramental world but to bring down the supramental as a power and
established consciousness in the midst of the rest - to let it work there and fulfill itself as
Mind descended into Life and Matter and has worked as a Power there to fulfill itself in the
midst of the rest. This will be enough to change the world and to change Nature by breaking
down her present limits. But what, how, by what degrees it will do it, is a thing that ought
not to be said now - when the Light is there, the Light will itself do its work - when the
supramental Will stands on earth, that Will will decide. It will establish a perfection, a
harmony, a Truth-creation - for the rest, well, it will be the rest - that is all."
(XXII.13)
It's very useful to say to people - they're such a nuisance! Always wanting to put the cart before the
horse.
This other letter goes with it:

89See conversation of July 6.
90The Ashram chronically faces a worrisome financial situation.

"It is not advisable to discuss too much what it [the supermind] will do and how it will do it,
because these are things the supermind itself will fix, acting out of the Divine Truth in it, and
the mind must not try to fix for it grooves in which it will run. Naturally, the release from
subconscient ignorance and from disease, duration of life at will, and a change in the
functionings of the body must be among the ULTIMATE (Mother repeats) elements of a
supramental change; but the details of these things must be left for the supramental Energy
to work out according to the Truth of its own nature."
(XXII.8)
(Mother makes the gesture of hammering) I am all the time driving that into people's heads. I spend my
time telling them, "First of all, make yourself ready for its coming; afterwards, we'll see what it does!"
Once the French translation is ready
Satprem reads it back to Mother:

Always a slight tinge of humor!
(Satprem reads the French text up to:)
"... to let it work there and fulfill itself as Mind descended into Life and Matter and has
worked as a Power there to fulfill itself in the midst of the rest...."
If we follow that (Mother draws a great curve towards the future), he foresaw that one day the earth
would be a supramental creation - the entire earth... entirely changed. That means a long, long way
ahead. In other words, later, among the supramental race, they will say, "That's all very well, but it's
only the beginning. Now, the entire earth has to become a supramental manifestation." Just as from
mental man the supramental being was born, so also from the supramental being will be born the
powers that will transform the earth....
Do you see it?! It's interesting.
(silence)
It's something I've already been shown, I have already been shown it; when I go like this (gesture) and
enfold the earth, I was shown a glorious earth, lit with an inner light. So instead of a burning sun, it was
a Light that allowed Life to exist - you understand, it was the Physical itself that had become luminous.
I saw that, I remember VERY DISTINCTLY seeing it.
But that's a long way ahead! (Mother laughs) Is that all?
(Satprem reads the end
of the French text)
Apart from that, is everything all right?
(Satprem answers with silence)
(Laughing) We'll let the supramental descend and do its work!
(silence)

The greatest difficulty is that the body's texture is made of Ignorance, so that every time the Force, the
Light, the Power try to penetrate somewhere, that Ignorance has to be dislodged. Every time the
experience is similar, renewed in detail (but not in essence; I mean, every time it's a particular point,
but the essence of the problem is always the same): it's a sort of Negation out of ignorant stupidity -
not out of ill will, there is no ill will: it's an inert and ignorant stupidity which, by the very fact of what
it is, DENIES the possibility of the divine Power. And that's what has to be dissolved every time. At
every step, in every detail, it's always the same thing that has to be dissolved.
It's repeated again and again.... It's not as in the realm of ideas, where once you have seen the
problem clearly and have the knowledge, it's over; some doubts or absurdities may come back to you
from outside, but the thing is established, the Light is there, and automatically things are either repelled
or transformed. But this here isn't the same thing! Every single aggregate of cells.... Not that it comes
from outside: it's BUILT that way! Built by an inert and stupid Ignorance. An inert and stupid
automatism. And so, automatically, it denies - not "denies," there's no will to deny: it is an opposite, I
mean it CANNOT understand, it's an opposite - an ESTABLISHED opposite - of the divine Power.
And every time, there is a kind of action which really in every detail is almost miraculous: suddenly
that negation is compelled... compelled to recognize that the divine Force is all-powerful. Seen from
another angle, it's a sort of perpetual little miracle.
I'll give you an example: last time you were with me, I got (while you were present) a pain here
(gesture to the right side), a frightful pain of the kind that makes people howl (they think they're very
sick, of course!), it came here like that. You didn't see anything, did you, I didn't show anything.
As long as you were here, I didn't bother about it.... I simply thought of something else. But when
you left, I thought, "There's no reason to leave that here." So I concentrated - I called the Lord and put
Him here (gesture to the side), and I saw it all, what I've just told you, that state of stupid negation, and
how if you allow the thing to follow what they call its "normal" course, it becomes a good illness
(Mother laughs), a serious illness. I call the Lord. (He is always here! But the fact that I concentrate
and keep quiet....) And then it's almost instantaneous: the first thing is a reaction - almost a STATE
rather than a reaction - which DENIES the possibility of divine Action. It isn't a will, it's an automatic
negation. Then there is always a Smile that answers (that's what is interesting, there's never any anger
or any force that imposes itself, only a Smile), and almost instantly the pain disappears - "That" settles
in, luminous, tranquil.
It isn't final, mind you, only a first contact: the experience recurs on another occasion and for
another reason (they aren't mental reasons, they are occasions), it recurs, but there is already a
beginning of collaboration: the cells have LEARNED that with That, the state changed (very
interestingly, they remember), so they begin to collaborate, and the Action is even more rapid. Then a
third time, a few hours away, it recurs once again; but then THE CELLS THEMSELVES call and ask
for the divine Action, because they remember. And then That comes in, gloriously, like something
established.
Now I've got it - I've got the knack! It's for training the cells, you understand! It's not just like a sick
person who has to be cured once and for all: no, it's a training of the cells, to teach them... to live.
It's wonderful.
That's why with all the consciousness and force, I tell people, "You make yourselves sick with your
idiotic fear!" (A subconscious fear - sometimes mental, but then it's utterly stupid - at any rate a fear in
the cells, a subconscious fear.) "You make yourselves sick. Stop being afraid and you won't get sick."
And I can say that with absolute assurance.
It's interesting.
But constantly (I make the problem more precise for the sake of clarity), there are constantly in the

atmosphere, as I have always said, all the suggestions, all that atmosphere of the physical mind which
is full of every possible stupidity. You have to be permanently on your guard and sweep it all away:
"Go away, don't interfere." The doctors' opinions, the example of other people, that whole... really, that
whole terrible muddle of Ignorance all around, which you have to drive back: "Don't meddle, mind
your own business."
(silence)
So, regularly, as soon as there comes a pain somewhere or a discomfort or anything, immediately,
instantly, the first reaction: "Ah! Lord, what do You want me to learn?" And I become attentive.
If everybody does the same thing, if all those who can do it (sincerely, of course, without pretense)
do it sincerely: "Ah! Lord, what do You want me to learn?" and then observe, wait, then things are
easier, you put yourself at least in better conditions.

July 31, 1963
Mother seems quite shaken
and tired, though smiling as always:

I've made a discovery - not positively a discovery, but a confirmation. A rather interesting observation.
There was a sort of periodicity in the attacks - can I call them "physical "?... They're not physical,
although they're on the body. They didn't recur at exactly regular intervals, because the periods of time
in between weren't always the same, but there was a sort of analogy, of similarity in the circumstances.
And now I have come to a kind of certainty.
The work consists, I could say, in... either removing or transforming (I am not sure which of the
two) all the body's cells that are or have been under the influence of Falsehood (not "lie" but
falsehood), of the state contrary to the Divine. But since probably a radical purge or transformation
would have resulted in nothing but the body's dissolution, the work goes on in stages, progressively (I
am going very far back in time, to my first attacks). So the sequence is the following: first, a series of
activities or visions (but those visions are always activities at the same time: both activities and visions)
in the subconscious domain, showing in a very living and objective way the Falsehood that has to be
removed (transformed or removed). At first, I took them as adverse attacks, but now I see they are
"states of falsehood" to which certain elements in the physical being are linked (at the time, I thought,
"I am brought into contact with that because of the correspondence in me," and I worked on that level -
but it's another way of seeing the same thing). And it produces... certainly there is a dissolution - there
is a transformation, but a dissolution too - and that dissolution naturally brings about an extreme
fatigue or a sort of exhaustion in the body; so between two of those stages of transformation, the body

is given time to recover strength and energy. 91 And I had noticed that those "attacks" always come after
the observation (an observation I made these last few days) of a great increase in power, energy and
force; when the body grows more and more solid, there always follows the next day or the day after,
first, a series of nights I could call unpleasant (they are not, for they're instructive), and then a terrible
battle in the body. This time I was conscious - naturally, I am conscious every time, but (smiling) more
so every time.
I had observed lately that the body was getting much stronger, much more solid, that it was even
putting on weight (!), which is almost abnormal. Then, I had a first vision (not vision: an activity, but
very clear), then another, and then a third. Last night, I was fed a subtle food, as if to tell me that I
would need it because I wouldn't take any physical food 92 (not that I thought about it, I simply noticed I
had been fed, given certain foods). And with the visions I had the two preceding nights, I knew that at
issue were certain elements forming part of the body's construction (psychological construction), and
that they had to be eliminated. So I worked hard for their elimination. And today, the battle was waged.
But then, as I had worked hard for the elimination, the battle was quite formidable - when it
exceeds a certain measure, the heart has trouble, and then I need to rest. That's how it happened. But it
was so clear, so obvious! And the entire process was SEEN from the beginning, every single step of it,
it's... a marvel! A marvel of consciousness, of measure, of dosage, to allow the purification and
transformation to take place without disrupting the balance, so that dissolution does not occur. It's
based on the capacity to endure and withstand (naturally, if the body were unable to endure, that work
couldn't be done).
And now the body KNOWS (in the beginning it didn't, it thought it was "attacks" from the outside,
"adverse" forces; and it can always be explained like that, it was true in a certain way, but it wasn't the
true truth, the deepest truth), now the body KNOWS where it all comes from, and it's so marvelous! A
marvel of wisdom.... It puts everything in its place, it makes you REALIZE that all that play of the
adverse forces is a way of seeing things (a necessary way at a given time, maybe - by "necessary," I
mean practical), but it's still an illusion; illnesses are a necessary way of seeing things to enable you to
resist properly, to fight properly, but it's still an illusion. And now, the BODY itself knows all this - as
long as it was only the mind that knew it, it was a remote notion in the realm of ideas, but now the body
itself knows it. And it is full not only of goodwill but also of an infinite gratitude - it always wonders
(that's its first movement), "Do I have the capacity?" And it always gets the same answer, "It isn't
YOUR capacity." "Will I have the strength?" - "It isn't YOUR strength." Even that sense of infirmity
disappears in the joy of infinite gratitude - the thing is done with such goodness, such insight, such
thoughtfulness, such care to maintain, as far as possible, a progressive balance.
It came with a certitude, an OBVIOUSNESS: this is the process of transformation.
But this time, there was a voluntary collaboration, so maybe it will go faster.

91A few days later, Mother added: "There is also something I left unsaid: an urgent need to cease all material activity in
order to enable the body to receive fully - as fully as possible - the divine Force that will replace what has been removed.
There is something absolute about that need: to stay totally still, quiet, letting the Force descend - permeate the body, rather.
All physical activity must be suspended in some way, and if the material organization, or the habit, tends to make it
continue, a kind of material impossibility, an excessive fatigue or discomfort, comes to oblige the body to keep still.
Because simply to remove or change what shouldn't be there won't do; it must also be replaced by what SHOULD be there.
Otherwise, there would be a dwindling or gradual reduction of substance resulting in dissolution. What has been sublimated
or removed has to be replaced by something which is the true Vibration, the one that comes straight from the Supreme."
92Mother did not eat anything this morning.

I was unable to do my work93 : the jolt was too strong. But I said I would see you because I wanted
to tell you about it.
(silence)
It's odd, when I am in that state, I feel as if to make myself heard I have to lift a staggering weight. I
feel (for a few days now) as if I have to speak very, very loudly to be heard; it's almost like a mass...
yes, as though I were buried underground and had to shout very loudly in order to be heard.
Am I speaking very loudly?
No.
Because, with everybody, I feel as if I had to shout in order to be heard - and it's an effort, a
considerable effort. There is a sort of mass, the color of brownish earth, weighing down on me, as
though I were buried and had to shout. All the while I was speaking to you just now, I felt as if I were
making an enormous effort to be heard.
Am I shouting or...?
No.
Not at all?
No, it must be the thickness of consciousnesses that you're feeling?
Yes! Yes.
Yes, it's the air - it's in the air.
(long silence)
And I was told something this morning (I think it was this morning, or in the night, I don't remember);
it was said to the body, not to me. The body was told that it would go on till complete purification, and
that AT THAT POINT it will have the choice between continuing its work or... You see, once it has
attained complete purification from the cellular point of view (not what people call physical "purity,"
that's not it), from the point of view of the divine Influence, which means that each cell will be under
the exclusive influence of the Supreme (that's the work under way now), the body was told that that
work would be done, and once it was completed, the body ITSELF, entirely under the Supreme's
influence, would decide whether it wants to continue or be dissolved. It was very interesting, because...
dissolution means a scattering, but to scatter (that's easy to understand) is a way to SPREAD the
consciousness over a very large area. So the cells will be given the choice either to act in that way
(gesture of diffusion) or to act in agglomeration (Mother makes a fist).
(silence)
It's the first time the problem has been envisaged from that angle, that is to say, from the standpoint of
a general work.
93Mother did not receive the secretaries this morning.

But I don't see how the scattering... If it is scattered, if it is dissolved, the whole work is dissolved,
isn't it?
No, each cell is perfectly conscious.
Then they would go into other bodies?
(Mother remains thoughtful a moment) What happens from the material point of view?... Do they know
if it reverts to inert Matter, or what? Does it become dust - what does it become?
Dust, yes.
Dust.... They're not cells any more?
No, I don't think so.
Then that's not it, because according to what I was told, they were cells - they remained cells. It must
be something new. They remained cells, it was the cell that was given the choice either of staying in its
present agglomeration or of spreading.
I don't know, but it seems to me they could persist only in agglomeration with other living beings.
Are the cells in the human body different from the cells in other bodies, in animals, for instance? Or are
they the same?
Except for certain specialized cells, the other cells aren't different, I believe.
But the specialized cells must be the ones in question, because those in question are fully conscious
cells - they are specialized cells.
So I don't see that they could go into animals, I don't think they're the same kind.
They could only go into other human organisms.
Human, yes.
Maybe it's the difference between ONE being and many beings?...94
It must be something in preparation. We'll see.
So mon petit, I'll let you go now, because...
***
A few days afterwards,
Mother added this reflection:

It is clearly (according to external logic) a new way of dying that must be possible - no longer death as
94Mother means: between an agglomerated individual action and an action spread in many beings.

we regard it. But that... for the moment, all we could say would be speculative, not a concrete
experience.
We'll see.

August

August 3, 1963
Physical Matter, physical substance - the very elementary consciousness that's in physical substance -
has been so ill-treated (since man's presence on earth, I suppose, because before man, there probably
wasn't enough self-consciousness to be aware of being ill-treated; the substance wasn't conscious
enough, I suppose, to make a distinction between a normal peaceful state and unfavorable conditions;
but anyway, that goes back quite long time), so ill-treated that it finds it very hard to believe things can
be different. That consciousness has an aspiration - an aspiration especially for a LUMINOUS peace,
something that isn't the dark peace of Unconsciousness, which it doesn't like (I don't know if it ever
liked it, but it no longer does). It aspires to a luminous peace; not to a consciousness full of various
things, not that: simply to a peaceful consciousness, very peaceful, very quiet, very luminous - that's
what it wants. Yet at the same time, it has some difficulty believing that it's possible. I am experiencing
it: the concrete and absolutely tangible intervention of the supreme Power, supreme Light and supreme
Goodness - it [the consciousness in physical substance] has the experience of that, and every time it
has a new sense of wonder, but in that sense of wonder I can see something like: "Is it really possible?"
It gives me the impression, you know, of a dog that has been beaten so much that it expects nothing
but blows.
It's sad.
Yet the proofs are accumulating. If faith and trust could settle permanently, the difficulty would
probably be over.
(silence)
That consciousness feels a sort of anxiety towards mental force; the moment a mental force manifests,
it goes like this (gesture of recoil): "Oh, no! Enough of that, enough, enough!" As though mental force
were the cause of all its torment. It feels mental force as something so hard, dry, rigid, ruthless, above
all dry - dry, empty - empty of the true Vibration.
That's becoming quite clear. For example, whenever there is no need to do anything outwardly and
all activity stops, then there's rest, and there comes that thirst and aspiration for a luminous Peace. It
comes, and not only does it come, it seems to be firmly established. But if in that rest something
suddenly flags and the old mental activity starts up (an activity of the mind of the cells, the most
material mind), immediately that consciousness comes out of its rest with a jerk: "Ah, no! Not that, not
that, not that!" Instantly the mental activity is stopped, and there is an aspiration for the Presence -
"Not that, not that!"
This morning, I had the experience twice; a very slight mental activity, and almost instantly: "Ah,
no, no! Not that." That consciousness prefers to act or move or do anything rather than fall into that
condition - which it seems to regard as the Enemy.
(silence)
This morning there was a kind of vision or sensation of the curve from the animal to man - a spiral
curve - then of the return to the state above the animal, in which life, action, movement aren't the result

of Mind but of a Force, which is felt as a Force of SHADOWLESS light, that is, self-luminous, casting
no shadows, and absolutely peaceful. And in that peace, so harmonious and soft... oh, it's supreme rest.
That disharmony and hardness are the cause of fatigue in life.
I am speaking of the cells' consciousness.
Oh, to get out of that chaos of ideas, wills, conceptions - it's all so petty, so dry, so hollow, and at
the same time so irritating in its instability.
And it seems to be reflected in circumstances: everyone seems to be, if not at the peak of his
difficulties, at least a good way up (!) Disharmony, conflict, chaos appear to have reached their highest
(I hope they won't rise any higher, because as it is it's hardly bearable). From morning till night,
without letup, quarrels, discontent, demands... oh, dissatisfaction, "rumblings, all the time, all the time,
with a sort of simmering - a simmering of disorder and dissatisfaction. (Mother points to a stack of
letters): see all that - which I am supposed to answer, naturally.
***
(Shortly afterwards, Mother goes into meditation and Satprem follows her:)
Do you still have a sensation of "descent"? A descent of force?
Me, I no longer feel that it descends: it's there (gesture around and everywhere). That is to say, I
don't feel "something descending," it's there all the time - what about you?
I rarely feel a descent, except at times when the Force rushes downward, from below the shoulders
downward.
Yes, in the body.
Then I feel a descent.
It [the meditation] was very good, very still and luminous, without any disturbance. Very good.
But the consciousness doesn't seem to be progressing - the consciousness, you understand.
Because it doesn't want to be mentalized! You shouldn't worry.
Oh, I remember, one day (it impressed me much), the Swami told me, "But you should imagine this,
imagine that...."
Oh!
I said, 'No, I don't want to! I want THE THING TO COME. Then he replied (he said it with great
force), "That was your error throughout all your lives."
Not wanting to imagine?
Yes, imagine, make use of the mental element.

But that's quite... On the contrary, I've had to struggle against that, not in myself but everywhere,
against that mania for imagining. That's what gives me such a... (how can I put it?) both restful and
pleasant impression [with you], everything stays still. If one wants to receive the Truth, all that must
come to a stop.
I do understand.... My complaint is rather that the silence doesn't result in a clearer consciousness,
for example.
It will come.
No, that habit of imagining is very, very... I consider it very baneful.
I had that tendency very strongly in the past; that's what I called "storytelling" - everything,
everything became stories: all the work, all that had to be done. But I stopped it completely,
completely, as a dangerous thing - it gives a great material power (that's probably why the Swami
asked you to do it), what it gives is a material power, but it's VERY bad, it falsifies all that comes from
above.

August 7, 1963
You look tired....
The difficulties are continuing.
There's a keen struggle against the constant Negation of all inner life - higher life, rather. That is to
say, the general Disbelief [in the body].
It's giving me the same kind of nights again. But it's odd, I don't know what it means, last night
there were buildings made of a kind of red granite, and many Japanese. Japanese women sewing and
making ladies' dresses and fabrics; Japanese youths climbing up and down the buildings with great
agility; and everybody was very nice. But it was always the same thing (gesture of a collapse or a fall
into a hole): you know, a path opens up, you walk on it, and after a while, plop! it all collapses. And
there was a young Japanese man who was climbing up and down the place absolutely like a monkey,
with extraordinary ease: "Oh," I thought, "but that's what I should do!" But when I approached the spot,
the things he used to climb up and down vanished! Finally, after a while, I made a decision: "I will go
just the same," and found myself downstairs. There I met some people and all sorts of things took
place. But what I found interesting was that all the buildings (there were a great many of them,
countless buildings!) were made of a kind of red porphyry. It was very beautiful, Granite or porphyry,
there were both. Wide stairs, big halls, large gardens - even in the gardens there were constructions.
But outwardly, difficulties are coming back, in the sense that the Chinese seem to be seized again
with a zeal to conquer - they are massing troops at the border.
Yet it seems quite unlikely they will attack.

Then why are they massing troops?
Blackmail.
Obviously, but... The result is that the Americans said they would come to help if they attacked. Even
the Russians said they would help.
Well, we don't know. I SEE those great currents: they're like currents of madness that catch hold of
people and things.... At bottom, it may be really a rather acute conflict between the Yes and the No,
that is to say, between all that struggles to hasten the coming of new things and all that refuses -
refuses with increasing violence.
(silence)
Constantly, constantly, this poor body is assailed by all the old ideas and old convictions that keep
telling it that it's mistaken, it lives in illusion, it thinks it's being transformed but it's all humbug. So the
body... is a little tired, it wonders, "Won't I get a little rest?" Night and day, it spends its time in the
battle, nonstop. It's beginning to wonder if it's not some kind of inferiority of its own, an incapacity to
deal with things quietly?
And then, it has never been very fond of food (that's something it has never been interested in), but
in those cases, food becomes almost... not positively disgusting, but... It has always considered eating
as tiring.
Yes.
Someone who understands!
***
(As if "by chance," Satprem reads Mother an old conversation, of January 24, 1961, on the influenza
epidemic in Japan during World War I.)
And the best part of the story is that they've never had that type of influenza since.
The Japanese are receptive people.
They've learned so much from the Americans - it has warped their taste, but now it's beginning to
come back. Also, all that they've learned helps them. And they've converted America to the sense of
Beauty!
It's odd, last night, it was all Japanese....
***
(Then Satprem reads the conversation of May 22, 1963, in which he tells Mother how she cured him
suddenly of an infectious disease, as though something suddenly "tipped over.")
I've noticed that phenomenon: always, when great difficulties crop up - a violent attack, a

disorganization - the change isn't progressive: it's abrupt, like a reversal.
Just this morning, it was the same thing for me. You see, when the difficulty comes, there is a kind
of general disorganization in the body, with intense pains, and... (I observe, I want to follow the thing)
it's not at all a progressive abatement followed by recovery, that's not how it works: it's absolutely like
the reversal of a prism - everything vanishes at one stroke. There remains only that stupid habit the
body has of remembering. And in remembering... the remembrance makes you feel tired and out of
sorts - but the thing is over.
The body's remembrance is yet another thing that will have to be worked upon.
There is a state in which you don't feel anything - a state - and a positive one, because it's a state of
peace; a kind of very tranquil and very happy peace; a peace which makes you feel like staying that
way forever: "Oh, if I could be that way forever!..." Or else there's a chaos in which everything clashes
and denies and quarrels - as though everything were in an uproar. It reminds me of the very first
experience I had when I was - I really lived - that Pulsation of Love and when it was decided I was to
take my body again, to reenter my body; well, I had contact with my body, I knew I was in contact with
my body, only through a pain. Contact with the body meant suffering.
I said that, in fact.
It seems to me (I've been feeling that for a long time now, more than a year, almost a year and a
half), it seems to me that all the work was done only to teach every single element of the body to have a
physical, material consciousness, but at the same time to maintain that state of peace - a positive, full,
thoroughly comfortable peace: something that can last indefinitely. That is to say, I progressively teach
the body what I could call all the divine states; I teach it to feel and live in the divine states. Well, the
closest things (two things are close enough, but one is more comfortable, if I may say so - it's the word
ease in English - than the other; the other is more tense [Mother makes a fist], there is a will in it) the
closest things are the sense of eternity and the sense of silence. Because behind the whole creation (I
mean the material creation), there is a perfect Silence, not the opposite of noise but a positive silence,
which is at the same time a complete immobility - that's very good as an antidote to disorder. But the
sense of eternity is still better, and it has a sweetness the other hasn't; the sense of eternity includes the
sense of sweetness (but not "sweetness" as we understand it). It's extremely comfortable. That is, there
is no reason why it should change - or cease or start anew. It is selfexistent, perfect in itself. And these
are the best antidotes to the other state [of disorder]: peace, simple peace, isn't always sufficient.
After all, the body is an utterly wretched thing.... Yesterday, I think, it was complaining, really
complaining (I said it was a "whiner," but yesterday it was complaining), really asking, "Why, why was
such a wretched thing ever made?" - Incapacity, incomprehension, oh!... Nothing but limitations and
impossibilities. A sterile goodwill, a complete lack of power, and as soon as some little vital power
comes, it's turned into violence - disgusting.
(silence)
Whenever I complain like that, I can be sure I'll have a night of tension, and the next morning a "jolt."
It would be better to remain quiet, take things as they are and let the Lord do His work without...
without pushing Him all the time like that. I always feel that all our misfortunes are attracted by our
impatience or discontent. If we were blissfully content and let things follow their course, "When You
will it, it will be, that's all. I am an idiot, I remain an idiot, and when You will it to change..."
But can we afford to let things follow their course? If we do, everything goes haywire.
No.

We can tell ourselves, "Oh, everything will be fine," and let things sort themselves out, but then they
just happen haphazardly.
They happen haphazardly, but probably there comes a point when they get better.... (Laughing) We
don't dare carry out the experiment to the very end!
That belief in us is obviously what makes us struggle. But I am not so sure it is true Wisdom.
I don't know.
Let's take a practical example [Mother smiles ironically at the ''practical''! on another level than
the corporeal level: say you have a garden invaded by crows and sparrows that are eating
everything, insects, negligent gardeners.... So you have a choice: either you wear yourself out and
get worked up about it but you keep the garden, or you react against your reaction and you say,
"All right, I won't say anything, let things go as they like," and then everything gets spoiled.
Yes, yes....
But if you stick your nose into it, you get worked up, because it's chaos.
No, you should be able to stick your nose into it without getting worked up! And it's quite possible. It's
something the body has achieved, here, this body: it can intervene without getting worked up. But that's
not the question! The question is something BEHIND that. That's not it. The question is: if we leave
disorder alone (if, to be precise, we let it reach its maximum), will the progress (what we call progress,
that is, the change) not be greater?
Will the garden not be eaten up by the insects? That's the question.
We don't make the experiment!
I saw in France a patch of garden: it was surrounded by walls, and the land had belonged to
someone who took great care of it and had planted flowers in it. It was fairly large, but completely
enclosed. That person died. It was in southern France. He died and no one (there were no heirs), no one
looked after the garden: it was closed and stayed that way. I saw that garden... I don't remember now,
but certainly more than five years afterwards. It probably happened that the lock broke little by little
and came loose; I pushed the door open and entered.... I've never seen anything more beautiful! There
weren't any paths any more, there was no order any more, nothing but confusion - but what confusion!
I've never seen anything more beautiful. I stood there in a sort of ecstasy.... There is a book (I think it's
Le Paradou by Zola) in which there is a description of a fairy place - it was just like that: all the
flowers and plants entangled, in an absolutely disorderly growth, but with a harmony of another type, a
much vaster, much stronger harmony.
It was extraordinarily beautiful.
We have the mental habit of wanting to order, classify and regulate everything: we always want to
have order - a mental order. But that's... For example, in those places untouched by men, such as virgin
forests, there is a beauty you don't find in life, and it's a vital, unruly beauty which doesn't satisfy
mental reason, yet contains a far greater wealth than anything the mind conceives and organizes.
But in the meantime, life is beleaguered by thousands of insects - millions of insects...
Yes.

... that constantly try to eat it up.
You know, a naturalist once said that if man didn't destroy the ant, the ant would drive man off the
earth.
Well, that's the point!
It's possible! (Mother laughs)
It's hard to find...
What's hard is to find the TRUE THING.
(silence)
But in fact, it must be quite a difficult problem, since it's the very problem that confronts the future of
the earth.
The side of reason (of a gradual and harmonious progress as conceived by the mind) wants peace
and quiet, order and harmony among nations. The "mortar and pestle" method, which mixes everything
together to bring out something more potent, a richer combination of the elements, demands
destruction. Both are there in the atmosphere, like this (Mother looks). And it would seem - it would
seem - that the decision hasn't been made yet, as Sri Aurobindo says ["it is still hanging"].
Yet... at present, it would seem that my work is more a work of pacification (I mean the universal
work).
But I am not sure.
(silence)
There was a time when I struggled very strongly against wastage: waste of force, waste of material,
waste of time, and also, of course, waste of lives. A terrible waste of lives. But isn't this attitude still
one of blinkered sentimentality?? I can't say.
(silence)
For a very long time - a very long time - I preferred one path to the other, and all the while when I
lived with Sri Aurobindo physically, I quite certainly preferred the path of harmonious growth to that
of... the general "throwing back into the melting pot"!
(silence)
That habit of throwing everything back, mixing it all together to start anew... Even if it takes less and
less time to learn one's lesson anew, still it takes some time, and that seems so useless!
All that the body knows, all that it has learned, it has learned it as an "aggregate," so if all that goes
into another body, everything has to be learned again - which is a pain in the neck. You waste a lot of
time.
(silence)

So your garden is in trouble!?
No, no! I was taking it as an example.
Yes, but you said it was a "practical" example!
No, sometimes the sensation of how life is beleaguered comes to me in waves - you are
beleaguered. It's a perception I have, sometimes very strongly; you can't do anything without being
beleaguered by something - for everything, everywhere, in every detail. For a year or two I've had
that sensation. Sometimes it's revolting... or else distressing. I've never felt it so strongly as during
these last years - that sensation of being beleaguered, assailed.
All sorts of things come that way; at one period one thing, at another period another thing - those are
periods of inner transformation. For instance, the sense of a universal duplicity (what in the Vedas they
call crookedness): the impression that nothing goes straight. I have extraordinary examples of writing a
sentence with a clear, precise will, and it was understood (by someone with perfect goodwill) in quite
another way, according to his own vision of things. It happened a few days ago. But it happens all the
time! I say something, which to me is as clear as can be, and it's understood absolutely differently,
sometimes the very opposite! So there's the feeling, the sensation that EVERYTHING is that way, all
life is that way, all consciousnesses are that way, all vibrations are that way - instead of going straight,
everything is crooked. It's so strong that, as you say, it almost makes you feel sort of ill-at-ease. You
are disgusted, it makes you feel sick.
And at another time, it's something else that comes.
It's precisely in response to those things that there is a call (gesture of the Force descending into the
body) for purification: so the thing may be set right, so there may be at least one drop of Truth
somewhere. So then it gives a "jolt."
The extent of that deformation is so considerable, so generalized that usually you don't notice it,
either in yourself or in others - you notice it only when it assumes glaring proportions, but then...
hypocrisy, for example.
But I am speaking of a phenomenon that's constant.
There is the whole gamut, you see, right from the most material. In the most material, it's really like
that: elements that are perpetually clashing and clashing and clashing... everything is clashing, as
though it were the only way to exist. In the vital realm, it's violence. And in the mental realm, it's
mainly that crookedness. That's why I said to myself, "Truly, we are poor things!"
There is clearly in us the Remembrance that gives birth to the aspiration for something divine - if
that weren't there, latent, we could never... we could not even imagine! That aspiration couldn't exist, it
would be meaningless. But still, what a long path this is....
It seems (it's quite certain) that the closer you come to the other side, the more it appears... the more
you see the difference.
As long as you wallow in your Ignorance, you don't notice it.
Well...

August 10, 1963
93 - Pain is the touch of our Mother teaching us how to bear and grow in rapture. She has
three stages of her schooling, endurance first, next equality of soul, last ecstasy.
As long as we are dealing with moral things, this is absolutely obvious and indisputable: all moral pain,
when you know how to take it, shapes your character and leads you straight to ecstasy. But when it
comes to the body...
It's true that the doctor himself said ([laughing], the doctor95 symbolizes Doubt with a capital D)
that if you teach your body to bear pain, it grows more and more enduring and doesn't get disrupted so
fast - that's a concrete result. People who know how not to be thoroughly upset as soon as they have a
pain here or there, who are able to bear quietly and keep their balance, it seems that in their case the
body's capacity to bear disorder without breaking down increases. That's very important. You
remember, in a previous Agenda I asked myself the question from a purely practical and physical point
of view, and it does seem to be true. Inwardly, I have been told many a time - told and shown with all
sorts of little experiences - that the body can bear far more than people think, provided they don't add
fear or anxiety to the pain; if you can get rid of that mental factor, the body, left to itself, without either
fear or fright or anxiety for what will happen - without anguish - can bear a great deal.
The second step is that once the body has decided to bear pain (it really takes the decision to do so),
instantly the acuteness, the acute sensation in the pain vanishes. I am speaking on an absolutely
material level.
And if you have calm (it requires an inner calm, which is another factor), if you have inner calm,
then the pain turns into an almost pleasant sensation - not "pleasant" in the ordinary sense of the word,
but there comes an almost comfortable impression. Once again, I am speaking on a purely physical,
material level.
The last stage: when the cells have faith in the divine Presence and the divine sovereign Will and
trust that all is for the good, then ecstasy comes - the cells open up, become luminous and ecstatic.
That makes four stages (this aphorism refers to only three).
The last one is probably not within everybody's reach (!) but the first three are quite obvious - I
know it works like that. The only point that bothered me (I told you once) is that it isn't a purely
psychological experience and that enduring pain causes wear and tear in the body. But I inquired with
the doctor (I casually made him talk), and he told me that if the body is taught very young to bear pain,
its capacity to bear increases so much that it can effectively withstand illnesses, which means that the
illness doesn't follow its course, it aborts. That's precious.
The last experience (which I've had these last few days), in which apparently there was a hitch (it
wasn't really one) was a sort of demonstration. I told you what it was, you remember: it's like a purge
of all the vibrations that are false vibrations, that aren't the pure and simple response to the supreme
Influence (all that in the cells still responds to the vibrations of falsehood, either from habit or from the
people around or the food taken - fifty thousand things). Then, with an aspiration or a decision, almost
a prayer for purification coming from the body, something happens which, naturally, upsets the
balance; the imbalance in turn brings about a general discomfort. The form discomfort takes is
habitually the same: first, pains and all kinds of sensations I need not describe; if that state goes on
95The "doctor" is not an abstraction here, but the person who watches and will watch over Mother up to the end.

developing, if it is allowed to assume its full proportions, it results... in the past it resulted in a faint.
But this time, I followed the process for about two hours from the moment I got up: the struggle
between the new balance, the new Influence that was getting established, and the resistance of all the
existing elements forced to go away. That created a sort of conflict. The consciousness remained very
clear - the consciousness of the BODY remained very clear, very quiet, perfectly trusting. So for two
hours I was able to follow the process (while going on with all my usual activities, without changing
anything), until I felt, or rather was told sufficiently clearly that the Lord wanted my body to be
completely immobile for a while so that He might complete His work. But I am not all alone: there are
other people here to help me and watch over everything (but I don't say or explain anything to them,
those are things I don't talk about - I don't say what goes on, I don't say anything), so I sat there
wondering, "Is it really and truly indispensable?" (Mother laughs) Then I felt the Lord exert a little
more pressure, which heightened the intensity of the conflict, so that I had all the signs of fainting - I
understood (!)... I stood up, let my body moan a little to make it plain it didn't feel too well (!) and I
stretched out. Then I was immobile, and in that immobility, I saw the work that was being done - a
work that cannot be done if you go on moving about. I saw the work. It took nearly half an hour; in half
an hour it was over. Which means there is really... there is a fact I cannot doubt, even if all the
surrounding thoughts and forces contradict it: I cannot doubt that the consciousness is increasing more
and more - the consciousness in the body. It is growing more and more precise, luminous, exact -
QUIET - very peaceful. Yet very conscious of a TREMENDOUS battle against millennial habits. Do
you follow?
When it was over, I saw that even physically, bodily, there is a strength: the result is an increased
strength. A very clearly increased strength.
But it's still going on. Now, there's a great battle against all the ideas, the habits, the sensations, the
possibilities, everything, concerning death - "death" (laughing), not "death" in the sense of the
consciousness departing (that, of course, people talk about, but... those things no longer exist), no:
WHAT THE CELLS MUST FEEL.96 And all the possibilities are presented to me... With that
consciousness (the consciousness accumulated, compressed in all those cells), when the heart stops
beating and it's understood that, according to human ignorance, you are "dead," how does the force that
groups all those cells together abdicate its will to hold them all together?... Naturally, I was told right
away (because the problem - all the problems - come from everywhere, and it's purposely that I am
shown the problem and made to struggle with it; it's not just as an "idea"), I was told right away that
that force, that consciousness which holds everything together in really superconscious cells (they don't
have at all the ordinary type of consciousness; ordinarily, it's the inner, vital being [Mother touches the
heart center] that's conscious of oneness, that is, conscious of being a being), that this aggregate of
cells is now an aggregate OF ITS OWN WILL, with an organized consciousness which is a sort of
collective gathering of that cellular consciousness; well... Obviously this is an exceptional condition,
but even in the past, in those beings who were very developed outwardly, there was a beginning of
willed, conscious cellular gathering, and that's certainly why in ancient Egypt, where occultism was
very developed. exceptional beings such as the pharaohs, the high priests, etc., were mummified, so as
to preserve the form as long as possible. Even here in India, generally they were petrified (in the
Himalayas there were petrifactive springs). There was a reason.97
And I saw for Sri Aurobindo (although he hadn't yet started this systematic transformation; but still,
96After "death" or at the time of "death."
97Many years earlier, Mother had told Satprem a vision she had had of one of her bodies petrified in a Himalayan cave,
near a route of pilgrimage.

he was constantly pulling the supramental force down into his body), even in his case, it took five days
to show the first slight sign of decomposition. I would have kept his body longer, but the government
always meddles in other people's business, naturally, and they pestered me awfully, saying it was
forbidden to keep a body so long and that we should... So when the body began to (what's the word?)
shrink - it was shrinking and contracting, that is, dehydrating - then we had to do it. He had had
enough time to come out, since almost everything came into my body - almost everything that was
material came into my body.
But the question arose for this body [Mother's], "just to see," you know. And I saw all kinds of
things, and finally the answer was always the same (you see, the problem was presented to me to
enable me to understand the situation in all its aspects and see the necessities), that naturally everything
would be for the best! (Laughing) Without a doubt. But I mean it was presented very concretely and, I
could say, very "personally" to make me understand the problem. And there was that old thing I was
told the other day (old, that is, a few days old! i: I was told that THE CELLS THEMSELVES would be
given a free choice. So the conclusion of all that meditation was that there must be a new element in the
consciousness of the cellular aggregates - a new element... a new experience that must be in progress.
The result: last night, I had a series of fantastic cellular experiences, which I cannot even explain and
which must be the beginning of a new revelation.
When the experience began, there was something looking on (you know, there is always in me
something looking on somewhat ironically, always amused) which said, "Very well! If that happened
to someone else, he would think he was quite sick! (laughing) Or half mad." So I stayed very quiet and
thought, "All right, let it be, I'll watch, I'll see - I'll see soon enough! It has started, so it will have to
end!..." Indescribable! Indescribable (the experience will have to recur several times before I can
understand), fantastic! It started at 8:30 and went on till 2:30 in the morning; that is to say, not for a
second did I lose consciousness, I was there watching the most extraordinary things - for six hours.
I don't know where this is going....
Indescribable; you know, you become a forest, a river, a mountain, a house - and it's the sensation
(an absolutely concrete sensation) OF THE BODY, of this (gesture to the body). Many other things
too. Indescribable. It lasted a long time, with a whole variety of things.
So at 2:30 in the morning, I said to the Lord, "That will do, won't it?!" (Mother laughs) And He
gave me a blissful rest till 4:30.
Good.
All that on the aphorism!... Anyway, you can use the beginning. But you should ask me a question.
Ask me a question.
I asked myself if for everybody the supramental process will always automatically involve a lot of
physical suffering.
No.
No, because I have a growing proof that those things I have mastered now, in the body, I have the
power (I keep receiving letters and notes from here or there, from people here or there who have an
illness)... it is beginning; so far it's only a beginning, a very small beginning: the power to eliminate
pain.
You know, on a smaller scale, what happened with your illness.
Yes, but I didn't mean sick people. I mean people who today or in the future will seek to effect the
transformation in themselves.

No, they...
Will they have to go through all that suffering?
No! That Sri Aurobindo wrote very clearly: for all those who have faith and open themselves in
surrender and faith, the work will be done automatically. 98 As long as he was here, mon petit, all the
thirty years I spent with him working, NOT ONCE did I have to make an effort for a transformation.
Simply, whenever there was a difficulty, I repeated, My Lord, my Lord, my Lord... I just thought of him
- hop! it went away. Physical pain: he annulled it. You know, some things that were hampering the
body, some old habits that had come back, I only had to tell him: off they would go. And through me,
he did the same for others. He always said that he and I did the Work (in fact, when he was here, it was
he who did it; I only did the external work), that he and I did the Work, and that all that was asked from
the others was faith and surrender, nothing more.
If they had trust and gave themselves in perfect trust, the Work was done automatically.
In your body's cells, it is therefore a universal progress that is being made, it's the earth that
progresses.
Yes.
(silence)
This body was built for that purpose, because I remember very well that when the war - the First World
War - started and I offered my body up in sacrifice to the Lord so that the war would not be in vain,
every part of my body, one after another (Mother touches her legs, her arms etc.), or sometimes the
same part several times over, represented a battlefield: I could see it, I could feel it, I LIVED it. Every
time it was... it was very strange, I had only to sit quietly and watch: I would see here, there, there, the
whole thing in my body, all that was going on. And while it went on, I would put the concentration of
the divine Force there, so that all - all that pain, all that suffering, everything - would hasten the
preparation of the earth and the Descent of the Force. And that went on consciously throughout the
war.
The body was built for that purpose.
At the time, there was still a lot of mental activity, and those experiences took all the forms the
mind gives to things - very nice, very literary! Now, all that is over - happily, thank God! A complete
silence - I don't make speeches on the thing. But the experience of last night!... And to think that when
an experience lasts half an hour, three quarters of an hour, one hour, it's considered extraordinary - it
lasted from 8:30 till 2:15, nonstop.
A sort of ubiquity in the cells?
Yes, yes.
A oneness - the sense of Oneness.
(silence)
98When Satprem suggested publishing this passage in the Bulletin along with the beginning of Mother's comment on the
Aphorism, she observed, "I don't want to speak of that now, it isn't yet time. We need not tell them too clearly that the work
is being done for them, they know it only too well! (Laughing) No need to insist!"

It is clear that if this experience becomes natural, spontaneous and constant, death can no longer exist:
even for this, I mean (Mother touches her body).
There's something I SENSE there, without being able to express or understand it mentally. There
must be some difference, even in the behavior of the cells, when you leave your body.
It must be another phenomenon that takes place.
During all that period of concentration and meditation on what happens in a body after death (I am
speaking of the body's experience after what is now called "death"), well, several times the same kind
of vision came to me.... I had been told (shown and told) of certain saints whose bodies did not
decompose (there's one here, there was one in Goa - fantastic stories). Naturally, people always
romanticize those things, but there remains the material fact of a saint who died in Goa, left his body in
Goa, but whose body didn't decompose. 99 I don't know the story in all its details, but the body was
removed from India, taken away to China and remained buried there, in Hong-Kong, I believe (or
somewhere in that region) for a time; then it was taken out, brought back here, buried again. For ten or
twelve years it stayed buried in those two places: it didn't decompose. It dried out, became mummified
(dried out, that is, dehydrated), but it remained preserved. Well, this fact was presented to me several
times as ONE of the possibilities.
Which means, to tell the truth, that everything is possible.
But what I was shown clearly and what I saw was... (I have difficulty talking because it all came to
me in English: Sri Aurobindo was there and it was in English), it was the stupidity and carelessness,
really, the ignorance - the stupid ignorance and I-couldn't-care-less attitude the living have towards the
dead. That's something frightful. Frightful.... Frightful. I've heard stories from everywhere, all sorts of
appalling things.... For instance, one of the stories (it took place while Sri Aurobindo was here): there
was a disciple whose son died (or at least they thought him dead), and as they weren't Hindus, they
didn't burn him: they buried him. Then at night, his son came to him and told him... you see, he saw his
son at the window, knocking at the window and telling him, "But why did you bury me alive?" (I don't
know in what language, but anyway...) And that idiot of a father thought, "I'm dreaming"!! Then the
next day, long afterwards, he had second thoughts and asked himself, "What if we took a look?" And
they found him turned over in his coffin.
When the man told me the story and how he found it quite natural to think, "I am dreaming," I can't
find words to tell my indignation at that moment, when I saw that... you know, it's such a crass, such an
inert stupidity! It didn't even occur to him how he would have felt if the thing had happened to HIM. It
didn't even occur to him!
There was another case of a man who had been brought to the cremation ground, but a torrential
rain started - no question of burning him. They left him there and said, "We'll burn him tomorrow."
But the next morning when they came, he wasn't there any more! (Laughing) He was gone. But that's
not all: thirty years later, he returned (he was a Raja): he had been picked up by sannyasins, taken into
solitude, and had become a sannyasin, until, thirty years later, for God knows what reason, he thought it
best to go and claim his possessions, so he returned with proofs that he was indeed the same man.... 100
I have heard countless stories of that kind, which show the point to which men... They want to get
rid of the dead, don't they! And the faster the better.
I remember someone who told me (someone who claimed to be a sage), he told me, "But if it's
99St. Francis Xavier.
100It is the story of the Raja of Bhaowal, which created a sensation in the Indian press around 1930.

untrue that the same beings reincarnate many times, then the dead increase more and more in number,
and the atmosphere is going to be terribly crowded with all those dead!... They'll become a plague.
What will we do with all that? They will be far more numerous than the living and will crowd
everything - what will we do with all that?" There, you see the type of reflection.
(silence)
The attitude of the living towards the dead is one of the most loathsome expressions of mankind's
selfish ignorance.
It's either a complete I-couldn't-care-less attitude, or else, "Ohh, anything to get rid of that!" I have
some children here (they're no longer children), who live here with their fathers and mothers (who
aren't very old), and some of those children told me "dreams" in which they saw their fathers or
mothers dead and coming to them... and they sent them back violently, saying, "You're dead, you've got
no right to come and bother us"!...
You're dead, you've got no right to come and bother us. There you are.
That's... few will be frank enough to say so, but it's very widespread.
Many things must change before a little bit of truth can manifest - that's all I can say. 101

August 13, 1963
(Regarding an old "Playground Talk" of 1950 and noted from memory by a disciple, which Mother
asks Satprem to scrap. The subject was Nirvana, which one was to reach - or so the notation said - by
withdrawing all one's energies into the psychic being or soul.)
None of that is true! In the first place, we should say that each realm has an energy of its own. But what
people generally feel as energy is vital energy; and vital energy... (hem!) is vital! Therefore to say that
those who withdraw withdraw all their energies and consciousness into the psychic to attain Nirvana is
nonsense!
There is a nirvana behind the vital, a nirvana behind the psychic, a nirvana behind the mind; there is
a nirvana on every level, even behind the physical - it's death. And those who withdraw, who try to
attain Nirvana, NEVER go into the psychic - the psychic is something essentially linked to divine
manifestation, not to divine nonintervention, not to Nirvana.
All that is fit for the wastepaper basket!102

101Can we ever overemphasize the fact that what happened to Mother ten years later, in 1973, is an unspeakable betrayal ...
of which she had a presentiment?

August 13, 1963
(Note from Mother to Satprem)
(This note came apropos of an old "Playground Talk," of December 21, 1950, which Satprem
read Mother during the preceding conversation. Mother spoke in it of the "clear, precise and
constant vision of the Truth," and she added: "Some call it the Voice of God or the Will of God.
The real sense of these terms has been perverted, that's why I prefer to say 'the Truth,' although
it is but one very limited aspect of That which we cannot name but is the Source and Goal of all
existence.")
Satprem,
Here is what came to me for the Questions and Answers after you left, you will see if you can use it
and insert it in the text:
I do not readily use the word "God" because religions have made it the name of an almighty being,
foreign to his creation, outside of it. Which is incorrect.
Yet, on the physical plane, the difference is obvious. For we are still all that we no longer want to
be, while He is all that we want to become.
Signed: Mother

August 17, 1963
(Mother prepares another aphorism for the next "Bulletin.")
What aphorism do we have?
It's about "renunciation."
102It may be mentioned that at the time, Satprem had undertaken the systematic publication of the older Questions and
Answers (Mother's talks at the Ashram Playground), which is why they will come up now and then in the Agenda.

There is that thing I said: acceptance and struggle - both together. What did he say about renunciation?
94 - All renunciation is for a greater joy yet ungrasped. Some renounce for the joy of duty
done, some for the joy of peace, some for the joy of God and some for the joy of self-torture,
but renounce rather as a passage to the freedom and untroubled rapture beyond.
And your question?
I always hesitate to ask you questions, because it sets you on a certain line which isn't necessarily
what would come to you....
(silence)
I never had much that experience of "enunciation.... To renounce something, you must be attached to it,
while I always had the thirst, the need to go farther, to go higher, to progress, to do better, to know
better and... instead of having a sense of renunciation, you have rather a sense of good riddance!
Something you get rid of that hampers you, weighs you down, hinders your advance.
In that light, it's very interesting.
That's what I wrote to you the other day ["We are still all that we no longer want to be, while He is
all that we want to become"]. What we call "we" in our egoistic stupidity, a stupidity of the ego, is
precisely all that we no longer want to be; and it would be such a joy to throw all that away, get rid of it
in order to be ready to become what we want to be.
That's a very living experience.

August 21, 1963
(Regarding an old "Playground Talk," of January 4, 1951, in which Mother said that one
of the essential conditions for transformation is an awareness of the inner dimensions:
"It's a total reversal of consciousness, which can be compared to what happens to light
when it goes through a prism. Or else it's as if you turned a ball inside out, which can
be done only in the fourth dimension. You emerge from the ordinary consciousness of the
third dimension to enter the higher consciousness of the fourth dimension, and then an
infinite number of dimensions. This is the indispensable starting point.")
That's what I had told you already: the whole basis of the yogic effort is changed now. Formerly, the
work was based precisely on that knowledge of inner dimensions - I can't recapture that any more, I

see it as completely outside me.103
So I can't add anything to those "Talks": their source is different. Even now for the aphorisms, it's a
little bit difficult. I feel I have to come down, to revert to an old frame of mind in order to say
something.
You need not bother about people. Just speak according to your present mode, without bothering
whether they understand or not.
They understand nothing.
It doesn't matter.
Then it's no use publishing what I say!
Some do understand.
Anyway, what I say nowadays is good for the [Agenda] box.
***
(Then Mother returns to the aphorism on "renunciation." She remains silent. She still appears to be
shaken.)
It's difficult because...
These days, I don't know whether it has come to the last battle, but it has descended very deep into
the cells' worst-lit realm: what still belongs most to the world of Unconsciousness and Inertia and is
most foreign to the divine Presence. It is, so to say, the primal substance that was first used by Life, and
it has a sort of inability to feel, to experience a reason for that life.
In fact, it's something I had never experienced [that absence of meaning]; even in my earliest
childhood, when there was no development, I always had a perception (not a mentalized but a vibrant
perception) of a Power behind all things which is the raison d'etre of all things - a Power, a Force, a
kind of warmth.
It isn't the experience of THIS body's cells: it's an identification with the world in general, with the
Earth as a whole. It's an absolutely frightful and hopeless condition: something meaningless, aimless,
without raison d'etre, without any joy in itself or... and worse than disagreeable - meaningless,
insensate. Something that has no raison d'etre and yet is. It was... it is a frightful situation.
I have an impression of being quite close to the bottom of the pit.
Yesterday, it was like that almost the whole day long. But all at once something came (I don't know
from where or how... neither from above nor from within nor from... I don't know): there is only ONE
raison d'etre, only ONE Reality, only ONE Life, and there is nothing other than... THAT. It was THAT
(not in the least mentally, there was no intellectual formulation, nothing), it was Something that was
Light (far more than Light), Power (far more than power), Omnipotence (far more than Omnipotence),
and also an intensity of sweetness, of warmth, of plenitude - all that together - along with that
103See Agenda III, May 24, 1962, p. 159.

Something, which naturally words cannot describe. And That came all at once, like that, when there
was such a frightful state of anguish, because it was nothing - a nothing you couldn't get out of. There
was no way of getting out of that nothing, because it was nothing.
You know, all those who seek Nirvana, all their disgust of life, all that is almost enjoyable in
comparison! That's not it. That's not it, it was a thousand times, a million times worse. It was nothing,
and because it was nothing it was impossible to get out of it - there was no... no solution.
At one point, the tension was so great that... you wonder, "Am I going to burst?"
Then everything relaxed and opened up (gesture as if the cells opened out)... OM.
(silence)
I don't know if there's a yet deeper pit but...
And that relief, that blossoming, that peace... Everything disappears, except That.
(silence)
It's really the first time I had that experience - never, never did I experience that before. And it wasn't
in the least, in the least personal to my body, it104 isn't my body's cells - it's something else....
And that is the basis and foundation of all materialism.
It lasted the whole day long!...
(silence)
The experience came at the time when the condition was most acute in its nothingness.... I don't know
how to explain it, it's inexpressible, but it was COMPLETE: there was nothing but that, that sort of
meaningless and aimless "nothing," without raison d'etre or origin - and, therefore, without remedy.
Then it reached the point when... you know, when everything is about to burst and there is such a
tension. (Is it tension? I don't know how to explain.) And all at once, a change as total as you can
imagine.
So you understand, those old "Talks," all that's... a lot of talk!
(long silence)
Every time an experience of that kind occurs, the entire vision of things and of the relationship between
things is changed (gesture of reversal). Even from a quite practical viewpoint. You see, Life is a sort of
chessboard on which all the pawns are arranged according to certain inner laws, and every time it all
changes: everything changes, the chessboard changes, the pawns change, the types of organization
change. Also the inner quality of the pawns - very much so.
For instance, these last few days I had a whole vision of X, of what he represents, the people around
him, his relationship with the Ashram - all that entirely changed. Every element took a new place in
relation to all the others. And I have nothing to do with it, I don't "try" to understand, I don't "try" to
see, nothing: the thing is simply shown to me. Like pictures that are shown to me. Each thing has its
own special flavor, its own special color, its own special quality and its own special relationship with
the rest - all the relationships are different.
104That pit of Inertia, of material Unconsciousness, which feels no raison d'etre for itself and is "nothing."

It's growing very PRECISE, very minute, very sharp, not floating: very accurate to the last detail.
And with a great simplicity.
As though the entanglement of forces, of consciousnesses and movements grew clearer and clearer,
more and more complete, very, very precise. And very simple too.
Very simple.
All problems, all problems are beginning to be seen in that way.
And always an impression of emerging (what I previously called "clarity" or comprehension is to
me now incomprehension and confusion), of emerging from that towards a greater clarity, a more total
comprehension. With all sorts of complications that disappear, even though everything is far more
complete than before.
Before, there were always hazy spots, some hazy, imprecise, uncertain things; and as that
disappears, it all becomes much clearer, much simpler, and MUCH MORE EXACT. And the haziness
disappears. There is, you know, a whole world of impressions, of guessing (things you imagine, they
are imaginations rather than impressions) that fills the gaps; and there were some reference points,
things that are known and linked together by a whole hazy mass of impressions and imaginations (it
works automatically); and every time, oh, you emerge from it all towards something so light (gesture
above), and all those clouds evaporate. And it looks so simple! You say to yourself, "But it's so
obvious, so clear! There weren't any complications."
Every time, it's like that (gesture of ascent from stage to stage): you see farther, you see more
things at a glance.
It would seem that a time will come when all the movements of the earth will be like that, very clear
and very simple.
And it corresponds to that descent into the pit.

August 24, 1963
(Mother asks Satprem if he has prepared a question on the aphorism on "renunciation," which is to
appear in the next "Bulletin." Then she adds:)
I delivered great speeches to you on the subject, but I don't remember! (Laughing) It was in the night, I
delivered a whole speech to you, and I even thought, in the middle of the night, "Well, that's just what I
should tell Satprem tomorrow!"
I told you that the only process I've known, and which recurred several times in my life, is to
renounce an error. Something you believe to be true - which probably was true for a time - on which
you partly base your action, but which, in actuality, was only one opinion. You thought it was a truthful
finding with all its logical consequences, and your action (part of your action) was based on it, so that
everything proceeded from it automatically. Till suddenly an experience, a circumstance or an intuition

warns you that your finding isn't so true as it appeared to be (!) Then there is a whole period of
observation and study (sometimes too it comes as a revelation, a massive proof), and then it's not just
your idea or false knowledge that needs to be changed, but also all its consequences, perhaps an entire
way of acting on a particular point. At that moment, you get a sort of sensation, something that feels
like a sensation of renunciation; that is to say, you have to undo a whole collection of things you had
built. Sometimes it's quite considerable, sometimes a very small thing, but the experience is the same:
the movement of a force, a dissolving power, and the resistance of all that must be dissolved, all the
past habit. It is the contact of the movement of dissolution with the corresponding resistance that
probably translates in the ordinary human consciousness as the sense of renunciation.
I saw that very recently; it's something insignificant, the circumstances are completely unimportant
in themselves (it's only the study of the whole that makes it interesting). It's the only phenomenon that
has recurred several times in my life and which for that reason I know well. And as the being
progresses, the power of dissolution increases, becomes more and more immediate, and the resistance
lessens. But I remember the time when the resistances were at their highest (more than half a century
ago), and it never worked in any other way: it was always something outside me - not outside my
consciousness but outside my will - something that resists the will. I never had the feeling I had to
renounce things but I felt as if I had to exert a pressure on them to dissolve them. Whereas now, the
farther I go, the more imperceptible the pressure becomes, it's immediate: as soon as the Force that
comes to dissolve a collection of things manifests, there's no resistance, everything gets dissolved; on
the contrary, there's hardly any sense of liberation - there's something that is amused every time and
says, "Ah, again! How many times you limit yourself...." How many times you think you're constantly
moving on, smoothly, without stopping, and how many times you set a little limit to your action (it isn't
a big limit because it's a very little thing within an immense whole, but it's a limit nonetheless). And
then when the Force acts to dissolve the limit, at first you feel liberated, you feel a joy; but now it's not
even like that any more: there is a smile. Because it's not a sense of liberation - you very simply
remove a stone that stands in your way.
That's more or less what I told you last night, but I told it to you complete with illustrations! It
would take pages, you understand! (Laughing) That's why the illustrations are gone, otherwise it would
fill a volume. There were all the explanations, all the details.
That idea of renunciation can occur only in an egocentric consciousness. Naturally, people (those
whom I call quite unevolved) are attached to things - when they have something, they don't want to let
go of it! That seems so childish to me!... For them, if they are obliged to give it up, it hurts! Because
they identify with the things they hold on to. But that's childish. The real process behind is... the
amount of resistance in the things that developed on a certain basis of knowledge - a knowledge at a
given time, no longer a knowledge at another time - a partial knowledge, not fleeting but impermanent.
There is a whole collection of things built on that knowledge, and they resist the Force that says, "No!
It's not true, (laughing) your basis is no longer true, away with it!" But then, "Oh, it hurts!" - that's
what people feel as renunciation.
The difficult thing is perhaps not so much to renounce as to accept... [Mother smiles] when you see
life as it is now. But then if you accept, how can you live in the midst of all that while having that
"untroubled rapture" - the untroubled rapture not up there but here?105
This has been my problem for weeks.
105"All renunciation is for a greater joy yet ungrasped. Some renounce for the joy of duty done, some for the joy of peace,
some for the joy of God and some for the joy of self-torture, but renounce rather as a passage to the freedom and untroubled
rapture beyond."

I have reached this conclusion: in principle, what gives rapture is the awareness of and union with
the Divine (that's the principle), therefore the awareness of and union with the Divine, whether in the
world as it is or in the building of a future world, must be the same - in principle. That's what I keep
saying to myself all the time: "How is it that you don't have that rapture?" I do have it: at the time when
the whole consciousness is centered in the union, whenever that is, in the midst of any activity, along
with that movement of concentration of the consciousness on the union comes rapture. But I must
admit it disappears when I am in that... it's a world of work, but a very chaotic world, in which I act on
everything around me - and necessarily I have to receive what's around me in order to act on it. I have
reached a state in which all that I receive, even the things considered the most painful, leave me
absolutely still and indifferent - "indifferent," not an inactive indifference: no painful reaction of any
kind, absolutely neutral (gesture turned to the Eternal), a perfect equanimity. But within that
equanimity, there is a precise knowledge of the thing to be done, the words to be said or written, the
decision to be made, anyway all that action involves. All that takes place in a state of perfect neutrality,
with a sense of the Power at the same time: the Power goes through me, the Power acts, and neutrality
stays - but there's no rapture. I don't have the enthusiasm, the joy and plenitude of action, not at all.
And I must say that the state of consciousness that rapture gives would be dangerous in the present
state of the world.... Because it has almost absolute reactions - I can see that that state of rapture has an
OVERWHELMING power. But I insist on the word "overwhelming," in the sense that it's intolerant of,
or intolerable to (yes, intolerable to) all that's unlike it! It's the same thing, or almost (not quite the same
but almost), as supreme divine Love: the vibration of that ecstasy or rapture is a first hint of the
vibration of divine Love, and that's absolutely... yes, there is no other word, intolerant, in the sense that
it doesn't brook the presence of anything contrary to it.
So that would have frightening results for the ordinary consciousness. I can see that very well,
because at times that Power comes - the Power comes... and you feel as if everything is about to
explode. Because it can tolerate only union, it can tolerate only an accepting response - receiving and
accepting. And not from any arbitrary will: from the VERY FACT of its existence, an all-powerful
existence - "all-powerful" not in the way man understands allpowerfullness: really an all-powerfulness.
That is, entirely, totally and exclusively existing. It contains everything, but what is contrary to its
vibration is forced to change, you see, since nothing can disappear; but then that immediate, brutal, so
to say, and absolute change is, in the world as it is, a catastrophe.
This is the answer I received to my problem.
Because that was my question, I wondered, "But why? I who am..." Any second I just have to do
this (gesture upward) and it's... there's only the Lord, all is THAT - but in such an absolute way that all
that is not It vanishes! So the proportion at present.. (laughing) is that too many things would have to
disappear!
That I understood.
(silence)
At times... For the body it's a constant work - a constant labor - very tiny, of every instant, an
unceasing effort, with, so to say, an imperceptible result (externally at any rate, quite nonexistent), so
for someone who doesn't have my consciousness, it's perfectly obvious that the body appears to wear
out and age, to be slowly heading for decomposition: that's in everyone's atmosphere and consciousness
(Mother laughs), it's the kind of appreciation and vibration that's being thrown all the time on this poor
body, which besides is quite conscious of its infirmity - it doesn't entertain any illusions! But that quiet,
peaceful, but UNCEASING endurance in the effort of transformation makes it sometimes yearn for a
little ecstasy - not as an abolition or annihilation, not at all, but it seems to be saying, "Oh, Lord, I beg

you, let me be You m all tranquillity." In fact, that's its prayer every evening when people are supposed
to leave it in peace (unfortunately they leave it in peace physically, but mentally they don't). But that...
I could cut off, I learned to cut off long, long ago, I could cut off, but... something, I mean somewhere,
"someone" doesn't approve! (Mother laughs) Obviously what the Someone - the great Someone -
wants to see realized is perfect peace, perfect rest, and joy, a passive joy (not too active; a passive joy is
enough), a passive, constant joy, WITHOUT forsaking the work. In other words, the individual
experience isn't regarded as all-important - very far from it: the help given to the whole, the leaven
which makes the whole rise, is AT LEAST equally important. Ultimately, that's probably the major
reason for persisting in this body.
Nothing inside asks any questions, there are no problems there; all the problems I am talking about
are posed by the body, for the body; otherwise, inside, everything is perfect, everything is exactly as it
should be. And totally so: what people call "good," what they call "evil," the "beautiful," the "ugly,"
the... all that is a small immensity (not a big immensity), a small immensity that is moving more and
more towards a progressive realization - that's the correct phrase - within an integral Consciousness
which integrally (how should I put it?) enjoys, or I could say, feels the plenitude of what He does -
does, is and so forth (it's all the same thing). But this poor body...
And probably... It's certain too that one can't go too fast: if the body had that Joy in it, if it had that
ecstasy in it, that rapture continually, surely that would bring too rapid a transformation - there are still
a lot of things to be changed, a lot, a whole lot of things....
What people see [when they look at Mother's body] is only the appearance, but this appearance is a
reflection of something else.... (silence) There's a sort of knowledge (is it a knowledge?) or
foreknowledge given to the body of how this appearance will be changed. And it sounds so simple, so
easy, it can be done in a flash, because it's not AT ALL - it won't AT ALL be done in the way people
think or expect.... It's rather like the vision of the TRUE internal movement that would IMPOSE itself
in such a way that it would veil the false vision which sees things like that [on the surface]. It's very
hard to explain, but it's... I've felt it several times for a few seconds (I have a sort of sensation of the
thing): there is something true, the true Physical, which, although it's not perceptible to our eyes as they
see, could make itself perceptible through an INTENSIFICATION. And that intensification would be
what would effect the transformation outwardly - that would replace the false appearance with the real
form.
But I have no idea whether the false appearance wouldn't still exist for those not ready to see the
true thing.... At any rate, it would be an intermediary period: those whose eyes were open would be
able to see (what is called "open eyes" in the Scriptures), they would be able to see; and they would be
able to see not through effort or seeking, but the thing would impose itself on them. While those whose
eyes were not open... for a time, at least, it would be that way, they wouldn't see - they would still see
the old appearance. The two may be simultaneous.
I SAW myself the way I am, and quite obviously... (Mother laughs) my body seems to have been
shrunk to enable me to dominate it and exceed it on all sides without difficulty! That's my impression,
something that's shrunk! The English word is very expressive (Mother laughs).
Now, of course, when I say that, people imagine it's a psychic or mental vision - that's not it, I don't
mean that! I mean a PHYSICAL vision, with these very eyes (Mother touches her eyes). But a TRUE
physical vision, instead of the distorted vision we have now.
This means, basically, that the true reality is far more marvelous than we can imagine, because all
that we can imagine is always a transformation or glorification of what we see - but that's not it. That's
not it!

I am not quite sure that I do not already exist physically with a true body 106 - I say "not quite sure"
because the outer senses have no proof of it! But in fact... I don't try, I have never attempted to see or
know, but from time to time, it somehow imposes itself: for a minute, I see myself, feel myself,
objectify myself as I am. But it just lasts a few seconds, and pfft! gone - it's replaced by the old habit.
You know, we can only conceive of things changing from one to another: you grow young again,
all the signs of aging disappear and so on - that's old hat, that's not how it works. That's not it!
Once, I remember, my body was feeling sorry for itself like a child, it was bemoaning its condition,
when it heard a voice - an awesome voice - that said to it, "Why don't you feel yourself AS YOU
ARE?" And that experience followed - but it lasted a second. A second, a flash.
And then comes that wonderful reason we reek of (I don't say we're "steeped in," I say we "reek
of"), which starts asking: How can that be? And how can I remain efficient? And how can I keep a
contact with the rest of the world? And how... how, how? So I stopped, stopped it all. And what's going
to happen to this body? And what will be its mode of existence?...
We can very well conceive (it's something easy to conceive) that beings may be born in another
manner, through a power of concentration, and that those beings may materialize without any of the
miseries that beset us - that's all very well, but it's for later. We are in between, that's where the
difficulty is.

August 28, 1963
I've received a letter from a publisher friend of mine. He tells me the real reasons for their refusal
of my manuscript "Sri Aurobindo or the Adventure of Consciousness."
Oh, really!
It's interesting. If you want me to read it to you...
(Satprem reads)
..."I had already told you about my misgivings.107 As to the motives for the decision, it always boils
down to the same point: a sincere (though ambiguous) will of ecumenism, a broad rather than deep
intellectual curiosity, permit mentalities such as those that give our firm its orientation and public
106Let us recall in this connection the experience of many disciples who in their "dreams" see Mother much taller than she
is apparently.
107See conversation of May 25.

image to pay some attention to academic essays regarded (wrongly so in the present instance) as
dealing with the famous "Eastern spirituality." But as soon as the essays are lived from within, the
goodwill withdraws into its shell. The reaction is even worse if the author is a "renegade," a
Westerner who has gone over to the enemy side. (I can vouch for that!108 ) I must emphasize that
this whole process is not only unintentional but, more than that, unconscious (which is not an
excuse but an aggravating circumstance). The opposition put up against your first manuscript109
rather hardened with the second, a much more personal book, I mean less "detached," still less
"objective" than the first - and more ample. Through the medium of literature, you were able to
convey whatever you liked. Through a direct essay, you will reach - and so much the worse, or so
much the better - only those who seek. Our firm and its public do not belong, for that matter, to the
category of those who seek."
He's conscious! It's obvious, I told you so all along: your book isn't meant for them. There aren't many
who seek. Those who seek... really, there aren't many. I see the letters we receive from those who are
convinced not only that they seek but also that they've found. Letters from would-be disciples of Sri
Aurobindo coming from over there, from France, Germany, England - don't understand, they don't
understand! Anyhow, that doesn't matter, it will be for later.
Above all, they think they've understood everything.
Ah, the less you know, the more you think you know.
Yes, they know everything, they can't learn anything from us.
They will have to return both your manuscripts to you. No need for them to rot there.
But I don't see what can touch that?
No, no! It's not worth trying.
But still it's worth it from the point of view of the Work - how will there be a breach there one day?
Oh!... You remember that aphorism of Sri Aurobindo's?... I understand VERY WELL what he means.
That will be the day of the great overturn.
A little child...
[76-Europe prides herself on her practical and scientific organisation and efficiency. I am
waiting till her organisation is perfect; then a child shall destroy her.]
I didn't want to comment on it.... But it's true.
Because they're impregnable. Those people are impregnable.
Mentally.
108The author of this letter is a Westerner turned Sufi.
109Sri Aurobindo or the Transformation of the World.

It's not mentally that you can make them yield.
Then how?... It's either by force - violent force - or else by a miracle (what they call a "miracle")
that will leave them... dumbfounded.
Those people are entirely vulnerable (by vulnerable, I mean defenseless) to spiritual force. The day
when it manifests physically, there will be a debacle.
Even here, with these people who through their tradition are so accustomed to the Power, the true
spiritual Power, when it just manifests a little, they... they tremble all over. But there they deny it...
which means they are completely defenseless.
I don't know when it will come - I don't know, it may not be soon - but one thing I know: when it
comes, there will be panic - you know, THE Panic.
And in a panic, you can do something.
(silence)
In any case, your book will be published here, which means it will reach the few who are ready - but
not over there.
The Americans are more open, because they have remained more childlike - they think they know
everything on a material level, but they also know that there are things they don't know. While the
others... they are "beyond childish religious beliefs," of course!
It's not even true, for as soon as a little something stirs within (gesture at the heart center), they
plunge back into their Catholicism.
Anyway...
***
(There follows a discussion between Mother and Satprem to decide whether Mother's comment on the
last aphorism, on
renunciation, should be published in the "Bulletin" in full or only in excerpts. At first Mother finds it
too "personal." This raises the problem of the publication of Mother's words.)
... It should have been said objectively, not as "my experience." But if I start saying "my experience," I
have to go right to the end of my experience, I can't stop halfway.
But that's just the point: it's really striking only when it's YOUR experience.
Yes, but then I would have to tell everything. It's exactly as your friend wrote in that letter: if you
present an "objective" theory, then it's fine - people can take it or leave it, it doesn't matter; but when
you introduce that personal element... Not that I am afraid people may not appreciate (I am perfectly
indifferent to that), it's that I fear it may harm some.
Harm, how?
When you read something you are not ready for, it does you no good.

If I at least had put it in a didactic way...
Yes, but in a didactic way it won't have that richness, that force.
Of course, but that's what people consider "intellectual."
Well, I think we should just ignore them.
Either I should give lessons, or else... But I must say that nowadays I don't enjoy it. I find it so childish
to say, "Things happen in this way" - I know perfectly well they don't happen "in this way"! They
happen in this way and they happen in another way, and everything is possible. You can't keep telling
people, "Everything is possible, you know." To keep repeating, "Everything is possible, you know," is
absurd.
So either I should keep quiet, or else...
Let me give you another example: when I answer people's letters, I never write about myself, I
write about them, yet it's very personal: it's FOR THEM. And in fact, I am coming to see (in not a very
pleasant way) that out of a personal answer they want to make a general teaching - it's absurd! Absurd.
I say something to this man or that woman, and I'll say the opposite to someone else! But they publish
it.... So we should stop publishing anything.
Either stop publishing anything or else, well, too bad....
If we must always take this and that into account, there's nothing we can do or say any more.
I could very well stop publishing anything and declare, "Now, I won't speak any more, it's finished."
But then we would have to stop the Bulletin.
I think you should present your experience, and that's all. Because otherwise, if we cut these texts to
leave only the "objective" things, it becomes dry.
Yes, dry and hollow.
And incomplete, terribly incomplete. Then people will understand very dogmatically - that's bad.
I think it's better to put everything in.
To tell the truth (laughing), I don't care! Even if they get the impression that I have "a screw
loose"....
Those who get wrong impressions will get them anyhow.
And, truly, sincerely, it's absolutely all the same to me. It's the same when people write to me, "How
wonderful": I smile and I think, "What can they understand?!" I receive letters... priceless letters!
Positively exuberant, full of bombastic words, and then there are others who tell me very frankly that
they are full of doubt, that I quite simply use "tricks" to run the whole "business" (!) like any ordinary
human intelligence, and that they can't feel anything divine at all behind all that - both make the same
impression on me, the one and the other! (Mother laughs) To me it's all the same thing. It's their
opinions - they have the right to have any opinions they like. To tell the truth, all that we could reply to
them is, "Have the opinions that make you progress," whether in this way or that, it doesn't matter in
the least!
That's not the point.... Maybe it's the fear (there is a fear somewhere, I don't know), the fear of

opening the intimacy a little too much, a fear from the standpoint of the vibrations.
But (laughing) I don't think there's much danger!
I saw that, in fact: I showed A. some passages from the Agenda that I had selected; obviously A.
likes me, also he makes an effort to understand spiritually - well, I clearly saw while he was reading
that he doesn't understand. There was a whole part that was absolutely beyond his understanding, he
didn't understand, and what little he could catch was just a husk.
So, to tell the truth, it doesn't matter.
Of course, there's the rule that it's not good to speak of yourself - that goes without saying. But
what can I talk about now, if not about my experience? Because nothing exists any more - all the socalled "objective" knowledge is to me a useless mental activity.
So let's just leave it at that.
Otherwise, truncated publications... I find that very bad; better nothing at all, because they are, as
it were, drained.
Yes, drained of all power.
Let's just leave it as it is.

August 31, 1963
(Mother looks at Satprem for a long time)
I saw a new thing in front of you.
You were in a sort of golden light, rather solid, and then from here (the throat) down to here (the
solar plexus), there were all the Tantric colors, you know, all the shades. I don't know if you have ever
seen them: the Tantrics have an atmosphere with all the colors, not mixed together but side by side. It's
a kind of "chart of powers," and according to the color they select and pick out, or use, it serves one
purpose or another: one is for health, another for progress, another for understanding, and so forth. That
chart was with you, and I saw your hand moving as if you were writing.
I see those colors, I always see them in association with those who have practiced Tantrism. X
always has them with him, and with his guru,110 it's even much more, very strong and very intense.
It was there in front of you, from there (the throat), that is to say the center of relationship with the
world, down to here (the solar plexus).
***
110X's deceased guru, who several times appeared before Mother.

Soon afterwards:

These last few days, I had an opportunity to work on the proportion between the expression and the
fact. Let me explain: for example, you have an experience (there are two cases where it's very clear)...
first you have the experience, then comes the expression of that experience; and the proportion between
the divine simplicity of the experience and the realizing power of the expression is what gives the
measure of perfect sincerity - the ratio between the two must be perfectly true.
I saw in that almost a key to assess sincerity.
The same goes for a teaching, in the sense that you have a certain power, which acts with a view to
a result on those who, naturally, are receptive - a certain power intended to produce a certain result or
effect - and owing to the world's condition, which is almost exclusively mental, there is a need to add
words (what people call a "teaching") to that power. And that's where there should be an exact
proportion between the sentence and the power: the sentence shouldn't express more or less than the
power, it should be an exact expression of the power - say neither too much nor too little but say
exactly the appropriate words that will clothe the power (in a mentally receivable way), that will be a
vehicle of the power. And the proportion between the two gives the exact measure of the sincerity.
I don't know if I can make myself understood, but for two days I was engrossed in that work of
establishing an absolutely true ratio - which in fact can be true only in a complete simplicity and
complete sincerity. I saw the power that acts in the words and the power that acts without words, and
the proportion between the two powers must be exact, entirely correct, to have a complete sincerity.
You follow?
It was a very interesting work - not intellectual at all, a completely material work, down here, very,
very practical. For example, what you write to someone should exactly correspond to the quality and
quantity of the Power - which acts DIRECTLY, not through the mind. It was very interesting, a very
painstaking work. And it was the key - one of the keys to perfect sincerity.
That was my preoccupation these last few days.
(silence)
And once more, I had that experience when the body was again moaning - I say "moaning," but it's not
that, it's a kind of aspiration so strong that it becomes like an anguish; and also that sense of incapacity.
And the same Response: all at once the body is seized by a formidable power, so great that the body
itself feels it could break anything! It comes like a mass. And I recalled a sentence of Sri Aurobindo in
which he said, "Before you can be the Lord's lion, you should first be the Lord's lamb,'' 111 and it was as
though I were told, "Enough of being the lamb! (laughing) Now become the lion." But it doesn't last.
And I can easily see why it doesn't last! Oh, it's... You feel as if you're going to tear everything
down!
(silence)
But the body does profit from the experience, in the sense that it feels stronger afterwards - not much
111Mother may be alluding to the following Aphorism (141): "Nietzsche saw the superman as the lion-soul passing out of
camelhood, but the true heraldic device and token of the superman is the lion seated upon the camel which stands upon the
cow of plenty. If thou canst not be the slave of all mankind, thou art not fit to be its master, and if thou canst not make thy
nature as Vasishtha's cow of plenty with all mankind to draw its wish from her udders, what avails thy leonine
supermanhood?" (The Rishi Vasishtha had a cow that supplied all that he needed for himself and his ashram, including
armies to defend him.)

stronger physically, we don't care about that strength! It's a very odd phenomenon: the sense of the
"concrete" fades away - it fades farther and farther away. "Concrete" vision, "concrete" sense of smell,
"concrete" taste, "concrete" hearing, it all seems far away - far behind in a... an unreal past. And that
kind of dry and lifeless "concrete" is replaced by something that's very supple (round, global gesture),
very complete in that all the senses function together, and VERY INTIMATE WITH EVERYTHING.
For a while I was shown the two functionings to enable me to perceive the difference: how the
senses function now, and how they did formerly: and it gives a fuzzy impression, but it's an impression
of something both very intimate and very complete (same round gesture), whereas, before, each thing
was separate, divided (choppy, hard gesture), unconnected with the other, it was very superficial - very
precise but very superficial, like a pinpoint. It's not at all that way any more.
And I see very well that if we let ourselves be carried along instead of having that absurd resistance
of habit, if we let ourselves be carried along, there would come a sort of very... (same round, global
gesture) very soft thing, in the sense of smooth, very soft, very complete, very living, and with a very
intimate perception of things. Along with a knowledge that becomes... if there weren't that mixture of
the old habit, it would be really extraordinary: the perception of things not as if they were outside, but
an INTIMATE perception. When someone enters the room, for instance, or when the clock is about to
strike, you know it just (I can't say a second, it's a thousandth of a second), just before it takes place
materially; which gives you the feeling of a foreknowledge, but it's not that! It's not a foreknowledge,
it's... It belongs to the realm of sensation, but it's other senses. The FOREMOST feeling you get is one
of intimacy, that is to say, there is no more distance, no more difference, no more seer and thing seen;
yet, there is in it what corresponds to vision, hearing, sensation, all the perceptions, taste, smell and all
of that.
There is here a very concrete change from before, very perceptible.
I understand very well: what prevents the functioning from being perfect is all the old habits. If we
could let ourselves be carried along without resisting - without any will to "see well," to "hear well"
and so on - we would have the other perception, which is much TRUER. And that intimacy with
things... things are no longer foreign. But there is no thought in it; they speak of "knowledge through
identity," you know, but that's all intellectual notions, it's not that! It's...
And always that feeling of something smooth (same round gesture), smooth, without any clashes,
any complications, as though you could no longer bump into things, no longer... It's quite interesting.
It takes time simply because of the resistance of the old habits. If we could always let ourselves be
carried along, things would go much faster - much faster. All the time, a hundred times a day (more
than that!), I tell myself, "Why are you thinking of this? Why are you thinking of that?" For example, if
I have to answer someone (not always in writing, it can be an [occult] work, to organize something),
the Force acts quite naturally, smoothly, without any resistance; then suddenly thought comes into the
picture and tries to interfere (I catch it every time and I stop it every time; but it's too often!), and all the
old habit returns. That need to translate things into thoughts, to give them "clear" expression... And
then you hinder the entire process.
Oh, to let oneself live simply, simply, without complications....

September

September 4, 1963
An avalanche of letters!
Someone disappears, people ask me where he is, whether he's dead or alive. Someone else has
worries: he wants to see me. Someone... People I don't know at all! A stack of letters! They ask me for
success in their business, for good health, for a child (a boy!), a good job.... Anyway everything that
people are capable of wanting, they write and ask me. Oh, there are also those who ask me to tell their
fortune! Many ask me, but I answer them bluntly, "I am not a fortuneteller, I don't read tea leaves"!
(Mother scribbles a note)
Here is an answer I'll have sent to all those people whom I don't know and who ask me for things:
What have you given to the Lord, or done for Him, that you ask me to do something for you? - I do
only the Lord's work! (Mother laughs)
You know, it's clearly millions and millions of miles away from their thought, so...
It's funny, no? Even Nolini would be shocked! (Mother laughs heartily) But I find it funny.
Basically, their idea of the divine is something that's at their service - that knows a little more than
you do (!) and is at your service to give you whatever you desire.
***
After a meditation with Satprem:

I again saw a square shape, like last time, in front of you, but this time it was different: there was a
bright golden light, and that square shape was here (gesture between the throat and the solar plexus), in
front of you, then it rose and rose and rose like that, slowly, very slowly, above your head, and there it
spread out into a great light... a very quiet light.
I think it's the symbol of your meditation. A square - a perfect square, I mean, about this size, from
there to there (from the top of the head to the solar plexus): that's you when you meditate. It's quite
established, like something firmly established, and then slowly, very slowly, it rose and rose and rose
above your head, and there... not violently, of course, it didn't burst out, but it spread out into an
Immensity of light.
The symbol of your consciousness.
It's always a square shape.
Last time, I told you there were those Tantric lights; this time, there was a pale gold, very luminous,
very tranquil, and the shape [of the square] was like a somewhat more golden vibration, a little darker
(but not "dark"), and it stayed still a very long time, till suddenly I felt in your consciousness as if
something were opening out, relaxing and opening out, like a sort of well-being in your consciousness.
And no sooner did that happen than the square began to rise and rise and rise above your head, and
there...

Is it the symbol of your meditation or the symbol of your consciousness?... - The symbol of your
consciousness.
Did you feel, towards the middle of your meditation, a kind of sudden relaxing, an inner wellbeing?
Yes, I felt it.
Then that's it.
As soon as you felt it, it started rising until... as though it merged into an infinite.
But it's good.
Very good.
Do you have anything to tell me? We still have a quarter of an hour.
What?
Some things have been very present in my consciousness lately - death.
Death?
Very present.
It's because... yes.
And you're wondering what it means?
I sense a threat, something lying in wait; like a Fate lying in wait, very close, and as the end of the
year draws near, it becomes heavier and heavier.
(silence)
Sujata also felt it these last few months - but I've been feeling it for a long time. I sense something
lying in wait, something hanging over her and over me - I don't know which of the two. In the past I
didn't often think of death, but now it comes to my mind constantly.
But what do you call death?!
I mean, leaving this body.
As a thing personal to you?
It expresses itself personally, though it may be something more general, I don't know.
(Mother remains silent) Two years ago I used to see it over you very much - much more than now. It
seems to have moved away, so that's strange.112
Two years ago, when I was still going downstairs, when I used to see you in Pavitra's office.
112In fact, the physical blow will come a year later and Satprem will nearly die from it.

There was a time when I intervened (it was the time of the Swami's activities and all that). It was
over you at that time. But lately... I haven't seen anything special - attacks do come periodically along
with the suggestion of all kinds of catastrophic possibilities: nothing more particular to you than to
others. It's part of the work, I don't pay any attention to it.
But as for a quite personal threat to you, things seem much better now than they were two years
ago.
Only, it may be that because of the work I am doing, you are brought into contact with a certain
layer of possibilities and so you become more conscious of that.... As for Sujata, she must be
unknowingly under your influence, so what you feel she feels too - that's my impression.
I'll look, but I haven't seen anything lately. On the contrary, that thing I used to see over you at that
time and drive away deliberately, since the beginning of this year in particular I haven't seen it - I'll
look.
I rather feel that a work is going on in the field of your consciousness, something which is
awakening, which was less conscious before - it's more that than an impending danger.
How does your body feel? Still tired?
Not too brilliant. Oh, you know, I've always thought that '63 would be a very important date for me.
Why, I don't know.
Yes, because we WANT it very important!
One thing has been coming back to me almost obstinately lately, it's the memory (that's what's odd,
it comes as a MEMORY, as though it were something I had lived), the memory of your concentration
camp. Very odd. It came back to me perhaps two or three weeks ago, I don't know, very strongly. I
even looked - studied, rather - what the consequences were for your body. Studied and... well, did
what was needed.
I don't know, I can't say, because for all these experiences I try to drive all thoughts as far away as
possible, because they don't help to get the correct perception. So that I can't say whether or not there
was a reason for that "memory" - to tell the truth, the mind always finds reasons for everything, so...
You know, I am not occupied with those things, I don't try to know, and therefore they don't come -
they come of their own accord. There was obviously a necessity: all that comes is necessary, I know
that, otherwise it wouldn't come. But that memory didn't bring with it any sense or perception of a
danger to your physical life, not in the least. I don't have that perception, while I did have it two years
ago. Now I don't have it.
But I remember that for a few days I was occupied with that memory, as part of a vast work on
certain physical vibrations, in all the physical domains with which I deal. And it came (strangely, it's
always LOCATED, located somewhere...), and the perception I have is very acute, absolutely like the
perception of something that happened to me personally (but all that comes to me now comes in this
way). Only, there was the knowledge that it was your own body that had gone through that experience.
And then... yes, I remember, there was a certain quality of vibration... (Mother "looks" silently), and it
was connected with a study on the experience the cells gain in the process of death. I remember, I was
studying the cellular experiences (which the cells have more often than not semiconsciously and often
unconsciously), those semiconscious experiences that stay in the subconscient and help to make some
cells more and more receptive and prepared for the new Force. And as I was studying that, your
experience of the camps came, and I saw in fact that a certain number of your cells, a rather
considerable number (cells that are partly in the brain, partly in the throat center and partly here
[gesture to the upper part of the chest]) have had the preliminary experience of death.

And that gives them a very special capacity of consciousness.
Could this be what gave you that sense of death?... But you say it has been there for a long time.
While, for me, it's recent (it was perhaps ten days ago), my study is recent. It was very interesting.... I
can still see them now, they were as if located in certain parts of your body.
But that's a favorable observation, not a dangerous one!
Favorable, how?
Favorable, oh, yes! Favorable in the sense that those cells are far more conscious than cells are
ordinarily.
Because they had that experience?
Yes, because they had that experience and survived - because the form survived that experience.
From the standpoint of a higher receptivity, it has a very, very considerable importance - I mean
receptivity to the new forces, a preparation to receive the new forces.
(silence)
But things are rather complex.... For the body in its ordinary consciousness, its absolutely normal state
is when it doesn't feel itself living. When the body doesn't feel itself living, that means it's functioning
normally; as soon as it feels itself living in some part of itself, it means that something isn't quite
normal, and instinctively (I don't mean the vital or mental consciousness), but its primal consciousness
is alarmed, because it's not normal (not what it calls "normal"); and then that sort of alarm (an alarm
that's not formulated in thoughts) brings it into contact with a whole world of adverse and defeatist
suggestions - oh, there is an INTENSE atmosphere of pessimistic, defeatist, adverse suggestions in
which human lives are bathed, as it were. It's even very strong here, very strong - I mean in the Ashram
- very strong. People who are very sensitive and whose consciousness isn't firmly rooted in faith are
very... (what shall I say?) very deeply... not deeply but intimately attacked by that atmosphere.
And it makes bodies very ill-at-ease.
(silence)
I will look again,113 but for the moment, it seems to me, it's a period or a stage in the integral
development that brings you into contact with death. It's an impersonal thing and I don't see anything
ominous about it, I mean I don't consider your feeling as premonitory - except that Death is
everywhere in the world, of course! Well, that's all, it boils down to that.
There, mon petit.
That may be it, because there is an interesting work going on within you.
My impression... If you ask me, my impression is to the contrary: it's that for the moment, I am
preparing a new life for you. Voil.
You should... I don't even feel the need to tell you, but what's necessary is to fasten one's
consciousness imperturbably to something which, in fact, isn't personal - to the New Realization.
And if you feel those defeatist vibrations, know that things are now a battlefield, a field of action,
113Occultly, to see if there is a real threat over Satprem.

very active. You see, the battle is being waged in the body every minute - all the time, all the time.... I
don't expect others to wage it along with me; only, if on their part they hold on to what MUST BE,
that's all that is needed.

September 7, 1963
(The beginning of this conversation was to disappear, but Satprem chanced on it on a second track
of the tape-recording. He found it charming and inserted it back here. Quite often he deleted these
beginnings of conversations.... Here the subject was his health, Sujata having written to Mother
that it was deteriorating" and proposed that a supplementary diet be given him.)
So, let me contemplate you! (laughter) How are you, mon petit?
There is some improvement.
A little better.... And that food, is it all right?
Yes, it seems to be helping.
Here... (Mother gives a white hibiscus): it's the "will one with the Divine Will" - when they're merged
like that and you can no longer tell one from the other. Petit...
***
(Mother comments on an "old" experience of June 29: the "boat of pink clay.")
Things are moving much faster than I thought because this experience seems to me far, far, far behind
[it dates back two months], so many things have happened since - there are so many things I don't
mention.
***
Soon afterwards:

The other day, for some question of work, I was led to explain my position from the standpoint of the
materialist conviction (I don't know what their position is today, because that's something I am not

concerned with generally), but anyway I was led to do it because of a certain work.114
For them, all the experiences men have are the result of a mental phenomenon: we have reached a
progressive mental development (they are at a loss to explain why or how!), anyhow it was Matter that
developed Life, Life that developed Mind, and all of men's so-called spiritual experiences are mental
constructions (they use other words, but I believe that's their idea). It is, at any rate, a denial of all
spiritual existence in itself and of a Being or Force or Something superior which governs everything.
As I said, I don't know what their position is today, what point they have reached, but I was in the
presence of a conviction of that type.
Then I said, "But it's very simple! I accept your point of view, there is nothing other than what we
see, than mankind as it is; all the so-called inner phenomena are due to a mental, cerebral action; and
when you die, you die - in other words, the phenomenon of agglomeration comes to the end of its
existence, and it dissolves, everything dissolves. That's all very well."
(Quite likely, had things been that way, I would have found life so disgusting that I would have left
it long ago. But I must add right away that it's not for any moral or even spiritual reason that I
disapprove of suicide, it's because to me it's an act of cowardice and something in me doesn't like
cowardice, so I did not... I would never have fled from the problem.)
That's one point.
"But then, once you are here on this earth and you have to go to the end, even if the end is
nothingness, you go to the end and it's just as well to do so as best you can, that is to say, to your fullest
satisfaction.... I happened to have some philosophical curiosity and to study all kinds of problems, and I
came upon Sri Aurobindo's teaching, and what he taught" (I would say "revealed," but not to a
materialist) "is by far, among the systems men have formulated, the most satisfying FOR ME, the most
complete, and what answers the most satisfactorily all the questions that can be asked; it is the one that
helps me the most in life to have the feeling that 'life is worth living.' Consequently, I try to conform
entirely to his teaching and to live it integrally in order to live as best I can - for me. I don't mind at all
if others don't believe in it - whether they believe in it or not is all the same to me; I don't need the
support of others' conviction, it's enough if I am myself satisfied."
Well, there's no reply to that.
The experience lasted a long time - for all details, to all problems, that's what I answered. And
when I came to the end, I said to myself, "But that's a wonderful argument!" Because all the elements
of doubt, ignorance, incomprehension, bad will, negation, with that argument they were all muzzled -
annulled, they had no effect.
That work, I think, must have had worldwide repercussions. I was in it, in that state (with the sense
of a very great power and a wonderful freedom) for certainly at least six or eight hours. (The work had
started long before, but it became rather acutely present these last few days.)
And afterwards, everything was held in a solid grip - what do you have to say?
(silence)
It's much easier to answer out-and-out materialists who are convinced and sincere ("sincere" within the
limit of their consciousness, that is) than to answer people who have a religion! Much easier.
With Indians, it's very easy - they're heaven-blessed, these people, because it takes very little for

114An occult work, obviously.

them to be oriented in the right way.115 But there are two types of difficult religion, the Christian
religion (especially in the form of Protestantism), and the Jewish religion.
The Jews are also out-and-out materialists: you die, well, you die, it's over. Though I haven't quite
understood how they reconcile that with their God, who moreover is Unthinkable and must not be
named... but who, seen from the standpoint of a vaster truth, seems (I am not sure), seems to be an
Asura. Because it's an almighty and UNIQUE God, foreign to the world - the world (as far as I know)
and he are two completely different things.
It's the same with Catholicism. Yet, if I remember correctly, their God created the world with a part
of himself, no?
No, no!
No? Is it only man that he pulled out of his rib?
No! It's out of Adam's rib that he pulled man, not out of his own rib!
Aah!
It's out of Adam's rib...
... that he pulled woman. Aah!...
No, no, he "created" the world.
Out of nothingness he made the world?
That's right.
Then it's the same problem, the same difficulty.
It's quite simply an incomprehension.
And in fact he sent his son to "save the world."
Then his son doesn't belong to the creation?
He is the son of God - not so the others.
He is the ONLY son of God?
Yes, of course!
They've twisted everything.
But Adam belonged to the creation, didn't he?
Yes, while Christ isn't human, he is the son.
115Later Mother added: "This isn't quite correct because I am in contact with the best among Indians, but those who are
materialists are very darkly and brutishly so."

But he took on a human body.
Yes, but he's the son of God. He isn't a human being become divine, he is a divine being - "the son
of God" - who took on a human body.
But that's understood! All Avatars are like that.
Yes, but he's the only one.
It's all twisted.
But the Virgin, in that affair? What happened to her? Because she was a woman, wasn't she?
She was human.
Yes... because in the story, there's even a moment when Christ says, "What do I have to do with that
woman"!
But then, the Assumption?...
(silence)
Of course, those who know understand very well - it's all symbolic.
But for instance, I told you I spoke with the Pope for quite a long time the day of his election, and
the conversation was abruptly interrupted by a reaction he had. (It was really a mental conversation we
were having: I spoke, he replied, I heard his reply - I don't know whether he was conscious of
something... probably not, but anyway; it wasn't at all a formation of my own mind because I received
quite unexpected replies.) But the conversation was interrupted abruptly by a reaction he had when I
told him that God is everywhere and in all things; that everything is He; and then a great Force came
down into me and I added, "Even when you descend into Hell, He is there too."
Then everything stopped dead.
Since then I've learned that it's part of their teaching: that what is terrible in Hell isn't so much the
suffering, but that there is no God there; that it's the only part of the creation in which there is no God -
there is no God in Hell. And I asserted that He is there too.
But naturally, from an intellectual point of view, all those things are explained and find their place -
man has never thought anything that wasn't the distortion of a truth. That's not the difficulty, it's that for
religious people there are certain things they have a DUTY to believe, and to allow the mind to discuss
them is a "sin" - so naturally they close themselves and will never be able to make any progress.
Whereas the materialists, on the other hand, are on the contrary supposed to know and explain
everything - they explain everything rationally. So (Mother laughs), precisely because they explain
everything, you can lead them where you want to.
There.
There's nothing to be done with religious people.
No. And it's not good to try either. If they cling to a religion, it means that that religion has helped them
somehow or other, has helped something in them which in fact wanted to have a certitude without
having to seek for it - to lean on something solid without being responsible for its solidity (someone
else is responsible! [Mother laughs]), and to leave their bodies in that way. So to want to pull them out

of it shows a lack of compassion - they should just be left where they are. Never do I argue with
someone who has a faith - let him keep his faith! And I take great care not to say anything that might
shake his faith because it's not good - such people are unable to have another faith.
But with a materialist... "I don't argue, I accept your point of view; only, you have nothing to say -
I've taken my position, take yours. If you are satisfied with what you know, keep it. If it helps you to
live, very good.
"But you have no right to blame or criticize me, because I am taking my position on your own
basis. Even if all that I imagine is mere imagination, I prefer that imagination to yours." That's all.

September 18, 1963
I had an interesting experience the day before yesterday.
In a very concrete way, there was the consciousness that everything is the Lord and that everything
is His will, His action, His consciousness and so forth; at the same time, the perception of the world as
it is ("as it is," anyway... as we feel it). And as there was no longer any notion of good and evil and all
that, there was a sort of almost candid surprise, a very spontaneous surprise, not thought out, at
reprobation, anger, disapproval, scorn for all the people who are called "bad," who do evil and have
bad will. It seemed so strange that one could lose one's temper because of that! Then there arose a
profound Pity - but a Pity that has nothing of the sense of superiority or inferiority, nothing like that -
like a sort of sorrow that there can be people who are so small and so weak in that Immensity that they
are COMPELLED to be nasty and malicious, to hate, to reject, to wish evil.
The words diminish the experience very, very much. It was so... a super-compassion, you know,
full of a deep Love and Understanding: "How can one reproach them for being the way the Lord wants
them to be?"
Then, when it all settled down, several hours afterwards, I wrote something - I wrote it in French
(even with the will that it should not be translated into English). And as a matter of fact it's
untranslatable. Here is what I wrote:
Ce
monde
est
mais
les
etres
sont
ceux
qui
et assez forts pour etre bons.116

plein
que
ne

de
je
sont

misres
pitoyables,
plains
le
plus
pas
assez
grands

116A literal translation, using the words of Mother's own English translation which follows, would give:
This world is full of pitiable miseries,
but the beings I pity most
are those who are not vast
and strong enough to be good.

But then the word bon [good] no longer had that sense of opposition to "evil": it contained all the
divine splendor. It was the radiance of divine Love.
(silence)
Any translation of the word bon [good] into English is very small and all the way down. I didn't want to
put it into English. But today, all at once it came to me in English and I wrote it down:
This
world
is
but
of
all
beings
those
who
are
so
they are compelled to be nasty.

full

of

those
small

I
and

pitiable
pity
so

miseries,
most
are
weak
that

It's seen from the opposite side, but there is as much in it as in the first.
***
Soon afterwards:

What have you brought me?
There's some work....
The active work, you know... I am not good for much!
When I have an experience, I don't even try to formulate it - I never try: I live it as intensely as I
can and keep it alive as long as I can. Then suddenly there's a kind of rivulet: a rivulet of words that
come, and they come all together, then they arrange themselves - I have nothing to do with it all! I
don't know whether it's listening or seeing: it's something in between. For a very long time, all my
contacts with the invisible were visual contacts, but now there is sound too. So this is how it works: I
simply have to be attentive, that is to say, not actively busy with something else. If I stay still, it comes:
it's exactly like a rivulet, a tiny rivulet flowing out of a mountain; it's very clear and pure like pure
water, very transparent, and very white and luminous at the same time. It comes (gesture as of pearls
of water dropping) and it arranges itself here, just above the head, in the form of words. It arranges
itself, and someone, I don't know who (probably Sri Aurobindo! because it's someone with a poetic
power), looks after the sound and the placement of the words, and puts them in the proper order.
Finally, after a little while, it's complete. And then I write it down - it's very amusing. That's what
happened with the English translation: I had said with authority, "It will not be translated." Then this
morning, when I wasn't thinking of anything at all, it came all on its own. That is to say, to be precise, I
was telling the fact to someone who knows English better than French, so I said it in English, and once
it was said I noticed, "Well, well! Ah, that's it, that's right!" It was the experience that had expressed
itself in English. But thank God, all this (gesture to the head) has nothing to do with it - quiet... oh, so
peaceful. (silence) There is almost a paroxysm of disorder and confusion in all the affairs of the earth
(at the Ashram too - maybe even worse than elsewhere! No, not worse but just as bad!), and it seems to
be reaching new heights: almost hour by hour I discover confusion... confusion, disorder (before I
would have called it mischief, but now...). And what confusion!... People who are convinced that they
know how to deal with things (they know far better than the Lord, far better - the Lord is completely
ignorant of the things of this world, but THEY know better), and then the blunders they commit! And

when they've committed a blunder, after a while they realize it's a blunder, so to make it good they
commit another blunder! Everything is like that here, absolutely everything, with all sorts of blunders.
And once they have thoroughly bungled, piled up blunder upon blunder and landed themselves in a
complete mess, they think of asking me! (laughing) They ask me, "What should we do?" So I answer,
"It's about time!"
But what's marvelous is that nothing stirs here (gesture to the head), nothing stirs. And the Lord
smiles.
***
I had several hours of concentration regarding that decrease of energy in your body; not an illness: a
decrease of energy in your body117 (you add mental things to it, but that's your affair, mon petit, you
will correct that). I had several hours of concentration, and I even reproached the Lord, telling Him that
really if that's the effect I have on people, (laughing) it's not worth mentioning, I'd better leave! (There
was a conjunction of a good number of things.) I don't believe a word of my complaint! But anyway...
(laughing) I make it "just like that."
Immediately, there came a massive descent, and everything was blissful - I said to myself, "Lord,
it's up to You. It's up to You to have me here, it's up to You to have me act; I don't act, You are the one
who acts. The result is up to You, but... as far as I can see, if I am allowed to see, I don't find that
logical!"
Then I was told (but not with words), very clearly and very strongly, that it was a transition
necessary for your integral development - INTEGRAL. And that I shouldn't worry.
Though I do....
He has absolutely convinced me that you will come out of it grown in stature, enlightened (not in
the sense of deranged!), illuminated, and much stronger. Voil.
I even added something which I am not supposed to tell you, but anyway... (usually it's left unsaid),
I added that I needed you. And that consequently nothing should happen to you.
The answer was a smile.
Afterwards it came to me that it was a transition. So I hope it won't last too long.118
A little change in your mental attitude is necessary; what in fact we could call a little cure of a
pessimism - or a big cure of a little pessimism! Voil... somewhere: it's for you to know where.
But it's a transition, nothing other than a transition.
The body is very ignorant (that we know, it goes without saying!), so the minute something is
wrong with it, I can't say it gets afraid, but it feels it's VERY serious (laughing) - always! (I know this
from experience, for myself.) Until you have CAREFULLY explained to it that it should be a good
boy, keep very quiet, not be afraid and... let itself be carried along.
It always answers, "But look at all those people who die, all those who are sick, all those..." But
now, I answer my body, "There are enough sick people as it is, no need to imitate them!"
117A state of continuous exhaustion (which has lasted for three years now). In fact, medicine would have called it
"tuberculosis," but Satprem did not believe in medicine.
118It will break and dissolve a year later. As Mother will explain to Satprem later, the "transition" consisted in removing
Satprem's entire vital being (which normally causes one to die) in small doses.

(silence)
Above all, there is a kind of coexistence, of juxtaposition of two things that are really opposite states
yet always seem to be together: a Peace in which everything is harmonious (I am speaking of the
body's cells), everything is harmonious to the point that no disorder can occur, no illness, no suffering,
no disorganization or decomposition can occur - impossible; it's a Peace that's eternal, absolutely
beyond time (though it is felt in the body's cells); and at the same time, a tremor - an ignorant and
bustling and dark tremor, dark in the sense that it's unaware of its ignorance, not knowing what to do
and doing useless things all the time. And in that state you find disorder, decomposition,
disorganization, suffering and... at times it becomes acute, acute, all the nerves are tense and it aches all
over - and both states are together.119
"Are together," I mean to the point that you don't even feel you make a movement of reversal, you
don't even know how you go from one state to the other, you... the reversal is imperceptible.
And they are exactly opposite.
You can, in much less time than a flash, eliminate any pain, any disorder, any illness from your
body; and in a flash, it can all come back. And then you can switch from one to the other, from one to
the other... (back-and-forth gesture).
The point not yet grasped or understood is how to stabilize that Peace.
When It's there, you feel as if nothing can alter It: all the attacks in the world fall away, powerless;
nothing can alter It. And It disappears the same way It came, there's no knowing how.
If I observe very carefully, I have the impression that the mind of Matter Sri Aurobindo refers to, 120
you know, the thought of Matter, isn't yet pure, it's still mixed; so it only takes one wrong movement
for everything to come undone. And in people, that material mind lives in its wrong movement
constantly - except a flash once in a while: a reversal. But here [in Mother], there still remains a habit;
a habit (almost like a mere memory) of the wrong movement. And it only has to recur even as tiny as a
pinpoint for... brrt! everything to fall back into the old rut.
But when I see the care I've taken for so many years to purify that fellow, I am a little (what should
I say?)... I can't say frightened or anxious, but... (I can't even say pessimistic), but the condition of
people who haven't done all the yoga I've done for years, how difficult it must be! Because the body's
cells obey that material mind, which, in its natural state, is a mass of stupid ignorance that thinks it's so
smart, oh!... An almost foul mass of stupidity, and it thinks it's so smart! It thinks it knows everything.
(silence)
Because NOTHING in the consciousness budged during those changeovers [back and forth from the
true to the false movement]; the consciousness is like that, turned... not upward, not inward, turned...
simply turned to the Lord, living in His Light, which, in the physical world, becomes a golden
splendor. The consciousness is turned to That. There is nothing but That, it's the sole reality, the sole
truth. And It vibrates like this (Mother touches her hands, her arms), It vibrates in all the cells,
everywhere. I go like this (Mother makes a gesture of collecting "it" in the air around), as if I picked it
up. It isn't ethereal, it's very material; it feels like an air that is thick - but vibrant, very vibrant.... The
119It is the same experience as that of the two "rooms," one within the other, or the two "rivers," now muddy and now
crystal clear.
120The "body-mind."

consciousness is like that. And all this goes on in the body. But with the presence of that old idiot...
which is immediately pessimistic, catastrophic, defeatist - how defeatist, oh... it sees everything as a
calamity. And then that wonderful character, after imagining the worse (in the space of a second, of
course), it submits it all to the Lord and tells Him, "Here, Lord, here is Your work, it's all Yours, do
what You will with it"! The silly idiot, why did it have to prepare its catastrophes! A catastrophe,
invariably a catastrophe, everything is catastrophic - but it offers its catastrophe to the Lord!
And the answer is invariably a smile full of such patience, oh!... That patience gives me a sense of
wonder every second.
Now and then, a great power comes (the body is deliberately given the experience to make it feel
and grow aware that "that" exists), a great power comes, and along with it the impression that you
would only have to do this (Mother brings down her two arms in a sovereign gesture) for everything to
change. But...
It's still much, much too limited and ignorant for that Power to be allowed to act. It [Mother's
individuality] sees many sides of the question, but not all. It isn't... in spite of everything, it has its own
angle - as long as there remains an angle, the Power isn't allowed to act.
Though, yes, there was that experience the other day, when all was the Lord, all, with all things as
they are, as we see them; when all was That in SUCH a perfect whole, perfect because it was so
complete, and so harmonious because it was so conscious, and in a perpetual Movement of progression
towards a greater perfection. (That's something odd, things can't stay still for a quarter of a second: they
are constantly, constantly, constantly progressing towards a more perfect Totality.) Then, at that
moment, if the Power acts (probably it does act), if the Power acts, it acts as it should. But it isn't
always there - it isn't always there, there is still a sense of the things that are to fade away and of those
that are to come - of the passage; a progression which... which isn't all-containing.
But in that state, it seems that what you see MUST be - and inevitably (I should say necessarily), it
is. And probably instantly so. But you have to see the whole at once for your vision to be all-powerful.
If you see only one point (as, for example, when you feel that the action on earth is limited to a certain
field that depends on you), as long as you see that way, you can't be all-powerful, it's not possible - not
possible. It's inevitably conditioned.
(long silence)
There is a growing feeling that all that is, all that happens, outwardly and inwardly (inwardly too) is
absolutely necessary for the totality of the whole.
I am thinking, for instance, of that sort of reaction I had the other day.... Naturally there is a part of
the being that looks on, that smiles and says, "Oh, aren't you beyond that yet!" And at the same time, I
saw, "No, it's necessary - everything is necessary." A special vibration was necessary... necessary to
trigger something else. And everything works like that.
Everything works like that.
(silence)
It's a transitional period - but isn't the transitional period constant?! It must be constant. Only, a point
comes nevertheless when it becomes absolutely conscious and willed, and then it no longer has the
same character.
Basically, once we have emerged from Stupidity, there is... there should be a rather considerable
change.

Oh, there would be a world of things to say!
(silence)
It is impossible for any change, any change towards perfection (I don't mean a regression, because
that's another phenomenon), it's impossible for any change, even in one element or one point of the
earth consciousness, not to make the whole earth participate in that change. Necessarily.
Everything is closely knit together. And a vibration somewhere has TERRESTRIAL consequences
- I don't say universal, I say terrestrial - necessarily.
Which means there isn't one aspiration, not one effort that isn't useful seen from the terrestrial
standpoint (from the individual standpoint, this has been obvious for a very long time), but seen from
the terrestrial standpoint, there isn't one effort - not one effort towards the Better, not one aspiration to
the True - that does not have terrestrial repercussions, terrestrial consequences.

September 21, 1963
(During the conversation, Mother envisages the possibility of reading out a message, if any comes to
her, on the occasion of the second anniversary of the Supramental Manifestation, on February 29,
1964. Then she adds:)
... Provided I can speak.
?
Yes, I was kindly informed that I won't be able to speak any more.
What do you mean?
Oh, the adverse forces always make all sorts of suggestions. I was told that I will lose the use of speech
- (laughing) that'll be all the better for everyone!
(Satprem does not seem too appreciative)
This is how it happened: the other day, the doctor brought some canaries, a cage of canaries to show
me. All over the world, canaries whistle, they come and go and are very active... but here, nothing at
all! The doctor put the cage on the window sill and I came near to see them - they were absolutely
dumb, huddled at the bottom of their cage as though paralyzed. I tried to whistle (I could whistle very
well in the past): not a sound! Then I was kindly told, "You can't whistle any more, you can't sing any
more, and soon you won't be able to speak any more." Voil.

I must have a funny effect on animals, because the other day, little M. came to see me with a tiny
squirrel in a padded box (it was a very tiny thing). He took it out of its box and showed it to me; I
stroked it - gone! Asleep in trance!
Oh, they don't feel unhappy, they're very happy (!) but it's too strong for them. So they fall asleep or
are immobilized like those canaries. At the end, the doctor began to worry about his birds and asked
me, "But what's happening? At home, they whistle all day long!" I answered (laughing), "Yes, here it's
something else!"
He took his cage, and just as he was going, the canaries shook themselves, whistled a few little
notes and off they went!
Anyhow we'll see. I hear all manner of things.

September 25, 1963
(Mother first reads her notation of a recent experience)
It came in English. (I want to put it in the Bulletin to fill a gap!) We should put it in French, too.
Love is... (no need to say that it's the condensation of an experience - an experience I leave unsaid).
Love
is
not
sexual
intercourse.
Love
is
not
vital
attraction
and
interchange.
Love
is
not
the
heart's
hunger
for
affection.
Love
is
a
mighty
vibration
coming
straight
from
the
One.
And
only
the
very
pure
and
very
strong
are
capable
of
receiving
and
manifesting it.
Then an explanation on what I mean by "pure," the very pure and very strong:
To
be
pure
is
influence, and to no other.

to

be

open

only

to

the

Supreme's

Far more difficult than what people consider purity to be! Which is something quite artificial and false.
The last sentence I wrote in French, too (the two came together):
tre
pur,
c'est
l'influence du Supreme et nulle autre.

etre

ouvert

seulement



It's simple and definite.
Now we should translate the rest into French - I have so many papers that I am lost! (Mother
rummages among a heap of scraps of paper) I am snowed under with papers!
At first I put, L'Amour n'a rien voir avec... [Love has nothing to do with... ], and so on, but that's
not true. So we'll put, L'Amour n'est pas... [Love is not...].
L'Amour
n'est
pas
les
L'Amour
n'est
pas
les
attractions
L'Amour n'est pas le besoin d'affection du cur...

relations
et
les

sexuelles.
echanges
vitaux.

It's from Savitri, in "The Debate of Love and Death," when Death tells Savitri, "What you call love is
the hunger of your heart."
Could we translate: "L'Amour n'est pas le cur et son besoin d'affection" [Love is not the heart and
its hunger for affection]?
But the heart can manifest Love! No: L'Amour n'est pas le besoin d'affection du cur [Love is not the
heart's hunger for affection]. And then, the positive side:
L'Amour
est
emane
directement
pur
et
le
trs
et de la manifester.

une
de
fort

vibration
l'Un.
Et
est
capable

toute-puissante
seul,
le
trs
de
la
recevoir

I have a whole stack of notes! (Mother shows her successive drafts of the translation)
The thing is new to me. That's what I told you the other day: first an experience, but an experience...
something that takes HOLD of the entire being, the entire body, everything, everything, like this
(grasping gesture) and keeps you in its hold. And it works. It works everywhere in the cells: absolutely
everywhere, in the consciousness, in the sensation, in the cells. Then it settles, as if passing through a
very fine sieve, and it falls back to the other side - as words. But not always arranged in sentences (it's
very odd): two words here, three words there (Mother seems to show patches of color here and there).
Then I keep very still, I don't stir - above all I don't think, don't stir - silence. Then, little by little, the
words start a dance, and when they form a reasonably coherent sentence, I write it down. But generally
it isn't final. If I wait a little longer (even while doing something else), after a time it comes: a sentence
that has a far more logical and striking existence. And if I wait still longer, it becomes more precise,
until finally it comes with a feeling, "Now this is it." That's what happened with the English note:
"Now this is it." Good, so I write it down.
I never had that before. Everything had to fall silent (I mean even the most active and material outer
mind), I had to get into the habit, when my experience comes, of not stirring - not stirring, nothing
stirring, everything like this (gesture in suspense), waiting.
Even visually, it almost looks like a fine rain of white light, and after a time, that fine rain seems to
make the words grow, as if it were watering the words! And the words come. Then they start a sort of
dance, a quadrille, and when the quadrille has taken a clear shape, then the sentence becomes clear.
Very amusing.
It's already the third time that's happened - brand new.

So when I note it all down, the result is all sorts of papers! (Mother shows the stack of drafts)
And now, with that new process, the papers will go on multiplying! Because it comes the way I told
you [in successive bits]. But it has an advantage: the mind stays absolutely silent - the mind need not
do anything, it's as if someone came to look for the words in a storehouse and made all the
arrangements. And that someone is impersonal: an impersonal consciousness. Almost "the
consciousness of what wants to be expressed," the consciousness of a revelation or an instruction, or
the consciousness of a will, but not of a person. That someone collects the words and puts them
together, then there is a dance... like a dance of electrons!
(silence)
The other day, the process was less complete, but it was something similar, a first hint: K. had sent me
an article he wanted to publish somewhere with quotations from Sri Aurobindo and myself, and he
wanted to make sure it was correct and he hadn't muddled it (!) In one place, I saw a comment by him
(you know how people delight in wordplays when they are fully in the mind: the mind loves to play
with words and contrast one sentence with another), it was in English, I am not quoting word for word,
but he said that "the age of religions was the age of the gods"; and, naturally, as our Mr. Mind loves to
play with words, it made him say that, now, the age of the gods is over and it is "the age of God" -
which means he was deplorably falling back into the Christian religion... without noticing it! And just
as I saw his written sentence, I saw that tendency of the mind which loves it and finds it very... oh,
charming, such a nice turn of phrase (!) I didn't say anything, I went on to the end of his article. Then
where that sentence was I saw a little light shining: it was like a little spark (I saw that with my eyes
open). I looked at my spark, and in the place of God, there was The One. So I took my pen and made
the correction.
But my first translation was The All-Containing One, because it was an experience, not a thought.
What I saw was The One containing all. And innocently, I wrote it down on a paper (Mother shows a
little scrap of paper): The All-Containing One. But just then, I saw what looked like someone giving
me a slap and telling me, "Not that: you should put The One, that's all." So I wrote The One.
That's how it works!
It's really thought seen from above, from a height, and it's very amusing. Very amusing, it all plays,
it's like little will-o'-the-wisps coming out from here and there, doing a dance, arranging themselves -
very amusing.
It's beginning to be amusing. It has been very strong lately - it's been coming at night, in daytime,
all the time.
But the night before, I was with Sri Aurobindo, who gave me a revelation. I was with him, he was
reclining (not stretched out but on a sort of chaise longue) and I was supposed to bring him something
to eat (not at all like physical food, it's something else... I don't know what it is... it's rather different in
that world - the subtle physical), and it was expressed to me... (there were no words in my
consciousness; I don't know why, no words), he told me something which I understood perfectly, not
only understood but it made me very happy, a joy came into me, and I answered, "Yes, exactly! It
corresponds to the experience I had today and which is...???" (Mother leaves her sentence hanging)
You see, I was conscious while I was having all the activity, but it was expressed in words [there] that
aren't words [here], so I don't know what to do! And he told me in the tone you take when expressing a
definitive and overwhelming experience (his tone was one of absolute power) something that was
translated like this: Now, the nourishment (it wasn't nourishment but food) comes from the whole of
Nature at once. (Mother utters those words like a riddle or an open sesame that has not yet opened the
door) And he told me to bring it to him (that too was a translation): Yes, you will bring it (the it was

that food coming from the whole Nature at once - it's a seemingly silly transcription, but anyway...),
you will bring it in this translucent bowl. And I replied, Yes, I knew, I knew that I had to use this
translucent bowl to bring you the food.... But what on earth does that correspond to??... Yet it was so
evident! There was such a joy! (Because as I was conscious, I thought, "Well, all the same, I am still
following him closely in his development, it's going on as when he was here: when he wins a victory, it
is materialized in me.") Thus I was perfectly conscious and I told him, Ah, I am glad!... (I am faltering,
of course, it wasn't that at all - it was admirable.) Oh, I am glad, I knew that I had to bring you the food
in this translucent bowl.... And the translucent bowl was a marvel! I had it, you see, it was beautiful! It
was like opaline, living glass, all luminous but with all the lights alive and moving, and what colors!...
Pink, mauve, silver and gold, oh, it was so very beautiful. And I brought it to him.
It impressed me very strongly. Very strongly: I was under a spell, probably because the experience
was still too strong and powerful for the material brain. And I saw it immediately; at the very moment
of the experience, I saw it was a transcription, and an extraordinarily poor transcription, but nothing
better could be done.
And such details!... There was a whole story (which lasted even more than an hour and a half)...
with all the details. Because where I was with him was an upper floor and when I came down I met
people, did some things and so on. It was the upper floor. And it all went on in a dazzling light,
dazzling, dazzling; everything was as though in a blazing sun... much brighter than the sun - the sun is
dark in such a case.
And when I came downstairs (it wasn't like here: everyone had his own house and garden, it was a
huge estate), I went straight to my bathroom. I open the door... and whom do I find there but someone
(I recognized him, but I won't name him) who was using it - "Well," I thought, "that's a fine thing!"
And I closed the door again. All kinds of details, it lasted more than an hour. And you know, the
number of things that can happen in an hour and a half at night....
Once again I was tall - I am always tall. But I hadn't dressed as I do usually: I wore a short dress.
There were lots of people there; I recognized everyone, I could hear everyone's voice, it was very, very
distinct. And there were two girls (not girls, they're women now, but to me they were like girls), two
girls talking to each other and saying, "How strong her legs are!" (It's symbolic.) And at the same time,
I saw my legs as if there were a mirror to show them to me! I had a short dress and I saw my legs and
my two feet with shoes on - my feet had shoes on. And a short dress. Very active.
Voil.
(silence)
Last night was less pleasant.... There were again those things collapsing. I was below, you see, trying to
go back up to my room, and every time I tried to go back up, all the means to do so disappeared or
were done away with. Now I've chased it all away because it was tiring. But one thing I do remember: I
was climbing up a sort of... not stairs or a ladder, it was a very queer thing, like blocks of dark red
stone, and they were all crumbling - and coming apart. It ended up annoying me, and I had a
movement not of anger, but of self-assertive will - and everything vanished.... You feel it's adverse
formations trying to harass you, until I can't say I lose patience, but something gets angry (is it "angry"?
Asserts itself, rather: "Ah, no! Enough!") and instantly, pfft! it all goes away. But then I found myself
on a road I knew very well, but there was such a crowd! A crowd, a crowd: all the schools of the world
were coming there for their holidays. There were troops of kids led by matrons and teachers, myriads
and myriads of them!... And also children who stopped and played on the ground; but all those children
knew me very well, and when I arrived, they would take their things out of the way to let me through -
weeny little kids this high. Then I met a symbolic person (not a human person) whom I know very

well, she was pale blue (that is to say, a being of the higher mind, a force of Nature in the higher mind),
I know her very well, she is very often with me. She explained to me her difficulties and I explained to
her what she should do; I told her, "I've already told you several times, it's like this and like that...." She
stayed beside me a very long time, and she asked me, "Why do I always have to leave you?" I
answered her, "Don't worry; everything is fine now." It went on for a long time. But it was interesting,
a very pleasant, very refined contact: a beautiful girl - that is, a beautiful thought or a beautiful idea. A
beautiful girl. And she had in her charge an innumerable amount of kids (Mother laughs), so she was
somewhat worried at times, and I explained to her what she should do.
I feel a sort of tenderness towards that person.
And all those children! Even the tiny little ones who could hardly walk, when they saw me arrive
they would push their toys aside and make way for me.
It wasn't on the ground, it wasn't in the physical world.
But a swarm, you know!... It's certainly some mental world or other.
(silence)
But that experience [of the crumbling stairs], I know what it corresponds to, because I know the
experience I had when I went to sleep: it's always when I am confronted with the Problem.... I could
put it this way (but that diminishes it a lot), "Why is the world the way it is?" Then there comes to me
that sort of... it's an INTENSE state of compassion - intense, almost painful - for the condition of the
world and humanity. When that comes, I have those difficulties at night. And then I ask, I want to
know the REAL secret - not all the things people have told (which all seem to me just like a story to...
to comfort children), but the REAL thing. When I go into deep rest with that tension, it's always
translated by those things collapsing: I try to climb and crunch! crunch! crunch! all the time, all the
time everything crumbles under the weight of my ascent. Until I see that ill will trying to stop me from
finding what I want to find, so I get angry and it stops instantly - is "angry" the word? I don't know: I
refuse, I refuse the situation. Then it stops short.
And I awake saying to myself, "You see, it's all your fault: as long as you accept, you cannot know,
you are in the dark; when you really refuse, you will know."
So I answer, "When the Lord wants me to know, I will know; when it's necessary for me to know, I
will know."
Probably for the time being...
It's like Sri Aurobindo's "translucent bowl".... There's nothing that corresponds to it.
To tell the truth, we always want to go too fast. But that's because the notion of time is in everyone's
mind - they're wearisome.
***
(Before Satprem leaves, Mother gives him the latest issue of "World-Union," a magazine launched by
some Ashram
disciples.)
It makes me uneasy.

I know what you mean! It even makes some people here furious. Because it's published from here
(most of those people are here), but there's never any mention of the Ashram, any mention of Sri
Aurobindo, nothing.
What's worse is that when they do speak of Sri Aurobindo, they put him on a level with everybody
else.
Exactly! Exactly!
You know, Sri Aurobindo, Teilhard de Chardin, Schweitzer and so on and so forth.
Yes, a mishmash.
As for me, I would have rejected it [World-Union] altogether, but there are in it those who started
the whole affair: there are three persons through whom I do something - not this! (the issue of "WorldUnion") Something else, of which they themselves are very little aware. (They are very interested in
this [the "World-Union" brochure], not me!) So I didn't quite declare, "I don't want to have anything to
do with that," but when people ask me, I say it has nothing to do with the Ashram, absolutely nothing.

September 28, 1963
Do you remember Savitri's debate with Death ["The Debate of Love and Death"]?... According to it, Sri
Aurobindo seems to be saying that Disorder arose when Life entered Matter.
(Mother leafs through her
thick translation notebook121 )
Although
God
made
the
world
An ignorant Power took charge and seemed his Will

for

his

delight,

In other words, that Power assumed the appearance of God's Will.
And
Death's
deep
falsity
All grew a play of Chance simulating Fate.

has

mastered

Life.

(X.III.629)
And before, Sri Aurobindo writes:

121We are giving here directly the original English of those passages and not Mother's translation into French.

O Death, this is the mystery of thy reign.
He seems to imply it's only on earth:
In
earth's
anomalous
and
Carried
in
its
aimless
journey
by
Mid
the
forced
marches
of
the
great
A darkness occupied the fields of God,

tragic
the
dumb

field
sun
stars,
(Mother repeats)

A
darkness
occupied
the
And Matter's world was governed by thy shape.

fields

of

God,

The shape of Death.
Thy mask has covered the Eternal's face,
It's marvelous!
The
Bliss
that
made
the
world
Abandoned
in
the
Vast
she
An
evil
transmutation
Her members till she knew herself no more.

has

fallen
slumbered
overtook

asleep.
on:

(X.III.627)
And so on, a whole passage. And he seems to imply that it's when Life entered inert Matter that an
ignorant Power... what I read at the beginning:
An
ignorant
Power
took
charge
And Death's deep falsity has mastered Life.

and

seemed

his

Will

Consequently, according to this, Death would exist only on the earth.
(silence)
That's where I am in my translation. (Mother closes her notebook)
What are your conclusions?
I'll have to go to the end to understand what he wants to demonstrate.
You see, I was always under the impression that the earth was a symbolic representation of the
universe in order to concentrate the Work on one point so that it could be done more consciously and
deliberately. And I was always under the impression that Sri Aurobindo too thought that way. But
here... I had read Savitri without noticing this. But now that I read it and I am so immersed in that

problem... In other words, it's as if it were THE question given me to resolve.
I noticed it while reading.
(long silence)
It would seem to legitimize or justify those who want to escape entirely from the earth's atmosphere.
The idea would be that the earth is a special experiment of the Supreme in His universe; and those who
are not too keen on that experiment (!) prefer to get out of it (to say things somewhat offhandedly).
The difference is this: In one case, the purpose of the earth is a concentration of the Work (which
means it can be done more rapidly, consciously and perfectly here), and so there is a serious reason to
stay on and do it. In the other case, it's just one experiment amidst thousands or millions of others; and
if that experiment doesn't particularly appeal to you, to want to get out of it is legitimate.
I don't see how it would be possible for one point of the Supreme not to be the whole Supreme. If
there is a difficulty here, it's a difficulty for the WHOLE, isn't it?
Not necessarily.
Why should there be something apart from the rest?
It all depends, in fact, (laughing) on what He is driving at!
We can very well conceive that He may be carrying on some very different experiments. And so
you could go from one experiment to another, you see.
It would be as Buddha said: it's attachment or desire that keeps you here, otherwise there's no
reason for you to stay here.
(Satprem protests wordlessly)
Everything is possible to me, you know, absolutely everything, even the seemingly most contradictory
things - really, I am totally unable to raise a mental or logical or reasonable objection either to this or
to that. But the question... (Mother leaves her sentence unfinished). That is to say, the Lord's Will is
very clear to Him, and (laughing) the whole thing is to unite with that Will and know it.
It had always seemed to me that way [the earth as a symbolic point of concentration], but I am so
convinced that Sri Aurobindo saw things more truly and totally than anyone did that, naturally, when
he says something, you tend to consider the problem!
I don't know, I haven't reached the end of Savitri yet. Because I notice (rereading it after the space
of a few months, barely two years) that it's altogether something else than the first time I read it.
Altogether something else: there is in it infinitely more than what I had experienced; my experience
was limited, and now it's far more complete (maybe if I reread it in a year or two, it would be still more
complete, I don't know), but there are plenty of things that I hadn't seen the first time.
Perhaps that passage I've just read is only one aspect?... I will see when I reach the end.
What he announces, and what I am sure of, is that the Victory will be won on the earth and that the
earth will become a progressive being (eternally progressive) in the Lord - that's understood. But it
doesn't preclude the other possibility. The future of the earth he has announced clearly, and it's
understood that such is the future of the earth; only, if that possibility [of death as an exclusively
earthly phenomenon] is what we could term "historically" correct, it would sort of legitimize the

attitude of those who get away from it. How is it that Buddha, who undeniably was an Avatar, laid so
much stress on Deliverance as the conclusion of things? He who stayed behind only to help others... to
get away faster. Then that means he saw only one side of the problem?...
Oh, yes!
But if there is a whole universe, thousands of universes with altogether different modes, and if to be
here is merely a matter of CHOICE... then the choice is free, of course - there are those who like
conquest and victory, and those others who like doing nothing.
But Buddha represented only one stage of consciousness. AT THAT TIME it was good to follow
that path, therefore...
We can conceive it was a particular necessity within the whole, of course. But these are all conceptions,
it's still something mental - I recently had in my hands a quotation from Sri Aurobindo in which he
said that there is "no problem the human mind cannot solve if it wants to." (Laughing) There is no
problem that the mind cannot solve if it applies itself to it! But I don't care, I have no need of mental
logic - no need. And it would have no effect on my action - that's not what I want, not at all! It's only
because there is that increasingly acute contradiction between the Truth and what is. It's becoming
painfully acute. You know, that suffering, that general misery is becoming almost unbearable.
There was a time when I looked at all that with a smile - a long time. For years and years it was a
smile, the way you smile at a childish question. Now, I don't know why it has come... it has been
THRUST on me like a sort of acute anguish - which certainly is necessary to get out of the problem.
To get out, I mean, to cure, to change - not to flee. I don't like flight.
That was my major objection to the Buddhists: all that you are advised to do is merely to give you
an opportunity to flee - that's not pretty.
But change, yes.
(silence)
There are some lines [in Savitri] that all of a sudden are so magnificent! They come with such power,
but once written down, that's not it any more.
For example, you SEE that image of the mask of Death covering the Supreme's face.
It's marvelous.
So intense.
And then that ignorant Power that took charge of the earth and made it... that "seemed," SEEMED
the Supreme's Will.
It's so pregnant with meaning.

October

October 3, 1963
(On Mother's table are two double white hibiscus flowers called "Grace." Mother takes one and gives
it to Satprem:)
N. had a dream last night in which Sri Aurobindo gave her many things, then I came and gave her two
"Grace" flowers. And in the morning, she wakes up, goes to her garden... on the tree were two Grace
flowers.
It's amusing.
So, what have you brought?
I have a letter from X.
Well!... What does he say?
I asked him what I should do: today I finished the second "round" of my Tantric writings. So he
says, "Once more start the thing and continue."
Naturally he said you should go to the end.
So I need more paper!
Ayo!
If we can do like last time, I'll take scraps of paper from the Press. I need... 5,200 sheets!
Two thousand?
Five thousand two hundred!...
***
(Then Mother translates Sri Aurobindo's letter on the descent of Love, on which she has already
commented on July 24, and she adds this comment:)
If divine Love were to descend first, before divine Truth, certain beings with a special power or

receptivity might draw it into themselves, personally, and then all those wrong impulses might occur. 122
But if this divine Love descends only in the Truth, in the Truth-Consciousness, it will enter someone
only if that person is ready to receive it. Without a preparation of Truth, there might occur a very
powerful attraction of elements unable to keep that Love in its purity; whereas if the preparation of
Truth has been done, with that preparation, It will CHOOSE, in order to manifest, the persons, the
individualities, who are ready.
***
Later:

Are you still in "The Debate of Love and Death"?
I haven't finished, I have no time left to work, that's the nuisance! I have so much work in the afternoon
- I don't call it "work," it's being busy with people to see, letters... hosts of letters! And the entire
organization: everything is in a terrible confusion. I should finish seeing people at four and take up my
translation till five - they leave at ten to five! So I have no time left for anything. One day out of four I
get some translation done, so it's going very slowly.
I'll have to change something in the organization again - it goes wrong very quickly.
In the beginning [when Mother withdrew], I used to receive one or two letters daily, not even that
many; now it's ten or twelve daily, and when I don't reply immediately, two days later I receive another
letter: "I wrote to you but I haven't had a reply." So immediately I scribble on their letter two or three
very curt words (Mother laughs)... to show them it isn't worthwhile to be too impatient.
Anyway...
(Mother goes into a long contemplation)
I saw a square again.
It was fringed with red, like little red sparks. The same white square. Afterwards, it was as though
absorbed and replaced by a square of blue and green light - the blue and green of the Tantrics: it's like
vividly colored emerald and sapphire, a powerful color. Translucent, luminous. And the two squares
became superposed - the blue first, the green on top.
But before that, when the white square fringed with red entered (it took form first, you see; it
seemed to take form between us), it took form and then something eased in you - did you feel a
relaxation?
(Satprem nods his head... silence)
The last two days, Sri Aurobindo was here all the time, all the time. Constantly, constantly mingled
with things. And many people saw him and spoke to him - he was very, very present. The last two
days.
At times he seemed to go into a kind of... (I can't say) of inner stillness, then at other times he was
122"Otherwise Love itself blinded by the confusions of this present consciousness may stumble in its human receptacles
and, even otherwise, may find itself unrecognised, rejected or rapidly degenerating and lost in the frailty of man's inferior
nature."

very active.
And once (two or three days ago) he told me, "You are with me as much as you like, you speak
with me as much as you like," as if it weren't he who was directing but I (!) I said it wasn't true!
(Mother laughs) But anyway....
Since that experience of the translucent bowl, he has been very, very close. This morning, he
seemed to be mingled with everything.
There are also some rather amusing things: yesterday I saw some people who aren't from here;
usually I don't speak to people, but I spoke to them. I started saying something, then Sri Aurobindo
interrupted me: "Don't tell them that, they'll be convinced that you always harp on the same thing!"
And it was true - I took a look and stopped instantly. He is always letting me know, "This one feels this
way, that one thinks that way, that one..." He is very, very much mingled with everything, all the time,
all the time.
Then at other times, it's as if he were no longer here at all - "no longer here," only up there... in the
Supermind! (Mother laughs)

October 5, 1963
Yesterday I had a very curious experience which left me with a bizarre feeling....
It was a construction - a huge construction. It resembled one of those huge hotels they build
nowadays, with inner courtyards and all sorts of things. And I had my room right at the top. (It called to
my mind an old experience I had had.... Do you remember that "big hotel"? 123 It was somewhat like
that.) And everyone there was APPARENTLY full of respect, of obedience, of thoughtfulness... but
everyone was going his own sweet way - that's nothing new. At first, I was downstairs (my room was
way upstairs, I don't know how many floors there were), and there I met some people, people whom I
know. But each and every detail was so revealing, it was marvelous! And it was time for me to have
my bath (I don't know what time it was!), so I wanted to go back upstairs to do so, but I needed
someone to prepare the bath (it's symbolic; I don't know yet, I haven't yet understood the symbol of that
"bath," because it occurs very often; but there may be some meaning hidden in that symbol). But then
one person was too old (someone who had offered to prepare the bath, but he was too old), another
wasn't strong enough, another... - to be able to prepare the bath required VERY special qualities. It isn't
the first time; it has happened two or three times before: to be able to prepare that bath took absolutely
exceptional qualities of courage, strength, physical power, endurance. And the people downstairs...
(gesture expressing incapacity). So I said to myself, "All right, I'll go upstairs and see what happens."
On the way, the same thing happened again: I went the usual way - plop! cut off, nothing left, I
can't get through; I come back, start another way - plop! cut off, I can't get through. Yet I kept going up
(how, I don't know). Then I reached a sort of square terrace-balcony, perfectly square, and ALL its
doors were closed. There was no way of going farther: all the doors were closed. Then I see water
123See Agenda I, July 3, 1957, p. 104.

rising, rising, rising in the ENTIRE building, except the places where the doors were closed.
Downstairs... (I don't know, I was very high up, maybe on the fourth or fifth floor) the doors were
closed, so naturally water could not get in. All the courtyards (large, immense courtyards) were turned
into swimming pools. What water!... I kept watching it, admiring it; I said to myself, "What wonderful
water!" So clear, so clear, clearer than any I ever saw. Water that was... I can't say, it was transparent
like... like purity itself, it was marvelous. It was rising and rising and rising.... I saw in one of the
courtyards on my left (a very large courtyard: it had become an immense swimming pool!), I saw a
person in a bathing suit come out of the water, as if he had taken his bath in it, and wrap himself up (a
very tall person, very tall, who was neither a man nor a woman), he wrapped himself up in a bathrobe,
then walked away on the water (!) I was watching this till suddenly I realized that the water was
beginning to reach my feet. Then I KNEW: "Ah, yes! They've decided to do this." I was a little upset:
"They really could have told me they were going to do this!" I thought. "It's something they must do
regularly.... Did they inform some people?" (All this in my head, of course.)
And I kept admiring that water, thinking, "But it's purity itself!" It was reaching my feet, yet I
wasn't getting wet. Then I remarked, "If I stay here..." (Because I was standing with my back against
closed doors and the building extended beyond them, but in front of me there was nothing, so normally
the water should have flowed out that way - how is it then that it didn't? I don't know - the whole thing
was quite "marvelous"!) And it was rising and rising and rising, until it reached my ankles and
suddenly triggered something within me - I woke up.
I was at least ten minutes later than my usual time.
I didn't have any sense of danger - not at all. Only that slight feeling of being upset: "They ought to
inform people before doing things of that sort!" And "they" were the supreme heads of the organization
(there was nothing religious or spiritual about it: it was very concrete, in Matter). But that water... I
kept admiring it, thinking, "Oh, they have control over that water!" It was like liquid diamond. It was a
marvel, as if everything it touched were purified. And that being who came out of the huge swimming
pool (it wasn't a human being: it looked like a vital being who was neither a man nor a woman) came
out in a kind of bathing suit, wrapped himself up and disappeared. But otherwise ALL the doors were
closed, there wasn't a soul - only me on my square, with the square around me and my back against a
closed door, watching the whole scene from a great height. And everything was filling up with that
substance - it looked like water, but it wasn't water.
The impression lingered, as if there were something I had to understand.
And I just felt a slight disappointment: "They really could have told me." And together with it, a
smile that understood it was better that way.
"They really ought to inform people...."
I thought it was something in the vital, because all my relationships with the people downstairs,
before going back upstairs, were with their character, their vital - not with material matter but with the
character, vital nature. And it was...! You could write books: an irony, a sharp perception, fine, delicate
- priceless! It's charming, you know: each one with his own little flaw - they were all people I know!
But there are some beings that have been in two or three persons: for example, a vital being that
went from one person to another (a being I know very well, so I know it happened that way), and what
I saw was the BEING, not the different persons. A vital, female-looking being (they take on a sexual
appearance when they have been in human beings: they retain the female or male appearance), a
female-looking being, and just when the question of preparing my bath arose (always that "bath"... I'll
have to find out what it means), she had something very urgent to do, went into her room, then
(laughing) came out again a minute later with a dress... a sort of green dress - grass green but bright -
with an immense train! And she walked past so proudly: "Yes, I wanted to show them who I am." What

an admirable comedy! If I had the time to write, it could make utterly charming stories.
But I'll have to find out what that bath is which comes repeatedly.
One person was so anxious (I know who it is, I know him very well), so anxious to prepare the bath,
but he didn't have the strength, he couldn't do it: "Oh, how I would like to prepare the bath!" So I
looked at him, I didn't want to say no; but I thought, "It's not possible, he can't, he doesn't have the
strength."
(silence)
I kept going up, but all the ways I knew stopped short. First I had started up a very large staircase, a
magnificent staircase of pink marble, that was the way I had to go upstairs, but just as I turned on the
landing - plop! impossible to get through. (But how is it...? Impossible to get through, yet I went up
just the same?..) And I find myself on another landing, I try again to go up from there - plop! stopped,
impossible to get through. I try again and find myself on the third landing (but in fact I was on a higher
floor, because I had already climbed two flights before I was stopped), I reach the third landing and
find myself on a square - a perfect square - edged with a parapet of pink marble, but with reddish
veins, very beautiful: very beautiful, it was chiseled - magnificent. Then a door, a sort of bronze door
behind me, which was closed. So I watched and saw the water rising and rising (it wasn't water, but it
was liquid like water). And in front of me: an immensity. No limits. I seemed to be above all the other
houses; there were no trees, no mountains, nothing - an immensity, like a perfectly cloudless sky; and
it wasn't white, but there was light in it. I was looking down and I saw the water rising and rising and
rising - like the Flood. But it wasn't water.
It will come back until I understand.
It didn't appear catastrophic?
No.
But in that consciousness, there aren't any "catastrophes," so I can't be sure.
There was only that: "Why?... They could have informed people just the same!" But it was "they" in
the plural: "They should have." They were the "all-powerful masters" or the "supreme masters." But
there was nothing religious in the feeling, nothing spiritual either.
It wasn't in the vital - the supreme beings of the vital?
No, no!
It was what corresponds to the "owners" - they were the owners, in the sense that they had built
everything and everything belonged to them - built and organized everything. Maybe they are gods?
I had no consideration for them (I don't know how to explain this), not only no respect, but no
consideration: they were just owners. Only, I lived at the very top of the house. And in that house,
everyone obeyed me ("obeyed," well, in appearance). They were the owners or the management. But
they weren't responsible to me, they didn't take orders from me; they didn't need to ask me before doing
something - nor was I responsible to them. But I didn't have the feeling of being any more at home
there than anywhere else; yet I had undeniably my room there, at the very top of the house.
Maybe they were gods?
The world's construction as they built it?

But then, that water rising and rising and rising??...
And everything was very well organized, because all the doors were closed and the water didn't
enter where it wasn't supposed to - I saw no one drowned, no one in danger. There was no danger for
anyone. And there was only one being, a vital being (he wasn't like the others I had seen downstairs).
He had had great fun in that water! And he was leaving.
I remember that when the water touched my feet, it was... (how can I explain?) it wasn't a sensation,
I had no sensations, but around my feet it was like sparkling diamonds. Obviously I didn't intend to be
fully immersed in it. And when I felt the water around my feet, I had an odd sensation (a perception,
not a sensation), not the sensation of being wet, but clearly like: "I shouldn't stay here." And I woke up
very abruptly.
(silence)
Before the water reached my feet, while I was watching it rising and rising, I thought, "Still, they really
could have told me" (no, it wasn't "me," it was "they really could have ANNOUNCED the thing"). And
at the same time I felt: "Why, but it's something they do regularly (recurring gesture), they do it
regularly, but they should really inform people." But not strongly, simply like something passing [in
Mother's thought].
Not for a second the sense of a danger, not at all. Not for a second.
I don't know...
(silence)
It has a meaning. Something will come back to give me the explanation.
In the old traditions they often mention "waters of immortality"; could there not be a connection?
Waters that had the power to give immortality.
Maybe.
That made you invulnerable.
Invulnerable... maybe that's it.
I always have to take my bath: I have to take a bath and no one is able to prepare it for me.
I have a bathroom.
I always go to take my bath, but someone has to prepare it. And either they aren't strong enough, or
they think of other things, or they don't care about it, or... And once (I told you this), I opened the door
and found someone trying to take a bath, but I arrived just in time.124
We'll see.

124See conversation of September 25.

October 16, 1963
(Mother first reads two lines from "The Debate of Love and Death" in "Savitri." She would like to put
them as epigraph to the conversation of September 7, the dialogue with a materialist.)
Listen to this:
O
Death,
thou
speakest
Truth
I answer to thee with the Truth that saves.

but

Truth

that

slays,

(X.III.621)
It's beautiful!
So the materialist... "O Death, thou speakest Truth...." What can he reply? It's the Truth!
***
(Satprem first decided not to publish in full the following conversation on Tantrism. Then, after
Mother's departure, when he saw that same Tantrism trying to spread through Auroville, he changed
his mind and decided to publish the conversation in full, preceded by a note which we are inserting
below. This note was written in 1979.)
Every time a new truth has attempted to manifest upon earth, it has been immediately
attacked, corrupted and diverted by pseudo-spiritual forces - which did represent a certain
spirituality at a given time, but precisely the one that the new truth wants to go beyond. To
give but one example of those sad "spiritual diversions" which clutter History, Buddhism
was largely corrupted in a sizable part of Asia by a whole Tantric and magic Buddhism. The
falsity lies not in the old spirituality which the new truth seeks to go beyond, but in the
eternal fact that the Past clings to its powers, its means and its rule. As Mother said in her
simple language, "What's wrong is to remain stuck there." And Sri Aurobindo with his everpresent humor: "The traditions of the past are very great in their own place, in the past...."
We could expect the phenomenon to recur today. In India, Tantrism represents a powerful
discipline from the Past and it was inevitable that Mother should experience the better and
the worse of that system in her attempt to transform all the means and elements of the old
earth - this Agenda has made abundant mention of a certain X, symbol of Tantrism. Now, as
it happens, we are witnessing the same phenomenon of "diversion," and today this same
Tantrism is seeking to divert the new truth by convincing as many adepts as possible not to
say Mother's Mantra, which is "too advanced for ordinary mortals," and to say Tantric
mantras in its stead. This is purely and simply an attempt to take Mother's place. One has to
be quite ignorant of the mechanism of forces not to understand that saying a mantra of the
old gods puts you under the influence and into the orbit of precisely that which resists the
new truth. Mother had foreseen the phenomenon and forewarned me in the following
conversation. Unfortunately, until recently, I always wanted to believe that Tantrism would

be converted. Nothing of the sort. It is attempting to take Mother's place and lead astray
those who are not sincere enough to want ONE SINGLE THING: the new world.
***
X has left. I saw him twice (yesterday for the second time), and I wanted to wait till I had seen him the
second time before telling you the story.
Here is what happened: I do my usual "bath of the Lord" and it is arranged that, after a time,
Champaklal opens the door - which signals to me the end of the visit. So I looked at X, just to see (I
had looked at him several times before, but there was nothing particular), I looked at him and saw in
front of him a sort of mass of substance, not material but responsive to a mental formation, which
means that mental thought and will can make this substance take different shapes - I know it (Mother
makes a gesture of fingering the substance), it's very like the sort of substance mediums use for their
apparitions (less material, more mental, but anyway the same kind). There was a sort of mass in front
of him, which was hiding him; it wasn't luminous, not black either, but dark enough. So I looked at it,
STARED at it to see what it was, and as I was staring, I saw that there was a will or an effort to give
that mass of substance a shape. It was exactly in front of X's head and shoulders. And there was a will
to give it a shape (gesture of molding). As I stared very carefully, it took the shape of Sri Aurobindo's
head as it appears in newspapers and magazines (what I call the "popular" Sri Aurobindo, as he is
shown in books), the substance took that form. Immediately I thought (ironic tone), "Oh, it's the
popular form, that doesn't resemble him!" And instantly, the substance rearranged itself and took the
form of Cartier-Bresson's Sri Aurobindo125 (the three-quarter face photo, where he is seated in his
armchair). That was better! (Mother holds back a chuckle) It wasn't yet quite good, but anyway it was
better (although, mind you, it had neither light nor life: it was matter - a subtle matter, of course - put
into shape by a mental will). So I began to wonder: "Whatever is this?! Does he want me to believe that
Sri Aurobindo is in him, or what?" Because X's head and shoulders had completely disappeared, there
was nothing left but that. And I thought (not a strong thought, just a reflection): "No, it's not very good,
really not very lifelike!" (Mother laughs) Then there was a last attempt and it became very like the
photo that was taken when he left his body (that photo which we stood on end and called
"Meditation"), it was very like the photo, (in an ironic tone) a very good likeness. And it stayed. So I
thought, "Oh yes! This is the photo."
Then I concentrated just a little and thought, "Let's see, now. Whom is he trying to delude?" And
instantly, everything vanished. And I saw X, his head.
I had stared at that thing - it went on for more than ten minutes - I stared and stared at it, and with
truly an extreme goodwill I tried to see if Sri Aurobindo's vibration was in it (the light wasn't, but I
tried to see if the vibration was), but I didn't feel anything.
Nevertheless, there was a very strong WILL to make me believe it was Sri Aurobindo - I saw it,
you understand.
It annoyed me a little.
At first I thought, "My goodness! Who does he take me for? (Laughing) A fool who can be made to
believe that the moon is made of green cheese?" Then I decided I wouldn't say anything until he left: I
wanted to wait till I saw him a second time. Then I made a very strong formation and I said to Sri
Aurobindo, "If there was really anything of you in that, well, let it occur again next time." And
yesterday, I kept watching all the time, attentively, very carefully - absolutely nothing happened.
125Cartier-Bresson had photographed Sri Aurobindo in 1950.

I didn't like that very much.
You understand, I know those things, I have seen thousands of them! Only, as it happens, for more
than half a century I have sensed the difference in a most sharp way. I think I told you already that
when I returned here from Japan, there were difficulties: once, I was in danger and I called Sri
Aurobindo; he appeared, and the danger went away126 - he appeared, meaning, he came, something
from him came, an EMANATION of him came, living, absolutely concrete. The next day (or rather
later the same day), I told him my experience and how I saw him; that worried him (it was an
unceasing danger, you see), and he very strongly thought that he should concentrate on me to protect
me. And the next day, I saw him - but it was an image, a mental formation! I told him, "Yes, you came
in a mental formation, it wasn't the same thing." Then he told me that this capacity of discernment is an
extremely rare thing. But I always had it, even when I was small. It's a sensitiveness in the perception.
And indeed I believe that very few people can sense the difference. So with X, my first impression was,
"My goodness, to do this to me!... Well, really, I have some experience of the world, I can't be so easily
made to believe that the moon is made of green cheese!"
And yesterday, it was all very peaceful: X was there all the time with nobody in front of him, not
pretending anything. But the first time, as he expected some result, he stayed on for ten minutes -
probably he was expecting some reaction (I never told him that Sri Aurobindo is with me all the time,
that we talk to each other every night). Anyhow, he was probably expecting some enthusiasm on my
part (!) There you are.
[Satprem cannot believe what Mother has just told him:] It was a will coming from him? It wasn't
someone else who used that substance?
No. It was either he or his guru - his guru interferes in many things. And I saw his guru several times
by his side - I wasn't positively sure it was X, but if it wasn't X, it was his guru, it can only be one or
the other. And it was done DELIBERATELY, to make me think that Sri Aurobindo was there, in X,
using X as a means of expression.
Very, very long ago, when I was still downstairs (not last year, the year before), one day... I don't
remember the details, but I know he made a sort of cinema show during the meditation: he showed
himself as this god, that god, this or that - there was a whole swarm of gods and beings who came and
threw themselves onto him like this (Mother lays one hand flat on the other), and Sri Aurobindo was
there too, among the crowd! I took it as a demonstration of his powers - I didn't attach any importance
to it. Naturally, I saw what it was; none of those beings was actually there, it was only their image. But
I didn't attach any importance to it because to me it was... (laughing) like someone giving me a show!
But this time...
It's the first time it happened, mind you, the first time he tried - spontaneously, I say he tried to
delude me. I would be surprised if he wasn't conscious.
You know that for a long time he said, "I and the Mother, the Mother and I, are one." Of course, in
the Scriptures too it's like that! But it was reported to me (I don't attach much importance to it because
people twist everything), it was reported to me that he said several times, "It's the Mother speaking to
you through me," and I talked nonsense! (Laughing) That's the trouble. If at least I said some very wise
things...
That's serious.
126The famous scene of the strangling with Richard.

I wouldn't call it "serious."
I wouldn't call it serious because he may have done it with the best of intentions: not to deceive me,
but to help me. But I found it so IGNORANT! That he should use such methods with me shows that he
knows absolutely nothing of me.
It would succeed with any ordinary medium, or with a faker. A faker, someone insincere, would be
immediately taken in, because in such cases IT IS SINCERITY THAT SAVES. Going by appearances
it's very, very difficult to make out the difference. It is sincerity that saves (it's the same thing I said to
Sujata127 ). I remember how Madame Thon, after I told her several of my experiences, said to me,
"Nobody can deceive you because you are perfectly sincere" (occultly, I don't say outwardly: occultly).
And it's true, it depends on the sincerity. Consequently, that X should attempt this shows he has a
peculiar opinion of me!
But why all this? To what end?
I was told many things. He was AT LEAST tactless (he denied it afterwards, but it's true, I know it's
true), he said it is he who would take my place when I go, when I leave my body.
Really!?!
Yes, I know he said so.
I find it incredible.
To me it's not an accusation, because I always take things for the best - it may be the expression of a
great goodwill, but obviously an absolutely ignorant one. And then he has such a mania for prophecy!
This time again (no one asked him anything), he said spontaneously that I would come downstairs next
year, that I would resume my activities downstairs. So I looked (through what he said I looked at what
he thought), and I saw that, for him, it didn't at all mean I took possession of a new Power, it was a
return to the old things - but in my case, a return to the old things is folly!
Of course!
You understand, that's what interests me; it's not that I want to find fault with him, but this is the proof
that he has no true perception whatsoever of what it's all about.
He certainly has no understanding of what's taking place here, of your work, for sure; but I had
rather the feeling of a goodwill.
Yes, he does have goodwill, but such an ignorant one!
He even said that he would be asked - he would be ASKED - to take my place. He added, "I can't
say, because I am a free man"! (Mother laughs and laughs)
Anyway...
I wanted to tell you this because it's interesting to note it and keep it.
But I don't want him to know, because I take it for the best, as a goodwill, as if to show me that he
127Who had seen a "false Mother" with dark spots all over her - her sincerity made her see the spots. Others would have
seen a "dazzling" Mother.

is quite ready to help and support me: but all this in a mind that seems to me so childish! You see, the
idea that I trust only Sri Aurobindo, and that if it's presented in the form of Sri Aurobindo, I'll accept!
Things of that sort. I had such an impression that he thought he was dealing with a goose!
Mentally, I know. When I am with him, if I happen to listen to what he says for just two minutes, I
get a headache, I can't bear it. I can stay with him only when I am above or outside, then it's quite
all right. But if I listen to him mentally, I get a headache.
Yes, I told you, the day when I entered his mind, it was frightful!
I can't listen to him, but I can be with him without listening to him.
There you have it! (Mother laughs)
He clearly knows how to put mental substance into shape - but this handling of mental matter to
give it a shape, everybody does it unknowingly, automatically; you only have to think a little strongly
for it to be done. Only, people don't see it because they don't have the mental vision. And here, it was
so funny [X's mental formation], because it responded so well (that's what made me think it was he
who was doing it, not someone else), it responded so well to my immediate thought (and I didn't think
strongly). I looked at the thing, and spontaneously, within myself, I thought, "Oh, no!..." Almost as if
Sri Aurobindo were saying, "Oh, no! That's my popular portrait, it's no good!" Voil.128
***
A little later:

I would like to know the meaning of the "flood" you saw the other day.
Ah, I had the explanation, and now I don't remember. I had it, classified it - it all goes away so fast, so
fast.... I had it very clearly, I don't remember now. It will come back. There are thousands of things like
that.
***
(after a silence)
There is really now a struggle against all that terrestrial formation... against, yes, the ignorance and
unconsciousness of the earth's primal thought.
It's still there; even in those who have developed their higher mind, who are able to emerge from
that darkness and ignorance, it's still there - it's still there in a sort of mental or vital subconscient. And
it's so dark! Thoroughly stupid, you know: it can be given hundreds and thousands of proofs, it remains
unaffected - a kind of incapacity to understand. And then it constantly rises to the surface, and I am
constantly obliged (gesture of offering to the Heights) to "present" it: "This is still there, that is still
there, that..." And I see very well that the distinction between what goes on in this body and its
128Let us recall the conversation of May 15, 1962 (volume III, p. 140 ff.), in which Mother also refers to Tantric intrigues
to corrupt Sri Aurobindo's teaching.

atmosphere, and what goes on in all other bodies is... I don't know if the distinction still exists, but it's
imperceptible. And the consciousness is aware of all those movements as if they were personal to the
physical person. But the physical person (Mother touches her body) isn't just this body - I am not yet
sure whether the physical person isn't the whole earth (for certain things, it is the whole earth), or
whether the physical person is the entirety of all the bodies of the people I am in contact with.... During
the last hours of the night, that is, between 2 and 4, I see precise forms; but those precise forms are
themselves representative, meaning there are TYPES and those types take on the image of someone I
am in contact with or was in personal contact with. But to me they are types: "Oh, it's such and such a
type" - but that can be thousands of people. And the action (it's always for an action), the action on the
person-type has repercussions on all that he represents.
And that's a labor which seems... infinite - endless, at any rate.
It does have consequences.
You see, what I do is this: the thing comes, it's taken up, presented (gesture to the Heights) as
though it were mine: "But look, see how I am..." (but it's the "I" - the great I), it's presented to the Lord,
very humbly, with the sense and feeling of complete helplessness - I simply say, "Here, change it." The
feeling that only He can do it, that everything that people have tried everywhere appears childish -
everything appears to be childish. The most sublime intelligence seems to me childish. All the attempts
that are made to enlighten, organize, educate mankind, to awaken it to a higher consciousness, to give it
mastery over Nature and its forces, all of it - all of it, which for a human vision is sometimes utterly
sublime, seems absolutely like children playing and having fun in a nursery. And children who love
dangerous games, who believe TERRIBLY in what they do (as do children, naturally). I have never
met more serious and stern a justice than the justice children have in their games. They really take life
seriously. Well, that's exactly the impression it makes on me: the impression of a mankind in infancy
which takes what it does with ferocious seriousness. And which will never get out of it - it will never
get out of it, it lacks the little something (which may be really nothing at all), a very little something
thanks to which... ah, everything becomes clear and organized - all that comes from mankind always
BORDERS on Truth.
So the only thing I can do is this (gesture of presenting): "Look, Lord, see how ignorant and
powerless we are, how utterly stupid we are - it's up to You to change it." How do you change it? You
can't even imagine the change, you can't even do that. So all my time (same gesture) - not from time to
time: constantly, day and night, without letup, day and night without letup. If for an interval of one or
two minutes this isn't done, there is something that catches up: "Oh, all that time wasted!" And if I take
a close look at what happened, then I see; I see that for these few minutes, I was blissful in the Lord,
letting myself live blissfully in the Lord; so I no longer presented things to Him - it happens two or
three times a day. A relaxation, you know, you let yourself flow blissfully in the Lord. And it's so
natural and spontaneous that I don't even notice it; I notice it when I resume my attitude... (same
gesture to the Heights) of transferring everything to the Lord every minute.
(silence)
And always that question of age... In everybody, everybody, without even their noticing it, there is
always in the background (for the slightest thing, at the slightest opportunity), always the idea of old
age, of going downhill, of decrepitude. And it comes a thousand times a day! (Mother laughs) So here
too, I say to the Lord, "Listen, am I really going downhill?" Then He shows me one or two things... in a
dazzling light. It happens to me off and on - not often - when the "avalanche" has been considerable
enough; then there is a bedazzlement of Light and Power, sometimes of such a formidable Power that
you get the feeling that if you were to wield it... what would happen? For instance, if I simply come

into contact with a malicious ill will (that's rare), an urge or a desire to harm, I do this (Mother pinches
the vibration between her fingers), I do this (but it corresponds to an inner action: it's a Power that acts
together with a white Light, absolutely white, you know, intolerant of anything but the perfectly white),
and almost instantly, in the person in whom the movement of ill will resulted in a partial possession of
the vital: an attack of nerves or (what do they call it?) a vital collapse or a nervous collapse, very
tangible. So naturally, you curb all movements and you watch it all, perfectly quiet, with the eternal
Smile. But it's as if to show me: here - here is the potentiality (!) Only there is no Order to wield it,
except now and then "just to see."
(silence)
Listen, the night before, in the middle of the night, someone came to me (someone who was dark blue,
which means a mental formation) with a plan of action, and told me, "It's all arranged: on such and
such a day and at such and such a time" (it was meant for next year), "you will have this work to do,
you will have to come downstairs, and here is how everything will be arranged for you to come down -
this, that, that...." And I played the game very well, I answered, "Oh, no! That won't do, you have to
arrange it this way and that way...." Then when it was all over, something suddenly made me go within
(gesture of return inward), I looked at the whole thing, saw the person, saw the plan, saw everything (I
was in the midst of an action), and said, "Yes, all this is very well, but you see, the snag is that I am not
going downstairs!" And at one stroke, frrt! gone - it was a construction, as if there were an entire
organization, even a governmental one (!), to make me come downstairs. And when I woke up (that is,
in the morning when I came out of my activity of the night), I thought, "Could it be what showed itself"
(it was a mental formation - from whom, from where? I didn't bother about that), "could it be what
showed itself to X and made him declare with the authority of a clairvoyant: 'Mother will come
downstairs next year'?" I found it very amusing.
Things are increasingly AS THEY ARE: exact, without complications. I have noticed that with
people, even the most sincere and straightforward, there is always a kind of coating, an emotive coating
(even with the coldest and driest), something that belongs to the vital; an emotive coating that makes
things fuzzy, uncertain and allows a game that gives them a feeling of all sorts of "mysterious forces"
at play - things are very clear, very simple, very, oh, very simple, and that coating brings along a sort
of confusion. It's not sentiment, not emotion either, it's something... something that LOVES
uncertainty, the unknown, the unexpected - not positively chance (it's not so strong), but which loves to
live in that, in... in fact, in Ignorance! Which loves not to know what's going to happen. Even the
simplest things, the most obvious, have all that coating over them.
Look, for instance, how many people, even the most serious, love to have their fortune told: reading
the hand, reading the handwriting (I am pestered with people who ask me things like that), but anyway,
even regardless of any spiritual idea, that sort of interest people find in being told, "See, your life line
will last up to here...." People love it! They love it, they love to remain in their uncertainty. They love
their ignorance. They love that unknown - the unknown "full of mysteries." They love the prophet who
comes and tell them, "This is what you will do.... This is what is going to happen to you...." It seems so
childish! It's the same as the taste for theater, it's the same thing (not the playwright, but the spectator
who watches the play without knowing how it will end), or again the taste for novels - the taste for the
"unknown." But then that's very close to the taste for the marvelous.
There is still a long way to go to enter Knowledge - the consciousness in which you know things
quietly, in which everything is so simple, so natural, so evident. And it's that coating which brings
complications: suddenly things get complicated in the human atmosphere.
I think animals (not those which live with men), animals (there aren't many left nowadays, they

have all been contaminated by man!), the "natural" animals - animals in their natural state - have a
very simple life. Everything is quite evident, quite simple, quite natural - we're the ones who make
complications.

October 19, 1963
I am coming to the conclusion that there must be a great power (a transforming power, probably) in the
extreme tension of circumstances.
Let me explain myself:
The Help is ever present, in the sense that you unquestionably feel that the Force acts (the "Force,"
that is, the supreme Consciousness and supreme Knowledge), the Force acts with a sort of pressure on
all people and all circumstances, in a favorable direction so that what happens may truly be the best -
and the best hierarchically; in other words, the highest and purest (you know my definition of "pure") is
a sort of center in relation to which things get organized; they get organized hierarchically, each with
its "right to progress," but as if to favor what's closest to and most expressive of the Divine - that is
going on constantly, I see hundreds of examples of it all the time. Yet, from the point of view of outer
circumstances, there is such a tension that you feel you are close to catastrophe.
Sri Aurobindo told me that there are three difficulties, and they are the three things that have to be
conquered for the earth to be ready (this is from the purely outward point of view, I am not speaking of
psychological factors): government, money, health.
Of the three, health is the most directly connected to the inner transformation, but not completely so
because it constantly depends on what comes in from outside: influences, vibrations - the contagion
from the outside. You have to eat: everything you receive along with food - it's fantastic! There's so
much that eating represents a considerable work - the physical digestion is nothing, but the work of
assimilation and adaptation of all the rest is considerable. Consequently, of the three, health is the most
directly under the influence of the inner progress, but, as I said, not completely so. Therefore, that too
has to be conquered.
As for money, when Sri Aurobindo was here there was no problem: all that we needed came. Yet
the last two years were beginning to be more difficult and he kept saying, I think I already told you,
that it resulted from the wrong attitude of the people around; that this wrong attitude represented a
considerable problem - it has gone from bad to worse, it has become quite acute.
As for government, it has followed an opposite curve: in the beginning, it was frightfully hostile, I
mean, simply to be able to stay here we had to struggle every minute. And Sri Aurobindo told me that
probably both health and money would give way at once; maybe health first and money afterwards, but
not with a big difference. And he added, "As for the government, there is but one solution, only one: it
is to BE the government." If you are not the government, you will never be able to conquer it, except
when the earth is transformed - but then there won't be any work left! This is the situation. Things have
been like this for... forty, fifty years - more than forty years.
But because of my inner work, I become increasingly aware of things, increasingly aware of the

Care, the Solicitude and the hierarchical Organization of circumstances so that the most precious and
useful thing for the divine work is favored - of course not conspicuously so, but inwardly. And yet, in
the three domains - government, money and health - things always reach a POINT, a point of such
tension and complication that if you didn't have the inner certitude, they would always seem to point
simply to the catastrophe, the fall. And it's ALWAYS at that point that... (gesture of abrupt reversal)
everything turns around - not before, not one minute before.
It's not to give me faith - I have it; it's not to give me consciousness - I have it; it's for an outward
reason. I cannot yet grasp why.
Because inwardly, even if I were told that everything would be demolished in the most tragic
manner, I would say, "Very well." And in all sincerity, you know, nothing anywhere in me starts
protesting or vibrating, nothing at all. I say, "All right." But I see - I do see that in that tension, a
certain power is released, like a power intense enough to cure a tamas, to change a tamas.129
Yesterday (this is an example I give you, but in all three domains it's similar), yesterday it was a
question of money. The question of money, for more than twelve years, has been a problem - growing
increasingly acute because the expenses are increasing fantastically while the income is decreasing!
(laughing) So the two things together make the problem very acute. It results in things to be paid but no
money, which means that the cashier (the poor cashier, it does him a lot of good from the yogic
viewpoint: he has acquired a calm that he never had before! But still he is the one who has to stand the
greatest tension), the cashier spends money and I cannot reimburse him. Very well. And then it's not
for me to run about, look for money, arrange things, discuss with people, of course, that wouldn't be
proper (!), and those who do it for me have in them a rather sizable amount of tamas, which I cannot
yet shake up. Anyway, yesterday they proposed something absurd to me (I don't want to go into the
details, it doesn't matter), but their proposal was absurd and put me in a totally "unacceptable"
situation. In other words, it might have brought a legal action against me, I might have been summoned
before the court, anyway, all kinds of "inadmissible" things - not that I care personally, but they're
"inadmissible." When they proposed their idea to me, I looked and saw it was silly; I was very quiet,
when, suddenly, there came into me a Power... (I told you it happens now and then) like this (massive
gesture). When it comes, you feel as though you could destroy - destroy everything with it... you see,
it's too awesome for the present state of the earth. So I answered very quietly that it was unacceptable, I
said why, and I returned the paper. Then something COMPELLED me to add: "If I am here, it is not
because of any necessity or obligation; it is not a necessity from the past, not a karma, not any
obligation, any attraction, any attachment, but only, solely and absolutely because of the Lord's Grace.
I am here because He keeps me here, and when He no longer keeps me here, when He considers I am
not to stay any longer, I won't stay." And I added (I was speaking in English), "As for me..." ("as for
me" [gesture upward] that is, not this [gesture to the body]), "as for Me, I consider that the world isn't
ready: its way of responding inwardly and outwardly, even visibly in those around me, proves that the
world isn't ready - something must happen for it to be ready. Or else it will take QUITE SOME TIME
for it to be prepared.... It's all the same to me: whether it is ready or not makes no difference. And
everything could collapse, I - couldn't - care - less." And with what force I said that! My arm rose, my
fist banged on the table - mon petit, I thought I was going to break everything!
I was watching the scene, thinking, "Why the devil am I made to do this?!" These people are,
apparently, quite devoted, quite surrendered and intimate enough not to be afraid. (I don't know what
effect it had on them, but it must have had some effect.) As soon as it was over, I started working
again, looking into affairs and so on. Afterwards, once I was alone, I wondered, "Why did that come
into me?"... And in the evening, I had the solution to the situation: it's here (Mother takes an envelope
129Tamas: inertia, darkness.

on the table). I didn't even look at it (Mother opens the envelope and looks at the amount of a check).
Then I said to myself: that's how it is, there must be a certain tamas - an uncomprehending tamas -
which in order to change needs to be violently shaken up. With illnesses, it's the same thing, in the
sense that only when things really seem about to topple over on the wrong side... I go out of my body
deliberately, hovering over all things, and the body recovers - now it takes very little time: a quarter of
an hour or twenty minutes.
From the point of view of government, it also seems to be the same thing, as if all the difficulties
little by little BROUGHT to power people who are under my influence. 130 But it's still sporadic - I
think it is the thing that will give way last. Sri Aurobindo said it would happen in '67... we still have
some time, it's only '63, four years to go. It's not that we'll govern ourselves (God knows we don't have
the time!), but "to be the government" means that in the government, there will be people directly
under the Influence. And it's not enough if it's local (God knows! [laughing] I have never seen
anything more rotten!), it's not enough if it's local, it's not enough if it's Indian, not at all: it has to be
global for... And clearly, for the moment, we are still very far from it - even in the invisible, even in the
Inconscient.There are some signs. Some signs before which ordinary people would marvel and rejoice
but which to me are far from sufficient.
No, concerning government, the issue is still undecided, and yet... Only, there are so many things
that tend, that draw near, and then they go off at a tangent - that's the trouble, for when they go off at a
tangent, then they go very far away... (gesture showing the possibility coming very close to crossing
History, then moving away along an immense circle backward, to return again)... and they take a very
long time to return.131
Something is being attempted now: there are some people who are in contact with us and are
conscious; they have a possibility of action and they are trying. They have caught an idea: to bring
Russia and America together so that the two powers united will be the agents of peace on earth. It's an
EXCELLENT idea. We'll see what's going to happen.
Because obviously... Oh, to tell the truth, I don't know. I say "obviously," but it's absolutely all the
same to me if everything is demolished and starts again - it's another way of playing, that's all. But
maybe without demolishing... To demolish and start all over again (laughing) has already been done a
few times! Maybe that's enough - if, without demolishing, men could progress... But is it possible?
We must come VERY CLOSE to the goal for that to be possible.
The big difficulty is that tamasic stupidity. Yesterday, in this connection, I had the experience of a
young couple who came to see me. (It has become a custom nowadays that young people who are
going to marry and whose families I know, or who live here, come to receive my blessings before
marrying! That's the new fashion.) So they came. The girl was educated here and the boy stayed here
for quite a long time, working here; anyway, they want to marry. The boy went searching for a job; he
had trust [in Mother] and found one. He is - I can't say conscious because it isn't like consciousness, I
would call it rather superstition (!) but it's a superstition on the right target! The movement is ignorant,
but well directed, so it works; not that he has an enlightened faith, but he has faith. All right. Things are
fine and he does very well. So they came yesterday to receive my blessings. Then they went. And they
left behind in the room... a vital formation, very bubbly, absolutely ignorant, very bubbly with a joie de
vivre, a joie de vivre so blissfully ignorant of all possible difficulties, all possible miseries, and not only
130It is the period of the Kennedy-Khrushchev-de Gaulle "combination." Indira Gandhi will come to power about two years
later.
131President Kennedy will be assassinated almost exactly a month later (on November 22).

for oneself but for everyone! You know, that joie de vivre that says, "Oh, it doesn't matter to me if we
are born and die - life is short, well, let it be good, that's enough." No mental curiosity, no urge to
know the why of the world - all that is nonsense, we needn't bother about it! Let's be happy, have some
fun, and do as well as we can. That's all.... That formation was so strong, you know, in the room that I
saw it and had to find a place for it. It put me in contact with a whole domain of the earth, of mankind,
and I had to put it in its proper place, put it in order and organize it. It took me a little time (long
enough, maybe three quarters of an hour or an hour), I had to order and organize everything. Then I
saw how widespread it is on earth. (Note that these young people belong to the "top" of society, they
are regarded as very intelligent, they are very well educated, in a word, it's about the best you can find
in mankind! Not the dregs, far from it.) And I wondered if it isn't even more widespread in Western
countries than here - I think it is. At that moment I came into contact with everywhere, and, well, the
"everywhere" was really quite extensive.
Afterwards, I asked myself, "But what the devil can be done with all this?..." Disturb these people?
They are quite incapable of getting out of their condition in this life and will probably need many,
many, many lives to awaken to the NEED TO KNOW - as long as they can move about, you know
(laughing), as long as they can move about and things aren't too painful, they're quite contented! And
then, in addition, there is, all the way down, that whole inert mass, you know, of men who are very
close to the animal - what can be done with that? If that too has to be ready, it seems to me
impossible.... Because that young couple, according to human opinion, are very fine people!
So how many... HOW MANY consciousnesses must there be, what quantity, if we may say
(intensity, there is: off and on it shines like stars), what is the mass of consciousnesses necessary to
enable this new world to come down on earth?... Otherwise, what would happen to it? It would be
swallowed up. Like in '60, when I saw the supramental forces descend (mon petit, what a sight it was!
They were descending, it was stupendous, marvelous; they were like torrents, you felt as though they
were going to inundate everything), and then, from below, there rose up great, dark blue masses like
this, and they went vroof! (gesture of engulfing) And everything was swallowed up.
So it would be the same thing PHYSICALLY, you understand.
(silence)
So, yesterday, there was first the visit of those young people, then that question of money, and then that
manifestation [of Power], which comes from time to time. Afterwards, I asked myself, "How is it..?
How is it that I was that way?" It lasts for a time, I do a certain thing, then it disappears completely.
And I feel surprised, you know, surprised. The first times it happened, something in the body was
having some difficulty holding it [the Power]; now, nothing whatsoever, the body doesn't feel anything,
it's grown accustomed to it. Perhaps that's what is being done: the body is being accustomed. But if that
Power were there all the time, good grief! People would have to behave themselves, because...
So I was looking at it and thinking, "How come?" I was neither angry nor upset nor anything at all -
within, there was always that same Love, unchanging, always, always there, for everything; even when
I perceive things with a kind of discernment (not even an intuitive one, a discernment higher than
intuitive, which is like a clear vision - clear, precise, in the white Light), the discernment of all the
stupidity, all the ill will, all the crookedness - a very clear discernment - it is always with a Smile,
there is always that same Vibration of an eternal Love. Then that Power comes - it doesn't disturb
anything, it doesn't take the place of anything: it's an addition. It's an action: it does its action and then
goes away. But while it's there... you know, the Force that made me bang my fist on the table could
have smashed everything. But of course, a poor little hand, a poor little arm, could only shake the
table!... (Mother laughs) It could only make a lot of noise and shake the table. But the perception was

tremendous.
That was the last time, but not the first.
Certain times, I don't budge; at times it comes when I am alone, so naturally I don't say a word and
don't budge, but after a while, there comes a kind of... (what can I call it?) I wonder, "What's going to
happen?..." It's not an anxiety but something that observes and asks, "But is it really possible to let
this... let this manifest?" And it always comes in connection with a circumstance, an action, a
movement (sometimes - very rarely - an idea in someone, but that's rare), and it comes almost as a
NECESSITY: "This must be struck down" (gesture of bringing down a sword of light). And what a
mighty striking-force!... Out of all proportion with earthly things. Then away it goes - I don't pull it
down nor do I send it back: I witness the thing, and the body is used, nothing else. And then it's gone.
There is a constant aspiration in the body for everything that can perfect it - perfect the instrument,
I mean - and there is very, very little asking for Power. When Sri Aurobindo was here, there was a
clear awareness of the necessity of Power, and several times I said, "It is the supramental Power that
will manifest first." Because, without Power, it will be impossible: the mass of opposition in the world
is sufficient to swallow up everything, just as the Light was swallowed up in '60 - the supramental
Light and Consciousness were swallowed up; it will be the same thing. But afterwards, when I had to
do the whole task, I no longer insisted on this point [Power], there wasn't the sense of this necessity any
more but rather the feeling of a WHOLE that has to progress together and manifest together. A kind of
perfection of the Whole.
But it's coming.
But, for example, when we used to have those gatherings for the pujas 132 and Durga used to come
(when Sri Aurobindo was here and for some time afterwards), when she manifested, there was a great
power that came along with her - but that's nothing! Nothing compared to That. Durga's power... yes,
it's like milk and water in comparison.
And there is absolutely nothing vital about it - now I find vital power quite crude, almost
repugnant. There's nothing vital about it: it's something from on high. It always comes with a golden
Vibration, very strong, and so massive!...
But it comes only when the situation is extremely tense; which might explain that it is probably
necessary to shake up all that Matter a bit, and that it can come only when all the other means won't do
any more.
You know, at those times, I feel such a force in me, even a physical strength, greater than I have
ever felt in my life, even when I was young and strong enough, and it makes me feel that people's
physical strength... is nothing! The first time it came after my illness (I wasn't on my guard), it did so
for no apparent reason (possibly as a test) and there was this instrument on my table (Mother points to
a penholder mounted on a steel pivot). So the Force came, and for some reason or other I wanted to
push this thing down. I put my hand on it without any effort, any force (but the Force was there, it was
in my arm): snapped off! (It isn't easy to break.) Snapped clean off! Without the shadow of an effort.
The doctor was here, he asked me "Why?" I told him, "Oh, I didn't do it deliberately, a force took hold
of my arm and went snap!" And I did it consciously; I saw, I saw the Force, saw a sort of golden bolt of
lightning, very strong, that came and - snap! I didn't make the slightest effort. The doctor was upset!
(He is a man with a sattvic nature.) He told me, That is stupid, it breaks your things - I'll get others!
That was the first time. Afterwards, I was on my guard.
When Sri Aurobindo was here, there was a boy who was quite uncontrollable: he had fits of anger
132In October and November, the pujas of the different aspects of the Mother.

which he couldn't control (not that it occurred to him to control them!). He was an engineer and a very
intelligent boy (but that makes no difference), and once, while Sri Aurobindo was in my room, this boy
came up the stairs and had me called. I went out to see him. Then he flew into a great rage, began
shouting and in his rage tried to rush at me. Well, I simply put my two hands on his shoulders, without
an effort, like that - he went tumbling down the stairs. Quite simply, I stopped him from coming near
by touching his shoulders.... But that was clearly Kali. Sri Aurobindo came and I told him what had
happened. (The boy had got back to his feet and was climbing the stairs again; when he saw Sri
Aurobindo, he scampered off!... He never did it again, of course.) But that was clearly Kali: when Kali
wants to, she can be very strong, but that still belongs to the realm of terrestrial things. She is very
strong: I simply stopped the boy from coming near, I put my hands on his shoulders, he lost his balance
and fell all the way down the stairs, he rolled right down the stairs. So I thought it was Sri Aurobindo
who had made Kali intervene (he had heard that demented boy shout, you see).
It's not the same thing. Long ago, when Sri Aurobindo was here, Kali used to come from time to
time - but it still belongs to this world, it's not the same thing [as the supramental Power].
Another time, a fellow (there are some demented characters of that kind) had come from Australia:
he was a teacher and had been given classes in the School. He started to preach unbelievable things -
he was God incarnate, you see! Until the day it began to be a pain in the neck. And he had declared he
would stay here forever.... People were annoyed, everyone was annoyed, they didn't know what to do. I
was in my room here (it was three years ago, maybe four). I remember: I was sitting on my bed (at the
time I used to work on my bed, over there), and I received a letter in which I was told... in short, that it
had become impossible, intolerable, that he could not be kept here. So I concentrated for a minute and
Kali arrived - Kali in her battling mood, a black, dancing Kali. I told her, "Why don't you go on his
head?" (Laughing) She went and did her dance on his head - the next day, he wrote he was leaving the
Ashram. In this case, it was very clear: the day before, he had declared that he wouldn't budge, that he
intended to stay here and continue his lessons, and that we would have to send him away forcibly for
him to go (they had told me all this quite tearfully). Kali's dance convinced him he had better go!
But all that, you see, it's the play of the world. What is going on now is something else, altogether
something else.
It comes, it acts, it goes. And it doesn't give any advance notice of its coming!
At such moments, the body feels very vast - vast, limitless, very vast, as though it were
TOUCHING all Matter; there is a conscious contact with all Matter. And banging my fist as I did
yesterday is quite symbolic, nothing but symbolic: it wasn't a table, my fist banged on the earth! "Earth,
if you are not ready, well, you will be left to fend for yourself; we'll go away and come back when
you're ready."
So it appears to be a necessity to shake up a tamas somewhere - there is plenty of TAMAS, plenty.
You understand, I don't feel any haste - I love stones, flowers, plants, animals so much, they're all
so wonderful! It begins to be less pleasant beyond... the most unpleasant is human perversion -
perversion of cruelty, of wickedness, of hardness. You have to rise higher to be able to accept it, to be
unaffected by it.
But that thing I saw yesterday, that bubbly formation of joie de vivre, I saw clearly that it's one of
the greatest obstacles - one of the greatest obstacles: a vital joy that knows only itself, that knows
nothing other than its own vital joy and is PERFECTLY content. I saw it was a great obstacle,
because... it already contained a sort of reflection of the True Thing. And then, you can only laugh, but
there are stern people who say, "You'll see when you get sick, you'll see when you get old...." (All that
came because there was a whole work, which represents a whole great drama on the earth's scale, there
was this and that and that....) What for? Why be stern? Let them be happy, they represent... why, it's

like foam on fresh beer!
***
Just before leaving:

I had a dream last night, it's the last thing I remember. It was like a mountain road and there were
enormous vehicles, like tanks, very black, very high, climbing up the mountain. And I had a feeling
they were Russians or Chinese, like an enormous military convoy, very, very black, climbing up the
mountain.
It isn't a dream! Perhaps it's what's going on up there.133
You probably went there.
(silence)
Yes, one can see things that way, many things. It's to show you that you have inner senses - one goes
and sees, one wanders about and comes back. (Laughing) It's exercises!

October 26, 1963
(Pondicherry has just been hit by a cyclone and Satprem by a strange fever.)
Did you feel anything during the cyclone? No, nothing particular?
You always have a sense of something in a fury - and not too nice!
(Laughing) Obviously!
First it came from one direction, then a dead calm - it's always that way. You know how cyclones
work? It's something that rotates, and at the center there's a dead calm; all around is a whirlwind, and it
rotates as it advances. So the first part (what might be called the front of the cyclone) arrives from one
direction, then it goes on rotating, and the second part comes from the opposite direction. We have an
American rear admiral here who knows those things very well - all seafaring people know them - he
had seen the cyclone from a distance on the sea and warned us. But it's always that way, I had noticed
it. The first wave arrived from the north, but as we were forewarned, everything had been closed. Then
the wind died down completely, but the southern windows had been left open. And the second wave
133In the Himalayas.

came from the other direction (it came around evening, a little before 7, I don't remember; anyway, I
was sitting at the table here). And I saw... I saw that whirlwind coming, and inside it there were
formations: like heaped masses, some gray-black, others reddish-brown. And I watched it all; I saw
them from a distance, there were lots of them: big formations, about as big as houses. They came in
heaped masses, with kinds of formations WITHIN the whirlwind. So I was here, just beginning to have
my dinner, when a reddish-brown formation went over, like this, right from here towards your house
(Mother sweeps across the room from south to north), and it struck me. Mon petit, howling pains! And
then a horrible discomfort. So naturally, my usual remedy: I stayed still and offered it all to the Lord.
The formation went past, didn't stop (it went past, struck and went away), and left behind it (afterwards
the pains were dull, they could be controlled) a kind of very peculiar sense of discomfort... a sort of
wickedness, like big sharp claws raking one's stomach. So I was expecting something for you - others
too fell sick who were in the path of the formation. But there must have been quite a number of cases,
because I saw many formations - that one did strike, you see. I saw it arrive as swiftly as the cyclone,
strike, and then go on. So when I was told that you had a fever, instantly I thought, "That's it."
Was it painful?
Oh, terrible, as if I were burning within.
That's it, like red-hot iron claws. And others too had the same thing, the very same thing.
My body and muscles are aching all over, as if I had been battered.
Yes, that's it, mon petit. The doctors would say it was a mass of germs or microbes or viruses (or God
knows what), but it was vital ill will - vital malice - but with a coating material enough to act directly
(Mother strikes): it was instantaneous, you know, no need of incubation! Instantaneous, like a fiery
sword ripping open your stomach - charming.
It will go away.
But I stopped the immediate effect (the immediate effect was... almost catastrophic), I stopped it
with my great method: that sort of inner immobility, and leaving everything in the Lord's hands.
Nevertheless, the next day, I was unwell (I'm not quite well yet), as though the body had been terribly
shaken.
Then I saw all kinds of things - oh, bah! bah!... An adverse organization in the most material vital
to mislead unenlightened spiritual aspirations: I encountered that last night. There was a kind of
preacher teaching how to do things, and for each thing I had to contradict and explain - because he had
quite an audience: he has that audience at night, and when people wake up, they aren't conscious of it,
and it influences them. It results in a kind of possession. It was (oh, I see that gentleman often), it's a
tall, black being - he is black, jet black - but he passes himself off as a great Initiate! People don't see
him as he is (they must see him in a very attractive guise), and he preaches the very things that foster
disintegration. He teaches you in detail how to do - a very good teacher of mischief. But I argued with
him about everything, explained everything in detail, very carefully, very conscientiously, and when it
was over, I offered it all to the Lord - so I don't know what happened to him!
"They" are quite unhappy at what's going on here! (Mother laughs)
So that must be a good sign, mustn't it?
Yes, but... It shakes people a little.
The strange thing is that L., who was in the path of this formation (gesture from south to north),

was sick, like you, he had a fever: the same thing, the same pains - very particular pains. And U. too
was nearly caught; but the day before, I had explained to him how to defend himself, and he told me he
had used my method and it worked quite well. I had explained to him how to "pass the thing" on to the
Lord (that is, to learn to offer it). He tried it and told me, "It worked quite well, the thing didn't take
root: a moment of discomfort, and it was over."
One should learn to do that. If one does it with one's head, it's useless; what's effective is when you
are able to summon that sort of eternal immobility... then, the effect is immediate. But generally, people
know how to do it for others but not for themselves, because for themselves, they go on vibrating -
when it hurts a lot, it's difficult to stop that vibrating. But it CAN be done; even when the pain is
absolutely acute, almost unbearable (normally one would start screaming), one CAN, one can do it and
summon that silent immobility to the painful spot - immobility of eternity. Very, very quickly, within a
few seconds, the intensity disappears; there remains only a memory, which one should take care not to
reawaken by thinking about it, but which lingers as a memory in the body, as when you've given
yourself a good knock, a sound blow, and the acute pain has gone, but the mark stays. It stays a more or
less long time. If one made the effort to stay very, very quiet, immobile, without doing anything,
thinking anything, wanting anything, for a long enough time, I think there would be very little effect.
So much so that, for example, one KNOWS one has a violent fever (the thing comes with a violent
fever, a violent reaction), yet there is no sign of fever! I had the experience three or four times; I had
those things that bring on bouts of violent fever, and when the doctor came, I asked him, "Doctor, do I
have a fever?" (I knew very well I had a fever, I didn't need to ask him! One of those fevers that make
you run a very high temperature; but then there was that immobility I had summoned.) The doctor feels
my pulse: "No, you're fine!"
Of course, one can imitate this mentally, but it's only an imitation. What I mean is something else,
which has nothing to do with mental will - (laughing) maybe it's a gift from the Lord, I don't know!

October 30, 1963
(On the occasion of Satprem's birthday Mother writes the following message:)
"A
day
shall
come
when
will
become
real,
with
marvelous than anything we can dream of.

all
a

the
beautiful
reality
far

dreams
more

With our love and blessings."
I've put it into French, but it's something Sri Aurobindo said for you!
I put "our," it's deliberate.
And he said with assurance, "Do tell him this, let him not forget that all the most beautiful, the most
marvelous, the most fantastic things we have dreamed of are nothing compared to what will be

realized" - and yet that will be the realization of all dreams. But far more perfect, more marvelous,
more complete, more living.
The other day I wondered, "What am I going to tell him?" And he immediately answered me, "Tell
him this."
Yes, it wet be that way.
Yes! It's obvious.

November

November 4, 1963
(Mother looks tired)

Yesterday, I had resolved to see Sujata, and they kept me standing there arranging objects, perfectly
unnecessarily, under the pretext that there are showcases, that visitors are expected and that the objects
should be arranged in the showcases.... After spending more than an hour on that work, I told them,
"Go away, I've had enough! And - do whatever you like." I was exasperated.
An avalanche of people, of letters, of things, of complications.... But at the same time, there's an
avalanche of... (how can I put it?) - everything, everything is becoming so new. Everything.
Everything.
An example: yesterday, for at least a quarter of an hour, I was filled with a sort of marvelous -
marveling - admiration for Nature's fantastic imagination in inventing the animals. I saw all the
animals in all their details - that is, the prehuman age. Consequently, there was no mind. And without
the mind, how wonderful that imagination was, you know! It was as though I lived in it: there was no
man, no thought, but that imaginative power making one species emerge out of another, and then
another; and all those details... Everything is becoming like that, as if it were SEEN for the first time
and from an altogether different angle; everything, everything: people's character, circumstances, even
the motion of the earth and the stars, everything is like that, everything has become entirely new and...
unexpected, in the sense that all the human mental vision - is completely gone! So things are much
better! (Laughing) Much better without the human mind. (I don't mean they are better without man, I
mean that seen from another viewpoint than the human, mental viewpoint, everything is far more
wonderful.) And then, all the details of every minute, all the people, all the things, all... The trees
(Mother looks at the coconut tree in front of her window) that were stripped by the cyclone; this one
held up so marvelously and it has a new flower - it has old leaves damaged by the cyclone, but it has
grown a new flower. So lovely, so fresh!... Everything is like that.
Me too. Me too, I saw myself (laughing) from a new angle! And the things that in the past were, not
positively problems, but anyway "questions to be resolved" (certain actions, certain relationships), all
gone! And there is something that thoroughly enjoys itself - I don't know what that something is, but it
thoroughly enjoys itself. Outwardly, as I told you, everything is heaped on me ("on me," well, it isn't on
me), on this body, which is obliged to answer questions, obliged to read letters, obliged to see people...
whereas it has so much more fun when it can enjoy the inner experience and have this new vision of
things - because all that is very material, it's not going out of Matter to see the world in another way
(that has been done for a long time, of course, it's nothing new, and it's nothing marvelous), that's not it:
it's Matter looking at itself in an entirely new way, and that's where the fun is! It sees the whole affair
anew and altogether differently. Then they plunge me back into that stupid way of seeing things, the
ordinary human way in which everything becomes a problem, a complication. And I am obliged -
obliged to answer people, to listen to what they tell me.... It's a shame.
They're wasting my time.
***

(Later, Mother, thinking of the preparation for the next "Bulletin," asks what the next aphorism is.)
95 - Only by perfect renunciation of desire or by perfect satisfaction of desire can the utter
embrace of God be experienced, for in both ways the essential precondition is effected, - the
desire perishes.
It's impossible to satisfy desire perfectly - it's something. impossible. And to renounce desire too: you
renounce one desire and get another one. Therefore, both ways are relatively impossible - what's
possible is to enter a condition in which there is no desire.
(long silence)
It's too bad I can't keep note of all the experiences that come to me, because just these last few days, for
a period of time, there was a very clear perception of the true functioning, which is the expression of
the supreme Will and operates spontaneously, naturally and automatically through the individual
instrument; I could even say (because the mind is quiet, it keeps quiet): through the body. And the
perception of the moment when this expression of the divine Will is blurred, distorted by the
introduction of a desire, the special vibration of desire, which has a quality all of its own and which
comes for many apparent reasons: it's not only a thirst for something, a need for something or an
attachment to something; that same vibration can be triggered by the fact that, for instance, the will
expressed seems to be (or at any rate has been taken for) the expression of the supreme Will, but there
has been a confusion between the immediate action which was evidently the expression of the supreme
Will, and the result which was to follow from that action - it's a very common mistake. People are used
to thinking that when they want a particular thing, that's what should come; because their vision is too
short - too short and too limited, not an overall vision which would make them see that that particular
vibration is necessary to trigger a number of other vibrations, and that it's the TOTALITY of them all
that will have an effect, which isn't the immediate effect of the vibration that was sent out.... I don't
know whether this is clear, but it's a constant experience.
If I gave an example, it would be easier to grasp, but it must be a lived example, otherwise it's
worthless.
But during that period of time, I made a study and observation of the phenomenon: how the
vibration of desire is added to the vibration of the Will sent out by the Supreme (for small everyday
acts). And with the vision from above (if you take care, of course, to remain conscious of that vision
from above), you see how the vibration sent out was exactly the one sent out by the Supreme, but
instead of producing the immediate result which the superficial consciousness expected, it was intended
to trigger a whole set of vibrations in order to reach another result, more distant and more complete. I
am not talking of big things or terrestrial actions, I am talking of very small things in life. For example,
you tell someone, "Give me this," and the person, instead of giving that, misunderstands and gives
something else; so if you don't take care to keep an overall vision, a certain vibration may occur, say of
impatience, or a dissatisfaction, along with the feeling that the Lord's vibration is neither understood
nor received. Well, it's that little ADDED vibration of impatience (or, in fact, of incomprehension of
what happens), it's that feeling of a lack of receptivity or response that has the quality of desire - we
can't call it a "desire," but it's the same kind of vibration. And that's what comes and complicates
things. If you have the complete, exact vision, you know that "Give me this" will produce a result
different from the immediate one and that that other result will bring about yet another, which is
exactly what should be. I don't know whether I am making myself clear, it's a bit complicated!... But it
gave me the key to the difference in quality between the vibration of the Will and the vibration of
desire. And together with this, the possibility of doing away with that vibration of desire through a

broader and more total vision - broader, more total, more distant, that is to say, the vision of a vaster
totality.
I am insisting on this, because it eliminates all moral elements. It eliminates the derogatory notion
of desire. The vision increasingly eliminates all those notions of good and evil, good and bad, inferior
and superior, and so forth. There is only what I might almost call a difference of vibratory quality -
"quality" still evokes the idea of superiority and inferiority, it isn't quality, not intensity either, I don't
know the scientific term they use to distinguish one vibration from another, but that's it.
But then, the remarkable thing is that the Vibration (what we could call the quality of the vibration
that comes from the Lord) is constructive: it constructs, it is peaceful and luminous; while that other
vibration, of desire and such like, complicates, destroys and confuses, it twists things - confuses and
distorts them, twists them. And it takes away the light: it makes for a dullness, which can be intensified
with violent movements to the point of very dark shadows. But even where there is no passion, where
passion doesn't interfere, that's how it is. You see, the physical reality has become nothing but a field of
vibrations mingling together and, unfortunately, clashing together too, in conflict with one another.
And the clash, the conflict, is the climax of that kind of turmoil, of disorder and confusion created by
certain vibrations, which are ultimately vibrations of ignorance (they come because people don't know,
they are vibrations of ignorance), and are too small, too narrow, too limited - too short. The problem
isn't seen from a psychological standpoint at all: it's nothing but vibrations.
If we look at it from a psychological standpoint... On the mental plane, it's very easy; on the vital
plane, it's not too difficult; on the physical plane, it's a little heavier, because desires are passed off as
"needs." But there too, there has been a field of experience these last few days: the study of medical
and scientific conceptions on the body's makeup, its needs, and what's good or bad for it. And all this,
in its essence, again boils down to the same question of vibrations. It was quite interesting: there was an
appearance (because all things as the ordinary consciousness sees them are nothing but appearances),
there was an appearance of food poisoning (mushrooms that are thought to have been bad). It was the
object of a particular study to find out whether there was something absolute about the poisoning, or
whether it was relative, that is, based on ignorance, a wrong reaction and the absence of the true
Vibration. And the conclusion was as follows: it's a question of proportion between the amount, the
sum of the vibrations that belong to the Supreme, and the sum of the vibrations that still belong to
darkness. Depending on the proportion, the poisoning appears as something concrete, real, or else as
something that can be eliminated, in other words, that doesn't resist the influence of the Vibration of
Truth. And it was very interesting, because, immediately, as soon as the consciousness became aware
of the cause of the trouble in the body's functioning (the consciousness perceived where it came from
and what it was), immediately the observation began, with the idea: "Let's see what happens." First set
the body perfectly at rest with the certainty (which is always there) that nothing happens except by the
Lord's Will and that the effect too is the Lord's Will, all the consequences are the Lord's Will, and
consequently one should be very still. So the body is very still: untroubled, not agitated, it doesn't
vibrate, nothing - very still. Once this is achieved, to what extent are the effects unavoidable? Because
a certain quantity of matter that contained an element unfavorable to the body's elements and life was
absorbed, what is the proportion between the favorable and the unfavorable elements, or between the
favorable and the unfavorable vibrations? And I saw very clearly: the proportion varies according to
the amount of cells in the body that are under the direct Influence, that respond to the supreme
Vibration alone, and the amount of other cells that still belong to the ordinary way of vibrating. It was
very clear, because I could see all the possibilities, from the ordinary mass [of cells], which is
completely upset by that intrusion and where you have to fight with all the ordinary methods to get rid
of the undesirable element, to the totality of the cellular response to the supreme Force, which renders
the intrusion perfectly innocuous.... But this is still a dream for tomorrow - we're on the way. But the
proportion has become rather favorable (I can't say all-powerful, far from it, but rather favorable), so

that the consequences of the ill-being didn't last very long and the damage was, so to say, minimal.
But all the experiences nowadays, one after the other - all the PHYSICAL experiences, of the body
- point to the same conclusion: everything depends on the proportion between the elements that
respond exclusively to the Supreme's Influence, the half-and-half elements, on the road to
transformation, and the elements that still follow Matter's old vibratory process. The latter appear to be
decreasing in number, to a great extent, but there are still enough of them to bring about unpleasant
effects or unpleasant reactions - things that are untransformed, that still belong to ordinary life. But all
problems, whether psychological or purely material or chemical, all problems boil down to this: they
are nothing but questions of vibrations. And there is the perception of that totality of vibrations and of
what we could call (in a very rough and approximative way) the difference between the constructive
and the destructive vibrations. We can say (to put it very simply) that all the vibrations that come from
the One and express Oneness are constructive, while all the complications of the ordinary, separative
consciousness lead to destruction.
(long silence)
It is always said that it is desire that creates difficulties (and indeed it is so). Desire may be simply
something added on to a vibration of will. It is also said that nothing happens except by the supreme
Will, so how can the two things be true at the same time and be combined? And it's because this
problem was being posed that I found... The will (when it is the one Will, the supreme Will expressing
itself) is direct, immediate, there cannot be any obstacles; so all that delays, blocks, complicates, or
even brings about failure, is NECESSARILY the mixture of desire.
This can be seen for everything. Take, for example, an external field of action, in the outer world
and with outer things (naturally, to say it is "outer" is simply to put yourself in a false position), but, for
example, if in the highest consciousness, the Truth-Consciousness, you tell someone, "Go" (I am giving
one example among millions), "Go and see so-and-so, tell him this to obtain that." If the person is
receptive, inwardly immobile and surrendered, he goes, sees the other person, tells him, and the thing
happens - without the SLIGHTEST complication, just like that. If the person has an active mental
consciousness, doesn't have total faith and has all the mixture of ego and ignorance, he sees the
difficulties, sees the problems to be resolved, sees all the complications - naturally, they all occur! So
according to the proportion (everything is a question of proportion, always), according to the
proportion, it creates complications, it takes time, the thing is delayed, or, a little worse, it is distorted,
it doesn't occur exactly as it should, it is changed, diminished, distorted, or, finally, it doesn't occur at
all - there are many, many degrees, but it all belongs to the domain of complications (mental
complications) and desire. Whereas the other way is immediate. Examples of those cases (of all cases)
are innumerable, so also are the examples of the immediate case. Then people tell you, "Oh, you've
worked a miracle!" No miracle was worked: it should always be that way. It's because the intermediary
did not add himself to the action.
I don't know if that's clear, but anyway...
So, from the smallest thing to even terrestrial things... I don't want to be personal at all, so I won't
give examples, but there were some amusing ones, like, for instance, making people such as presidents,
prime ministers, make certain decisions - if the right intermediary is there.
It can even be a terrestrial action.
There are examples, in the terrestrial action, of things that were done "just like that": no one ever
understood how it was done or why it was done - just like that, so simply, very simply, it all worked
out. And in other cases, to obtain a mere visa or permit, you have to move heaven and earth! So, from
the smallest thing, the slightest physical discomfort, to the most global action, it's all the same

principle, it all boils down to the same principle.
Naturally, when you have the experience, it's very easy to understand, but it's hard to explain - by
the way, I don't think we can put this in the Bulletin.
Yes, we can, it's quite clear!
Oh, incomprehensible.
No, no.
Anyway... I tried to take out the personal element as much as possible.
It's clear.
Is it really?... All right (laughing), very well then!

November 13, 1963
(Regarding an old Playground Talk of January 8, 1951, in which Mother said: "The history of the
earth seems to be a history of victories followed by defeats, and not of defeats followed by
victories.... [But] in truth, the movements of Nature are like those of the tides: things go forward,
then backward, then forward, then backward... which implies, in universal life, even in earthly life,
a progressive advance though apparently broken with retreats. But those retreats are only an
appearance, as when you take a run in order to jump. You seem to move back, but it's only to
enable you to jump higher. You may tell me that this is all very well, but how do you give a child
the certainty that truth will triumph? For when he learns history, he will see that things do not
always end well.")
(Mother remains pensive)
Ultimately, as long as there is death, things always come to a bad end.
Only when the victory is won over death will things cease to come to a bad end... that is to say,
when the return to Unconsciousness will no longer be necessary to allow a new progress.
The entire process of development, at least on the earth (I don't know how it is on other planets) is
that way. And perhaps (I don't know very much about the history of astronomy) universes too - do they
know if universes perish physically, if the physical history of the end of a universe has been
recorded?... Traditions tell us that a universe is created, then withdrawn into pralaya, and then a new
one comes; and according to them, ours is the seventh universe, and being the seventh universe, it is the
one that will not return to pralaya but will go on progressing, without retreat. This is why, in fact, there

is in the human being that need for permanence and for an uninterrupted progress - it's because the
time has come.
(Mother remains in contemplation)

November 20, 1963
So, any news? How are you?
So-so.
Not all that well?
Not all that well, no.
Your health isn't good?
Not too good either.
What's wrong?
It's inside also.
Oh, then that's why! What's wrong inside?
You don't want to tell me?
I'm a bit... disillusioned.
By what?
My faith doesn't waver, but I have the impression that except for a certain number of things I have
to do and for which I receive a precise help, a help really from above, for the rest, nothing. You
understand, it's ten years now since I came here, well, there's nothing - not that I lack faith, but
there's no development.
Maybe not the development you're expecting.
Well, for me, it has to be a development of consciousness: you SEE. I don't know, you should see!
Ah, always that question of "seeing."

Of course!
But that's not necessary, some people realize without seeing.
I find that quite incomplete. There's no consciousness.
No consciousness?
No.
Aren't you conscious?
Of what??
(silence)
My faith doesn't change: this is the Truth, without a doubt. Even if nothing happened for two
centuries, it would still be the Truth, but...
Oh, two centuries, that's nothing! Two millennia, my child, come on.... You're in too great a hurry.
I really thought... When I began the yoga, it seemed to me quite natural: you do such and such a
thing, you come to such and such a result - it seemed obvious to me. That obviousness is what has
been shaken.
Yes, that's what I felt. Would you believe that lately, for about two or three weeks, there has been a
kind of craving for effects (what YOU call "results"), effects. To me, they were "effects." And I said to
myself, "That's odd, I've never had that in my life, I am absolutely indifferent, why this craving?" - All
the time I keep catching your illnesses! Say, that's not very nice! (laughter)
Ah, now I understand! I said to myself, "Where is it coming from? Where is it coming from?..."
All right.
Well, it will pass. It's going to pass.
(silence)
I have been shown in a perfectly objective, but tenuous, way some effects that are insignificant in their
dimensions, yet OVERWHELMING, I am telling you, overwhelming in their quality. And with a
smile, as if I were made fun of and told, "Oh, so you want results? Well, here they are. You want
effects? Well, here they are." And then it went on (you know, what I call "insignificant" is what
concerns life's tiny little circumstances of every minute): "You want TERRESTRIAL results? Well,
these are far more considerable in their quality than you can see." And indeed, I saw small, very small
things, movements of consciousness in Matter, tiny little things that were... truly astounding in their
quality, and that are never noticed because they are totally unimportant (outwardly unimportant). Only
if you observe in a most tenuous way do you notice them, because they are, in fact, phenomena of
consciousness in the cells - are you conscious of your cells?
(Satprem shakes his head)

No. Well, become conscious of your cells, and you will see that there are results!
All these last few days, it has been coming as... as proofs, proofs that can crush any doubt: proofs of
the Supreme's omnipresence in the apparently MOST UNCONSCIOUS MATTER - something so
overwhelming that the rational reason can hardly believe it. But it is forced to. Only, of course, you
notice it when you have reached that most tenuous degree of attention and when, instead of wanting
great things that cause a lot of noise and movement and appear very dazzling, you content yourself with
observing very, very little, very tiny things that are to our pretentious reason perfectly insignificant, but
to the Lord are crushing proofs.
But I don't need proofs! I don't doubt for a second, there isn't one doubt in my consciousness.
Then what do you lack?
Well, I tell myself I'm useless! I'm not capable. That's all.
But that's not true!
Then why am I not conscious?
But that's false, mon petit!
But I'm not aware of anything going on. I wake up in the morning, for example, and I don't have the
faintest idea of where I've been at night.
And here I am trying never to remember!... I go to the greatest trouble to succeed - I do succeed, I am
beginning to succeed. When I go to bed, I ask, "For the love of God, for the love of You, Lord, let me
rest blissfully and peacefully, without being conscious of... all that useless jumble of life and people."
And when I wake up (I wake up nearly four or five times in the night, that is, I come out of my trance
and enter the external consciousness), every time I notice there had been an event going on, but
immediately, something comes and goes vrrt!... (gesture of erasing) because I asked; so it goes away.
And He's full of humor, the Lord, you know (Mother laughs), far more than we think, because He gives
me just a hint of something which is suddenly extremely interesting and revealing: the other day, I had
been put in contact with the political circumstances of the country, then naturally, at my idiotic request,
as soon as I woke up, as soon as I came back to the external consciousness, something came and went
vrrt!... and the thing vanished. So I made a little attempt to bring it back, but I heard someone laugh,
saying, "You see!..."
In the end, the conclusion of it all is that we're fools! We want what we're not given, we don't want
what we're given, and we mix in all kinds of personal desires with the care the Lord takes of us.
But I can't call unconsciousness a "care"! When I'm unconscious, I feel it as something wrong!
But are you really unconscious?
Yes, certainly; what am I conscious of?...
Mon petit...
I'm conscious of my own noise, of my own din, of my stories, that's all I'm conscious of!

(Mother laughs) I remember, it wasn't at night, but in daytime; while I was walking, the Lord
complimented me on you.
Well, I'll be...!
Not that way, not the way we understand compliments. I was looking into the way the Truth has to
make use of mental capacities to express itself. (Because you're asked to silence the mind, and when
you succeed in doing so, you really do succeed, but but that's not the aim; it's only a means, it's to
change your way of functioning.) So I was looking at the way the mind has to function in the true life
(the supramental life, since Sri Aurobindo said he called "supramental" the manifestation of Truth and
Light). Anyway, I was looking. I was conducting a kind of terrestrial survey, wondering, "Are there on
earth mentalities that are ready to receive and manifest - especially manifest - that vibration properly?"
And I heard the Lord answer me something (I am translating, naturally): "But why are you looking so
far afield? You have the fitting instrument with you." And it was you. So I thought, "That's fine."
I didn't voice any doubt on His judgment!
But since you protest and chafe... And He showed me how the drop of Light came, burst, sent forth
radiation and went through your mentality without being dimmed - it was a very lovely thing to see.
I didn't tell you because... is it necessary to pay compliments? The fact itself was more important
than saying it. But since you're unhappy, I am telling you: that's how it is. Maybe it's a habit of inner
revolt - you aren't a rebel by nature, by any chance?
I tried to find out why your physical life began (well, not quite began, but you were very, very
young, just the same) with such a painful experience [the concentration camps]. And I saw why: it was
like a separation - not "separation," but disentanglement, you understand?... There are two things in
every human being: what comes from the past and has persisted because it is formed and conscious,
and then all that dark, unconscious mass, really muddy, that is added in every new life. Then the other
thing gets into that and finds itself imprisoned, you know - adulterated and imprisoned - and generally
it takes more than half one's life to emerge from that entanglement. Well, for you, care was taken to...
more than double the dose at the beginning, and it caused a kind of tearing apart: one part went up
above, another part fell down below. And the part (it acted almost like a filter), the part that rose up
was very cleansed, very cleansed of all that swarming: it's becoming very, very conscious of the
mixture.... Just see, today, the whole morning until I was swamped with work by people, till then there
was a sharp awareness of the part of the being that still belongs, as I said, to Unconsciousness, to
Ignorance, to Darkness, to Stupidity, and is... not even as harmonious as a tree or a flower; something
that's not even as tranquil as a stone, not even as harmonious and not even as strong as the animal -
something that is really a downfall. That is really human inferiority. And maybe (no, I shouldn't say
"maybe": I know) it was necessary for things to settle down - settle, you know, as when you let a liquid
settle? That's exactly it: it's the Light that settles, the Consciousness that settles. And indeed it's true,
there is in you a part that has entirely settled. Every time I see it (it comes in the course of the work,
you understand), it's lovely in its quality of light, its quality of vibration, and it has settled considerably.
But it's true that there is also a kind of sediment, a deposit (deposit, you know?) which is a bit heavy -
that's what you're conscious of.
But you shouldn't say "me"! It's not you, that residue isn't you!... But you are indeed conscious of
the Light, aren't you?
Yes, I am conscious of it when I write, for instance.
Yes, or when you meditate.

Yes, but that's all. It's a light or a force.
Mon petit, it's as lovely as can be! It sparkles like champagne - it's as lovely as can be, and it's a light.
Like champagne bubbles, you know? It's bubbles of light.
But why doesn't it express itself in an awakened external consciousness?
Because it has settled! So you should get the awareness or knowledge that this [the body] isn't you -
the trouble is that when you say "me" you think of this (Mother strikes her body), but that's not it! It
isn't you! And you have to feel that it isn't you before you can come down again into it to take
possession of it and change it. As long as you say, "This is me," you are tied, bound hand and foot.
What's you is this (gesture above the head), it's there: what sparkles in the light - that's you. This
[the body] isn't you, it's the sediment. You still have your body's self-esteem! You should feel: this isn't
me, it isn't me. It is... yes, what was put together more or less clumsily and ignorantly by father,
mother, maybe with the influence of grandparents.... That discovery I made at the age of about fifteen
or sixteen, or seventeen. I began to see clearly all the "gifts" (if we can call them that) that came from
father, mother, parents, grandparents, education, people who looked after me, that whole mudhole, as it
were, into which you fall headfirst. And then, the quality of the vibration, the quality of the sensation,
of the so-called "thoughts" (which aren't thoughts, but are almost automatic mental reflexes of sorts)
and of the feelings (if you can call them feelings: they are kinds of reactions to the milieu and to all that
comes from outside) - it all swarms, swarms like worms in the mud.
When you see it all and you begin to say, "But this isn't me!" and you feel it isn't you: "It isn't me!
No - me is what looks on; me is what wills; me is what knows...."
You must be having revelations without even noticing them! You have all this here (gesture above
Satprem's head), it's full of revelations, mon petit! And there you are, trying to see with the eyes of the
vital, to have experiences in the subtle physical, all kinds of things, which cannot even come because
you are here (gesture above), and that is the sediment.
(silence)
But I don't know, it's clear that the Lord is particularly interested in your case, because He has shown
me many things of your body's life, your body's reactions - He must be taking care of you! (Laughing)
Maybe if you give Him credit, you'll notice it!
I rather get sore, I flare up, I take Him to task.
Oh, you always get sore - you are a rebel by nature.
That's tiresome, one wastes one's time.
(silence)
But the time of change must have come, because I was shown the worst - your worst state - and then
what you are to be. In fact, I realize now (laughing) that I've been occupied with you quite a lot these
days.
I must say that what I see isn't very pretty.
Everyone is born with... (what can I call it?) some special twist (laughing) - I know my own twist, I

know it quite well! (I don't talk about it because it isn't enjoyable.) But that's what remains last of all.
With our idiotic human logic, we think, "That's what should go first," but it's not true: it's what goes
last! Even when it all becomes clear, clear (gesture above), even when you have all the experiences, the
habit stays on and it keeps coming back. So you push it back: it rises again from the subconscient; you
chase it away: it comes back from outside. So if for one minute you aren't on your guard, it shows up
again - oh, what a nuisance! But Sri Aurobindo wrote about this somewhere, I don't remember the
words; I read it very recently, and when I read it, I thought, "Ah, there it is! He knew it was that way."
So it comforted me, and I thought, "All right, then." He said that he who has purified his mind and so
on and so forth, who is ready to work towards Perfection (it's in the Synthesis, "The Yoga of SelfPerfection"), "He is ready and patient for lapses and the recurrence of old errors, and he works quietly,
waiting patiently till the time comes for them to leave." I thought, "Very well, that's how it is now." I
am patiently waiting for the time when... (though I don't miss any opportunity to catch them by the tip
of their nose, or the tip of their ear, and to say, "Ha, you're still here!...").
The first thing is to detach your consciousness, that's most important. And to say: I-AM-NOTTHIS, it's something that has been ADDED, placed to enable me to touch Matter - but it isn't me. And
then if you say, "That is me" (gesture upward), you'll see that you will be happy, because it is lovely -
lovely, luminous, sparkling. It's really fine, it has an exceptional quality. And that's you. But you have
to say, "That is me," and be convinced that it's you. Naturally, the old habits come to deny it, but you
must know that they're old habits, nothing else, they don't matter - that is you.
This movement is indispensable. A moment comes when one must absolutely separate oneself from
all this, because only when one has separated oneself and become quite conscious that one is there
(gesture above the head), that one is THAT, only then can one come down again to change it all. Not to
forsake it, but to be its master.
I've spent nights in sewers, cleaning out sewers.
Ah, that's good! (Mother laughs) Oh, but that's very funny because I've done identical things. Listen!...
Oh, well, it's very funny.
It's all right, it's all right.
We must endure. The victory belongs to the most enduring.
There are times when one is disgusted, and that's just when one should remember this. Now, your
disgust may have reasons of its own (!) But you have only to endure. You know, there is one thing, I
don't know if you have savored it yet: as soon as you have a difficulty, dissatisfaction, revolt, disgust -
anything - fatigue, tension, discomfort, all, all that negative side (there are lots and lots and lots of such
things, they take on all kinds of different colors), the immediate movement - immediate - of calling the
Lord and saying, "It's up to You." As long as you try (instinctively you try to arrange things with your
best light, your best consciousness, your best knowledge...), it's stupid, because that prolongs the
struggle, and ultimately it's not very effective. There is only one effective thing, that's to step back from
what's still called "me" and... with or without words, it doesn't matter, but above all with the flame of
aspiration, this (gesture to the heart), and something perfectly, perfectly sincere: "Lord, it's You; and
only You can do it, You alone can do it, I can't...." It's excellent, you can't imagine how excellent! For
instance, someone comes and deluges you with impossible problems, wants you to make instant
decisions; you have to write, you have to answer, you have to say - all of it - and it's like truckloads of
darkness and stupidity and wrong movements and all that being dumped on you; and it's dumped and
dumped and dumped - you are almost stoned to death with all that. You begin to stiffen, you get tense;
then, immediately (gesture of stepping back): "O Lord...." You stay quiet, take a little step back
(gesture of offering): "It's up to you."

But you can't imagine, it's wonderful! Immediately there comes - clear, simple, effortlessly, without
seeking for it - exactly what has to be done or said or written: the whole tension stops, it's over. And
then, if you need paper, the paper is there; if you need a fountain pen, you find just the one you need; if
you need... (there's no seeking: above all don't seek, don't try to seek, you'll just make another mess) -
it's there. And that's a fact of EVERY MINUTE. You have the field of experience every second. For
instance, you're dealing with a servant who doesn't do things properly or as you think they should be
done, or you're dealing with a stomach that doesn't work the way you'd like it to and it hurts: it's the
same method, there is no other. You know, at times... situations get so tense that you feel as if you're
about to faint, the body can't stand it any more, it's so tense; or else there's a pain, something wrong,
things aren't sorting themselves out, and there's a tension; so immediately you stop everything: "Lord,
You, it's up to You...." At first there comes a peace, as if you were entirely outside existence, and then
it's gone - the pain goes, the dizziness disappears. And what is to happen happens automatically. And,
you see, it's not in meditation, not in actions of terrestrial importance: it's the field of experience you
have ALL the time, without interruption - when you know how to put it to use. And for everything:
when something hurts, for instance, when things resist or grate or howl inside there, instead of your
saying, "Oh, how it hurts!..." you call the Lord in there: "Come in here," and then you stay calm, not
thinking of anything - you simply stay still in your sensation. And more than a thousand times, you
know, I was almost bewildered: "Look! The pain is gone!" You didn't even notice how it went. So
people who want to lead a special life or have a special organization to have experiences, that's quite
silly - the greatest possible diversity of experiences is at your disposal every minute, every minute.
Only you must learn not to have a mental ambition for "great" things. Just the other day, I was shown
in such a clear way a very small thing I had done ("I," it's the body speaking), a very small things that
had been done by the Lord in this body (that's a long sentence!), and I was shown the terrestrial
consequence of that very small thing - it was visible, I mean, as my hand is visible to my eyes - and
the terrestrial correspondence. Then I understood.
We are given everything - EVERYTHING. All the difficulties that have to be overcome, all of
them (and the more capable we are, that is, the more complex the instrument is, the more numerous the
difficulties are), all the difficulties, all the opportunities to overcome them, all the possible experiences,
and limited in time and space so they can be innumerable. And it has repercussions and consequences
all over the earth (I am not concerned with what goes on in the universe because, for the time being,
that isn't my work). But it is certain (because it has been said so and I know it) that what goes on on the
earth has repercussions throughout the universe. Sitting there, you live the everyday life with its usual
insignificance, its unimportance, its lack of interest... and it's a WONDERFUL field of experiences, of
innumerable experiences, not only innumerable but as varied as can be, from the most subtle to the
most material, without leaving your body. Only, you should have RETURNED to it. You cannot have
authority over your body without having left it.
Once the body is no longer you at all, once it is something that has been added and TACKED onto
you, once it is that way and you look at it from above (a psychological "above"), then you can come
down into it again as its all-powerful master.
You must come out of it first, then come down again.
There you are.
And one should also look at all those difficulties, all those bad habits (like, for you, that habit of
revolt: it's something that seems to have been kneaded into the cells of your body), one should look at
all that with the smile of someone who says, "I am not that. Oh, this was put on me!... Oh, that was
added...." And you know, it was added... because it's one of the victories you must win.

I've witnessed the most complete panorama of all the idiotic things in this life, 134 they were shown
to me as in a complete panorama: passing from one to another, seeing each of them separately and how
they combined with each other. And then: Why? Why should one choose this? (A child's question,
which one asks immediately.) And immediately, the answer: "But the more" (let's say "central" to be
clearer) "the more central the origin and the more pure in its essence, the greater the 'ignoble
complexity below,' as we could call it. Because the lower down you go, the more it takes an essential
light to change things."
Once you've been told this very nicely, you're satisfied, you stop worrying - it's all right, you take
things as they are: "That's how things are, it's my work and I do it; I ask only one thing, it is to do my
work, all the rest doesn't matter."
There, mon petit.
Oh, you've made me chatter away!

November 23, 1963
Kennedy has been assassinated, that means the possibility of war.
He was one of the instruments for the establishment of peace - it's a setback for the entire political
history of the earth.
But probably, it means basically that things weren't ready: some parts would have been overlooked.
But I had been told this a few weeks ago, last month, while I was conducting a general survey. I
heard someone who said ("someone" is a manner of speaking, I know who it is): Kennedy won't be
able to do it. I thought the instrument was too small, I didn't think of this.
And then five of our air force chiefs have been killed in a helicopter crash - helicopters never crash,
and they were the best possible pilots. It's an act of sabotage - the Communists are doing a lot of
sabotage. So that makes two accidents in a row.
But these accidents always occur at the time of Kali, in November - October and November.
November and February.
February, too?
Revolutions, big strikes, dangerous INNER events are always just before February 21. And the
catastrophes of this kind in November - always.
Sri Aurobindo too used to say that the most difficult period in the year was November to February.
(silence)
134Mother is referring to her own life.

We must broaden and endure, that's all. That's the only lesson there is to learn: broadening and
endurance - going on and on and on enduring.
As for the accident here [the five army chiefs], those killed were first-rate pilots. There is every
indication that it's an act of sabotage. It's the same thing again.
The Communists here sabotage everywhere (they sabotage the mail too, that's a nuisance), they
sabotage a lot, sabotage everywhere.
Anyway, there we are, we have only to wait, endure, and broaden more and more.
(silence)
Kennedy won't be able to do it.... According to the American constitution, the vice-president
automatically becomes president, the next minute; and this vice-president symbolized the opposition to
Kennedy. And within his own party, among the Democrats, there was already a division.
Well.
So, what have you brought me?
Nothing, Mother, except Agenda conversations.
That will soon sound repetitious - things are moving fast.
(silence)
You were better yesterday, weren't you?
Yes, better.
I even felt something lifted: I pressed and pressed hard, and whoops! it lifted.
But I feel quite a dark shadow following me.
Still?
Not like in the past.
No. You know, what lends force to the opposition is superstitious ignorance - superstitious in the sense
of a sort of faith or at least of belief in Destiny, in Fate. It's ingrained, as if woven into the human
substance. They have the same superstition, the same superstitious belief in what is favorable to them
as in what is unfavorable; in the divine Power as in the adverse power - it's the SAME attitude. And
that's why the divine Power doesn't have its full force, and also precisely why the adverse force has so
much power over them, because it's absolutely a movement of Falsehood, of Ignorance - of total
Ignorance.
Recently, I was following the thing down to the smallest detail, in everybody's mentality. Even in
those who have read Sri Aurobindo, who have studied Sri Aurobindo, who have understood, who have
come into contact with that region of light, it's still there - it's still there. It's very... yes, it's very tightly
woven into the most outward and material part of the consciousness. It's a kind of submissiveness,
which may be quite rebellious, but which gives a sense, as you said, of something hanging over your
head and shoulders: a sort of Fate, of Destiny.

So there is the good destiny and the bad destiny; there is a divine force which one regards as
something entirely beyond understanding, whose designs and aims are perfectly inexplicable, and the
submission, the surrender consists in accepting - blindly - all that happens. One's nature revolts, but
revolts against an Absolute against which it is helpless. And all of that is Ignorance. Not one of all
those movements is true - from the most intense revolt to the blindest submission, it's all false, not one
true movement.
I don't know if it's in Sri Aurobindo's writings (I don't remember), but I hear very strongly (not for
me, for mankind):

AWAKE AND WILL
Naturally men take "will" for their own whims, which have nothing to do with a will - they're all
impulses.
"To will" means "to will with the supreme Will." And it's as if it were the key that opens the door to
the future:

AWAKE AND WILL
But beware of willing the wrong way because that's no longer a will, it's a whim - don't confuse the
two. Will with the supreme Will.
We shouldn't hunch our shoulders - it makes us grumble terribly within ourselves and it's useless.
Oh, (Mother holds up her head) that feeling of the head rising above all that, of emerging above...
But we're so totally enslaved to very small things - the very small things of the body: its needs (or
supposed needs). I see all the entreaties that come from everywhere, and it all revolves around the same
thing (even those who think they've understood that the consciousness must be general - not collective,
but terrestrial - they're slaves to the reactions of their body), it all revolves around two things: sleepfood-sleep-food-sleep... (Mother draws a circle). Even with those who profess that they have "no
interest" in those things, they still have the power to cause reactions in their consciousness: a sleepless
night or poor digestion, or an upset digestive system - there you are. It has the power to weigh down on
their faith and to take away its capacity of action. It's a kind of attachment - an involuntary and
mechanical attachment - to that need for sleep and that need for food. And I don't mean people who
love to eat or lazy people who like to sleep - I don't even mean that, which is all the way down, that's
not it: I mean those who aren't interested in food and would really like to replace sleep with something
else, something more interesting, even those - all, all, all of them.
And even this body, which has been worked on and kneaded for years... It's in the subconscient of
the body. And so that was the answer, it was said to the body:
AWAKE AND WILL
(silence)
And as usual, it was full of humor. Something said: "You grumble all the time, you moan all the time,

you complain all the time, what's the use? - AWAKE AND WILL!"
And that submissiveness, you know, that acceptance of the worst, with the idea that it comes from
the Lord! Not only that, but almost imagining the worst as a trial, as a test to find out if you're really
surrendered - that's another stupidity! If you need to imagine such things in order to find out if you
really haven't revolted, it means there is still somewhere the germ or residue of revolt.
And the fear of being selfish, the fear of being rebellious - it means it's still there, otherwise you
wouldn't have that fear.
(silence)
We are so small, so small. The smaller we are, the more we revolt. We want to break everything
because we are so small - when you are vast, you don't need to break anything. You only have to be.
AWAKE AND WILL

November 27, 1963
I spent the whole night with Sri Aurobindo, all night long, it was really very interesting.... But I don't
remember now.
It stays, but not as a mental memory, not at all: as the feeling of an atmosphere - very interesting.
There was something about China, something about America, something about... all the time,
everywhere, everywhere. As though he had realized a certain thing through my experience on earth;
and there is an action which he does accordingly, and then the result everywhere.
A mass of things - very interesting.
(silence)
People want me to talk about Kennedy's death - I refused.
There was a poor Negro here, very nice, who did all his studies in America, and who used to send
me letters, sometimes as many as two a day. His country has just been liberated, it's one of those
countries... Nigeria, I think, and his ambition is to work so that his country will be one of the first ready
for the transformation - a great ambition. And I received a cable from him the day Kennedy was shot,
praying for my help. It's very touching.
But it has triggered all kinds of things - in fact, that's in part why I had that long presence of Sri
Aurobindo and that long work. As though it had served to trigger one of the movements of
transformation of the earth.
There are landmarks of that kind.... I had told you, you remember, how that great Asura (who in
fact was the first born; it's for him that I had built a subtle body) had said he was going to China and

that China's revolution (a long time ago!) would signal the beginning of the work of transformation of
the earth.135 Those things are like milestones on a road, and the Chinese revolution was like the first
milestone, opening up the road. Well, Kennedy's assassination is one of those signs, one of the
landmarks - I've been told this.
(silence)
I remember having asked, "But the earth, the human earth, is it really still so tamasic that it needs tragic
events of the sort to awaken its consciousness?..." And I was answered, "Still far more tamasic than
you think."
The intelligences that have emerged into a higher light are like stars scattered over a perfectly dark
sky - perfectly dark.
But this "trigger" you mention, Kennedy's death, will it precipitate things in the sense of a "shakeup"?
Yes. Its effect is like an electrical discharge that shakes up the tamas, shakes up inertia.
It's like in Savitri, when he speaks of the "consciousness that fell asleep in the dust"... the divine
Consciousness that fell asleep in the dust of its creation (I am embroidering). The divine
Consciousness, the eternal Mother, that is, fell asleep in the dust of her creation; somebody wakes her
up, and She realizes (this isn't from Sri Aurobindo!), She realizes (laughing) that it's the supreme Lord
who shook her! So She does everything, all sorts of extraordinary things, anything to stop Him from
going away! (Mother takes up "Savitri")
She reposes motionless in its dust of sleep.
(II.VI.180)
Then:
For
him
she
leaped
forth
To move here in a stark unconscious world.

from

the

sunlight

of

unseen

Vasts

And then:
In
beauty
she
treasures
Ashamed of her rich cosmic poverty....

the

his

smile.

Splendid!
And
In
Only
And

woos
his
figures
to
keep
him

large-eyed
wandering
thoughts
to
dwell
of
her
million-impulsed
Force.
attract
her
veiled
companion
close
to
her
breast
in
her
world-cloak

135See Agenda III. January 15, 1962, p. 44.

Lest
from
her
arms
he
turn
Is her heart's business and her clinging care.

to

his

formless

peace,

(II.VI.131)
(silence)
You know, that Russian woman who went up into the stratosphere 136 (she went around the earth several
times, I don't know how many), anyway she came on a visit to India and gave a lecture somewhere
about her journey. And she said (in a very lovely way, it seems, I don't know her exact words) that she
saw the earth from up there and that it was so beautiful, so magnificent! And she made this reflection:
"From up there, there are no demarcations between countries, it makes so harmonious a unity that it
seems unthinkable men should fight among themselves." That's lovely....
Of course, as soon as you go high enough, there's a unity, a whole, which is so beautiful and
without divisions - "Why do men fight?"
It struck people very much.
(silence)
People still need death, drama, illness - it's a shame.
***
A little later:

For some time, I had been encountering in N. a sort of resistance to the Action. Whenever he entered
the atmosphere (Mother makes the gesture of banging against a wall), it resisted terribly. And I didn't
have any intention other than to make it give way, in other words, I confined myself to the inner action
(gesture indicating the Force at work). Then, as it happened, he fell ill. Yesterday, he came as every
day, but he wasn't well. So I told him, "Listen, go downstairs, shut yourself up in your room, enter
Sachchidananda and don't move from it." (He is quite capable of doing it.) In the evening, the doctor
came and told me that N. had a very high fever: He is restless. The fever was too high. I thought, "The
resistance is even stronger than I thought." At night, when I went to bed, I began to concentrate on him
to see, and I saw him surrounded by a kind of black crust, which obviously comes from the fact that he
isn't used to purifying himself as things come onto him from outside (me too, for example, I would be
surrounded by a black cuirass, absolutely coal black, if I didn't do my work of purification all the time,
all the time, all the time). So I saw this, and did what was needed. And this morning, the fever had
dropped. But the interesting thing is that when he came this morning, he told me this: "Last night I had
a vision: I suddenly found myself entirely surrounded by coal, a thick crust of coal, and I wanted to get
rid of it and get out of it. I looked at my hands, I had nothing in them, so I thought, 'How can I do it? I
have nothing to do it with.' And instantly, I saw the crust begin to crumble and crumble and crumble
into dust and... gone! And this morning, I feel weak and tired, but it's over."
It's a minimum of distortion.
From time to time, I have examples like that, where the experience corresponds almost exactly. I
136Yalentina V. Tereshkova (on June 6, 1963).

mean, one's idiosyncrasy, the individual distortion, doesn't interfere: every individual has his own
distortion... what's the word?... I know that it ends with "-syncrasy" (it was translated in me as "idiotsyncrasy," but I am not sure if that's the word!).
It's a minimum of distortion. I am forever studying, in the body, the difference between THE Thing
and its transcription. It's very interesting. Very subtle - very subtle. And it takes a mere nothing for it
not to be the True Thing any more.

November 30, 1963
(After a meditation with Mother)
Do you believe in Muses?
In Muses?!... [Satprem is taken aback]... I believe in inspiration.
Because I saw... It was so precise, so concrete, material, that for a moment I wondered whether it was
physical or not. There was only the arm and shoulder of someone who stood behind you, but veiled,
that is, as if behind a mist so as not to be seen. It was a woman's arm, very young, a very milky white,
and a little rounded - not fat (!), but without angles. There was a hand and an arm, very white-skinned
- a milky white - and I could see the beginning of a sort of silver dress. She had words and sheets of
paper, and she was arranging words on the sheets, and then the words were written in black on the
sheets - she had the words and the sheets separately, and she arranged the words on the sheets and then
put the sheets in front of you. She was standing behind you. But not a vague and imprecise vision, it
was very, very material.... (smiling) So I wondered if you have a Muse?
It was only her right arm - she wasn't very tall, but very young, and a shape without angles (I can't
say plump!), a well-rounded shape. And with her small fingers she took the words and arranged them
on the sheets, then when it was arranged (the sheets weren't covered all over with words: in places
only), she put the sheet in front of you.
It lasted a long time.
A Muse...
It was a being from the subtle physical, she didn't seem human at all.
And there were no letters: the words were ready-made, she took them and arranged them; then
when there was a certain number of them on the paper, she would put the paper in front of you.
(silence)

So there's someone helping you.137
(silence)
At night, I often see beings who are like the genii of literary form - I've seen quite a number of them
lately. Oh, they are extremely interested in small points and details of form so it may be very
harmonious and exact at the same time. I surprised some (two or three together) almost arguing about
the best way to say a certain thing. So it means you must be in the company of people like that.
They are certainly the beings that were in the past taken for the Muses, the genii of inspiration.
They are the genii of the form. Not so much for what has to be said as for the way to say it.
They are a pleasant company; there is a sense of harmony, something that doesn't clash. It's a
company that gives the feeling that everything unfolds harmoniously - which isn't all that common!

137Satprem is at the moment working on the final revision of his book on Sri Aurobindo.

December

December 3, 1963
(Regarding the difficulties of certain disciples)
...But anyway, it's settling down - we are in the years of settling down. Everyone is caught by his own
illusion - it's always the mirage of an illusion. She [Y.] is convinced, it is her very deep belief, that she
is causing the Supermind to descend upon earth. And many, many people among those I know are
caught by that illusion; so they go off at a tangent far away from the Truth, towards a "fabulous"
realization.
Pride, vanity - that's the worst trap. And when they feel that sort of vital force in them [as Y. does],
they believe all at once that they have caught the Thing....
The farther I go, the more I feel the opposite: I find everything poor - so very poor.
Oh, but when you are sincere and look at things straight, you find yourself frightfully poor to express
what has to be expressed.
For sure!
But that's the ego's last days, the last stage. When it's gone, you are no longer anything! (Mother
laughs) In other words, you don't have that feeling of being something bad or good - it's all gone. You
have such a feeling of ONE existence, and all the rest... all the rest is something that has become
twisted like that, twisted in the consciousness. That's becoming so concrete....
(silence)
December 2nd was interesting - sports day138 : the day before, the 1st, the weather was wonderful, and
insofar as I gave it thought I was convinced that on the 2nd it would be just as fine. But in the morning
I saw it was nothing of the sort, and as the day went by, it became worse and worse. In the beginning
my first movement was to say to myself, "Well, I didn't see to it, I should have given it thought," but
then I saw that was absurd. Then I told the Lord, "Why are You doing this? It's not very nice! Those
children have worked so hard, they have taken great pains...." And just as I said it, the consciousness
was looking at what I said, smiling, "Oh, my! How silly still to be that way!" And then there was yet
another thing (it's becoming very, very complete), something that wasn't exactly the Lord, but like an
expression of the Lord, telling me (not with words, of course, but... how can I explain?... Sri Aurobindo
describes it very well in the "Yoga of Self-Perfection": it's a very new thing which has to do with
action, feeling, sensation and consciousness all at the same time; it's all of them together - none of
those things, yet all of them), so it was there, telling me (I am putting it into words, but that distorts it
entirely), "So what! What if it's a test, what do you have to say about it?" So immediately in the
consciousness here - the consciousness at work here - the thought awakened, "Ah, it has to become a
138The Ashram's yearly sports performance, which took place this year in a lashing rain.

test, then. In THEIR consciousness it has to become a test." (Because at first I had made a kind of
attempt to stop the rain; then I saw it didn't correspond to the Truth and that the rain had to be accepted
- why accepted?... To do nothing after having worked so hard? And to accept is easy, it's nothing, it's
not interesting, nothing new.) So a test, all right. If they take it as a test, they will go through it
victoriously and it will be very good. And all the time, I was so concentrated on them [at the sports
ground] that I no longer knew what I was doing or where I was. It lasted from 4 P.M. to 8 P.M. Around
8 P.M., I received the news: they had gone on with the performance just the same, the important
visitors had remained till the end, so ultimately it was a real success.
There was only one difficulty: the little children, who cannot be conscious of a test, of course, and
who remained four and a half hours in the rain.... I didn't want it to do any damage - there were about a
hundred small ones, tiny tots. I spent the night in concentration to bring into their material sensation the
true reaction (because, for a short while, children love rain, they have a lot of fun in it), so I said to
myself, "That part of their consciousness should predominate so there is no damage." And I waited for
the day after. The day after, no one was sick.
Then I received a letter from M., the captain, saying that they had felt it was a test, the lila139 of the
Lord (he called it "the lila of the universal Mother") and asking me if it was true. I was happy and
answered him that it was true and that I was happy. And everyone told me, "They were wonderful." As
if doing that performance in the rain had given rise to a kind of will in them, and they were remarkable:
everybody was enthusiastic. So instead of saying to the Lord, "That's not nice," I thanked Him heartily!
And I laughed, I thought, "There you have it! It's always that way...."
And all the experiences come in that way (Mother makes a round, global gesture). It can't be
expressed with words; there are a hundred things that come together like that, and which... (gesture of
round movements within that round totality), and then there is the sense of a light (which might be like
a will, but not a will formulated with words), a light that moves within it all and arranges it all, then
produces a result - which isn't one small thing, one point or one thing: it's a mass of things; and it's
always moving, always in motion, always in a kind of progression towards a more perfect
reorganization. And the sense of individual action, of individual participation, of individual will, seems
so IDIOTIC that it's absolutely impossible to have it. Even if one tried, one couldn't. Once one LIVES
that... the whole sense of individual importance in all that seems so STUPID, you know, that it's
absolutely impossible to think that way or feel that way.
I would like to be able to pass this experience on to others, because, well, it's definitive: once you
LIVE that for several hours, it's over, you can no longer entertain any illusion, 140 it's not possible - it's
impossible, it's so STUPID, you know! Above all, so silly, so flat - it's impossible (Mother makes the
same gesture of a round, moving totality). But then you cannot say, "I said this, the other answered
that"! How can we express ourselves?... Our language is still truly inadequate. It's not that way... it's...
(same round gesture) and there isn't even either sense or direction: it's not that this goes that way and
that goes this way (gesture from one person to another, or from inside to outside), or that it goes this
way and comes back that way (gesture from low to high and high to low), that's not it; it's... a whole... a
whole that moves, moves always forward, and with internal vibrations, internal movements. So
according to the given point of concentration, this or that action is done.
Very long ago, many times over, when I looked at the universe (I don't mean the earth: the
universe), it was that way (same gesture of a round totality). How can I put it?... It gave the feeling of
moving forward, of moving forward towards a progressive perfection. For years on end, my perception
139Lila: the divine play.
140The egoistic illusion.

of the earth has been that way; and now, it takes place completely at will, in the sense that it takes only
just a small movement in the consciousness (gesture of a trigger or a slight reversal, a drawing within)
for the whole earth to move that way, along with the events and the inner complications. But now, that
same consciousness of the whole works that way: when it thinks of something (for some reason of
work, not because of an arbitrary decision), the thing imposes itself; it's a whole set of things that
presents itself as the TOTALITY on which the action must take place. So it may be a small thing like
this sports festival, it may be the Ashram (very often the Ashram as a whole), it may be a part of the
earth, or sometimes even a single individual (who is no longer an "individual" but a set or a world of
things, a totality141 ). A totality of things (round gesture) that move within themselves in... (Mother
draws within that totality small movements, individual and local, like waves or currents of force). Oh,
it's most interesting! And even there, there is no more notion of this person, that person, so-and-so - all
that vanishes.
But when you have to speak, what can you do?... You can't spend all your time explaining it all;
besides, it's unintelligible for whoever hasn't lived it.
Look, we were just talking about Y. I was seeing a kind of small world (again that same round,
moving gesture), and there were all sorts of things within it that went like this and like that (Mother
draws spirals within that roundness), and then there was a falsehood (laughing): it was the
consciousness she had of herself! It took hold of everything and distorted the movement.
But when you express yourself, you speak with the usual words and the usual language.... Because
to express one minute of that consciousness, it would almost take a book to make yourself understood -
even then you wouldn't be understood.
But in this case, on December 2nd, the thing was observed very attentively, because it was a limited
field, and it lasted a certain number of hours (all the other occupations went on automatically, without
interfering with the active consciousness, with the observation).
(silence)
I had another interesting example, with a visitor: a German industrial magnate, it seems. I had seen his
photo and found there was something in him - I had him come. He entered the room and came in front
of me: he didn't know what to do (no one had told him anything). So I looked at him and put some
force (Mother slowly lowers her hand), a little, progressively. And all at once... (at first he was quite
official, it was MISTER So-and-so who was there), all at once his left hand began to rise, like this
(gesture of a hand clenched as in trance), all the rest was absolutely still. When I saw that, I smiled and
withdrew the force, then let him go. It seems he went downstairs, went into Sri Aurobindo's room and
started weeping. Afterwards, the next day, he wrote to me and told me in German English that I had
been "too human": "Why have you been too human?" He wanted his being to be DESTROYED in
order to be born again to the true life.
That interested me. I thought, "Oh, he felt it, he was conscious both of the force and of my
withdrawing it." I answered him, "True, I spared you, but because it was your first visit! Prepare
yourself, I will see you again."
You see, he came in as a big industrial person with a remarkable power of mental creation that
organizes events - that's what entered the room - and then... it melted. And I didn't put the full charge:
I simply put some power like this (Mother lowers her hand), and I was looking him in the face. Then I
felt something going on lower down; I looked: his hand was tightly clenched. So I stopped.
141Mother often said that every individual belongs to a particular type and that through a single individual she could reach
thousands of individuals of the same type.

But the remarkable thing is that he was CORRECTLY conscious.
And he complained.
***
(Just before leaving)
We still have two difficult months ahead. Because it's not going to change abruptly on January 1st
(people think that everything will change at one stroke - that's not true). Two difficult months;
afterwards, I think we'll begin to... (gesture of loosening a grip).
You feel that the slightest slackening and, plop! you go tumbling down again. So then you have to
climb up again. Anyway...
But you climb faster - you climb faster.

December 7, 1963
(Mother first reads a letter by Sri Aurobindo:)
"The way to get faith and all things else is to insist on having them and refuse to flag or
despair or give up until one has them - it is the way by which everything has been got since
this difficult earth began to have thinking and aspiring creatures upon it. It is to open always,
always to the Light and turn one's back on the Darkness. It is to refuse the voices that say
persistently, "You cannot, you shall not, you are incapable, you are the puppet of a dream," -
for these are the enemy voices, they cut one off from the result that was coming, by their
strident clamour and then triumphantly point to the barrenness of the result as a proof of
their thesis. The difficulty of the endeavour is a known thing, but the difficult is not the
impossible - it is the difficult that has always been accomplished and the conquest of
difficulties makes up all that is valuable in the earth's history. In the spiritual endeavour also
it shall be so."
Sri Aurobindo
You see, they cut one off from the result that WAS coming... by their strident clamour and then
triumphantly point to the barrenness of the result as a proof of their thesis! And it's so TRUE, it's an
experience I've had so many, many times, not only for myself, but for lots of people.
***

I think ("I think," like the scientists' "it appears") I can announce that something is getting organized in
the Subconscient - it's beginning to get organized - in the subconscient of individuals as well as in the
general Subconscient. It's less unconscious (!) It's a bit more... yes, a bit more conscious, reflective and
organized - a very faint beginning of organization, very little, but a growth in consciousness; it isn't
quite so unconscious any more.
It's always the last part of the night that I spend there.... You remember that story of the supramental
ship and how things were organized by the will, not by external means? Well, that's the action which is
beginning to exist in the Subconscient.
Last night, for instance, early in the morning, there were several layers of cells, 142 as it were, and
each cell was I can't say the property, but the possession of someone: what was under his direct control
and reflected his "mood," as it is customarily called, his way of being. And there were many levels: you
could go upstairs and downstairs.... And the impression I had of myself was that I was much, much
taller and that I towered above it all; and I had a different texture, as if I were made of a different
substance, not quite the same as the others'. It was as if all that were inside me without being inside me
(I can't explain): I was looming over everything and at the same time acting inside. And then, according
to the action, people were going upstairs or downstairs, going and coming; but everyone had his own
little box - they were BEGINNING to have it, it was beginning to get organized. Each cell was more or
less precise: some were very precise, others more blurred, as if on the way to becoming precise. And
the whole experience, last night, had a kind of precision about it. I was like something very big,
outside, and I was laughing, talking to everyone, but they weren't aware of the action [of Mother]. You
see, they seemed to me this tall (gesture: four inches), tiny. But quite alive: they were going and
coming, moving about.... And I was talking to them, but they didn't know where the voice was coming
from. So I laughed, I found it funny, I said to some, "There! You see, that's your idea of things." And it
was... oh, if I compare it to last year, there is a tremendous difference of CONSCIOUSNESS, from the
point of view of consciousness. Before, all the movements were reflexes, instincts, as if people were
impelled by a force which they were totally unconscious of and considered to be their "character," most
of the time, or else Destiny (either their character or Fate, Destiny). They were all like puppets on
strings. Now, they are conscious beings - they're BEGINNING, they're beginning to be conscious.
The proportion has changed.
And I was able to show them precisely the proportion between the conscious, willed movement,
which can be observed, and that sort of almost unconscious instinct which obeys a COMPELLING
Force, that is to say, you know neither where it comes from nor what it means or anything - you just
tag along.
Some still had quite blurred and cloudy spaces; with others, it was precise, there were even some
very precise details. And clear, clear: there was a light - the dawning of a light.
If this goes on, it will be fine. It will change a lot of things.
It was in the subconscient of individuals?
Of individuals, yes.
It wasn't their waking consciousness?
No, no! It's not individuals as they know themselves - it is their subconscient. It is in the subconscient.
The subconscient is a realm just as the material world is a realm - it's in the subconscient.
142Mother means structures, not cells in the biological sense.

There have been many efforts, concentrations, meditations, prayers to bring about the clarification
and control of all those semiconscious reflexes that govern individuals - a great concentration on that
point. And this experience seems to be the outcome.
There are lots of things which people don't even take notice of in life (when they live an ordinary
life, they don't take any notice), there's a whole field of things that are absolutely... not quite
unconscious, but certainly not conscious; they are reflexes - reflexes, reactions to stimuli, and so on -
and also the response (a semiconscious, barely conscious response) to the pressure exerted from above
by the Force, which people are totally unconscious of. It is the study of this question which is now in
the works; I am very much occupied with it. A study of every second.... You see, there are different
ways for the Lord to be present, it's very interesting (the difference isn't for Him, it's for us!), and it
depends precisely on the amount of habitual reflex movements that take place almost outside our
observation (generally completely outside it) And this question preoccupied me very, very much: the
ways of feeling the Lord's Presence - the different ways. There is a way in which you feel it as
something vague, but of which you are sure - you are always sure but the sensation is vague and a bit
blurred - and at other times it is an acute Presence 143 (Mother touches her face), very precise, in all that
you do, all that you feel, all that you are. There is an entire range. And then if we follow the movement
(gesture in stages, moving away), there are those who are so far away, so far, that they don't feel
anything at all.
This experience made me write something yesterday (but it has lasted several days), it came as the
outcome of the work done, and yesterday I wrote it both in English and in French:
"There is no other sin, no other vice than to be far from Thee."
Then, the entire world, the universe, appeared to me in that light, and at every point (which takes up no
space), at every point of the universe and throughout the universe, it's that way. Not that there are far
and near places in the universe, that's not what I mean (it's beyond space), but there is a whole
hierarchy of nearness, up to something that doesn't feel and doesn't know - it's not that it is outside,
because nothing can be outside the Lord, but it is as if the extreme limit: so far away, so far, so far -
absolutely black - that He seems not to reach there.
It was a very total vision. And such an acute experience that it seemed to be the only true thing. It
didn't take up any space, yet there was that sensation of nearness and farness. And there was a kind of
Focus, or a Center, I can't say (but it was everywhere), which was the climax of Thee - purely Thee.
And it had a quality of its own. Then it began to move farther and farther away, which produced a kind
of mixture with something... that was nothing - that didn't exist - but that altered the vibration, the
intensity, which made it move farther and farther away to... Darkness - unconscious Darkness.
And something kept coming again and again to me: there is no other sin... (because this followed a
few lines I read in Savitri on the glorification of sin in the vital world, the words came to me because of
that)... there is no other sin, no other vice than to be far from Thee.
It seemed to explain everything.
It wasn't I who wrote it! There's no "I" in it: it comes just like that.
The far from Thee is so, so intense in its vibration, it has a concrete meaning.
And that's the only thing: all the rest, all moral notions, everything, everything, even the notion of
Ignorance... it all becomes mental chatter. But this, this experience, is marvelous. Far from Thee....
143Mother commented on and developed this passage in the following conversation, of December 11.

December 11, 1963
There was in the Subconscient a frightful battle in the night from the 8th to the 9th - oh!... It was like a
return of the attack on me when you went to Rameswaram (long ago 144 ); X said it was a Tantric who
had made that formation (it happened on December 9 too and I was very sick, I didn't go out). Well, it
was an attack of that kind. I don't know if it comes from the same... I can't say "person," but from the
same origin of forces. And very violent, during the night. It went on during the meditation on the 9th:
for the first time during those meditations, there was a tremendous battle, in the Subconscient. And the
body was in a state... a not too happy state. It stops the heart, you see, so... it was unpleasant.
But afterwards, I saw that it did dislodge something, it wasn't useless. It dislodged something. But
it's forces with a radical ill will: they are not merely ignorant - a radical ill will.
But it didn't have a human origin, did it? It wasn't from a human individual?
No, it's not an individual: it's a universal way of being. It's always that way: things aren't positively
impersonal, but they do not belong to one person; they are universal ways of being.
I mean, there was no human instrument, was there?
I wasn't conscious of an instrument, but I was conscious of plenty of spots 145 to which the thing clings.
It clings not even to beings, but to ways of being of beings: to certain tendencies, certain attitudes,
certain reactions - it clings to all that. It's not at all "one" person or "one" will, that's not it, but it's a
way of being. It's all universal ways of being that are destined to disappear from the field of activity
and are being eliminated.
But the reaction on the body was painful, as it was the first time. The first time (according to X and
the Swami), it was supposed to kill me - it didn't even make me seriously ill, but it had a very
unpleasant effect. I told you at the time that it was a mantra intended to drain you of all your blood; I've
seen several examples of people who died in that way: it was found afterwards to be the result of a
mantric formation. In my case, all it succeeded in doing was to make me sick, as if everything came out
- I vomited terribly. Then there was something pulling me and I absolutely had to go... my
consciousness told me I had to go and see someone (I was all alone in my bathroom when it happened),
a particular person whom I had to go and see; and when I opened the door, Z was there, waiting to
prepare my bath, but I didn't see him at all and I absolutely wanted to go somewhere, into the other
room, so I pushed against him, thinking, "What's this obstacle in my way?" And he thought I was
fainting on him! It caused quite a to-do.
144In 1958.
145All those to which the force of ill will clings.

I was completely in trance, you see. I was walking, but completely in trance.
Anyway, things went back to normal fairly quickly at the time. But the other day, the 9th, there was
a return of that attack, as though that ill will hadn't been completely eliminated, completely defeated -
there was a return. It didn't have the same effect, but it was painful. A curious feeling, as if... (I was
sitting at the table, as I always do on mornings when there is meditation), then at the beginning, in
some parts of the body, the cells seemed to be grating. I concentrated, I called, and I saw there was a
battle - a formidable battle being waged down below. It was grating, it's curious. A kind of grating of
things that aren't smooth. And I wondered, "When will it be able to relax?" Then spasms here, at the
solar plexus. And on those days, the doctor and P. always stay here for the meditation; but I was in
trance, in my battle, when suddenly I felt a pressure on my pulse (laughing): it was the doctor, who had
got up from his meditation (I must have been making some strange noises!) and was feeling my pulse -
it seems my pulse was fading! But I didn't come out of my trance (I was conscious, but I didn't come
out of it), I stayed like that till the end of the meditation, even a little afterwards. Then when the grating
diminished, I came out of the trance and saw them both standing in front of me. I gave them a nice
smile and told them, "It's all right." And I lay down. Then I went into a deep trance, completely out of
the body, and everything returned to normal.
Afterwards I took a look. I wasn't too happy: "To do that during the meditation!..." And I was "told"
that it could be done only during the meditation and not at any other time, in activity or even in
concentration, because it's not the same thing: it could be done only in deep meditation. So I said,
"Very well." And I was also shown that there was a concrete result, a kind of partial victory over that
type of ill will - a very, very aggressive ill will, extremely aggressive, which belongs to another age:
it's something that no longer has the right to exist on the earth. It must go.
It's the same thing, moreover, which brought about Kennedy's assassination. And I suppose that's
why I had to intervene. Because Kennedy's assassination has upset many things from the point of view
of the general work. And it was the same thing, because as soon as I had news of the assassination, I
saw the same kind of vibration, the same black force - very, very black - and spontaneously, I said (it
isn't "I" who said it), "Oh, that may mean war." In other words, a victory of that force over the one that
tries to follow more harmonious paths. But I have been protesting and working since then, and what
happened on the 9th is the outcome of it.
But when you're right in it... it isn't comfortable.
***
(Then Mother reads a handwritten note which is the continuation of the experience she related on
December 7, when she spoke of the varying nearness and farness of the Presence.)
I address it to the Lord:
"It
is
as
if
You
vibrated
You lived with the cells...."

You

flowed
with

with
the

the
blood,
nerves,

It isn't "in" or "by": it's "with," it's identified. As if You flowed with the blood. And the sensation was
absolutely concrete: this Presence of the Lord FLOWS with the blood, VIBRATES with the nerves,
and LIVES ("lives," meaning Life, the essence of Life) with the cells.

That's the best time! (Mother laughs)
Well, just recently, since that attack of the 9th, the Presence has increased [in the body]. And that's
how I know that something has been won. I mean it has increased in duration, in frequency, and in the
promptness of its response, of the time needed to get it.
(silence)
The difference between before and after the 9th is that before the 9th there was a constant pressure of
adverse suggestions, as Sri Aurobindo said in that letter we translated last time: "It's all an illusion, it's
all imagination...." A constant harassment. And sometimes it even takes very precise forms: "You think
you're integrally conscious of the Lord - not in the least! It's just a little bit in your head, vaguely, and
so you imagine it's true." When I heard that, it annoyed me very much, and I said, "All right, I'll see."
And it is after that kind of battle in the Subconscient that the voice stopped and I had this experience:
"It flows in the blood, it vibrates in the nerves, it lives in the cells...."
And everywhere, you see, not just my cells, not just the cells of this body: when the experience
comes, it is quite widespread; I have an impression of many bloods, many cells, many nerves.... Which
means that the CENTRAL consciousness isn't always aware of it, the individual isn't always aware of it
(it has an extraordinary feeling, but it doesn't know what it is), while the cells are aware of it, but they
cannot express it.
I felt that several times: when the experience comes, it isn't limited to one body. Only, the
consciousness - the observing consciousness - isn't the same everywhere: there are DEGREES of
consciousness, and here [in Mother's body] it appears to be a MORE CONSCIOUS center of
consciousness, that's all; but otherwise... For the consciousness itself it's that way too: at times it is very
much awake, at other times not so awake.... Ultimately, all this is an experience of Oneness, of
multiplicity in Oneness, and this experience depends on the degree of nearness and intensity. But it is
the all - the all which is one - and seen from the standpoint of the Lord's consciousness.... You know,
what we call "the Lord" is that which is fully conscious of itself; and the more the consciousness
diminishes, the more you feel it's no longer the Lord - but it is the Lord all the same!
That's how it is.
(silence)
When we speak of "perception or knowledge through identity," it is still something that projects itself,
identifies itself and OBSERVES itself while doing so; and it is conscious of the result. But my
experience now isn't like that; it isn't something projecting itself: it's an overall perception. So instead
of being able to say, "You think this way, THIS ONE thinks that way, THAT ONE feels this way," one
thinks it or feels it with more or less clarity in the perception, more or less precision in the perception,
but it's always "one" - you don't feel like saying "I"; there's no "I," it's "one," it's something. Listen, I'll
give you an example: this morning I received that Italian, he started speaking, making gestures, telling
me things - NOT ONE sound reached my ears... yet I knew perfectly well what he was saying. And I
answered him in the same way, without speaking. I didn't feel it was someone else talking to me and
that I was answering him: it was a totality of movements more or less conscious of themselves, a
totality and an exchange, an interchange of movements more or less conscious of themselves, with
some vibrations more conscious, some less conscious, but the whole thing very living, very active. But
then, in order to speak, I would have had to put myself in the ordinary consciousness in which the
Italian was over there and I was here - but it didn't mean anything any more, it wasn't true. So there
was something answering within, very actively, very distinctly, and all of it went on together (gesture
showing movements of consciousness or waves of vibrations), and at the same time, there was a

consciousness - a very, very vast consciousness - which was watching it all [those exchanges of
vibrations] and exerting a sort of control, a very, very slight but very precise control, so as to put each
vibration in its place.
That's how it is now when I see people. And it seems to be becoming more and more constant.
The other state, the state in which there is "me" and "other people," is becoming unpleasant; it
brings things the consciousness disapproves of, reactions the consciousness disapproves of: "Still this?
Still this smallness, still this limitation, still this incomprehension, still this darkness?..." All the time
like that. So, immediately, something within goes like this (gesture of inner reversal), and it becomes
the other way. And the other way is so soft, oh!... So soft, so smooth, without clashes, without friction,
without unpleasant reactions - that's what happened when there was that very painful "grating" during
the meditation on the 9th it was because the individual reactions of the cells were not in accord with the
general harmony.
It's becoming a little interesting. It's a little new.
And there is a kind of joy, an unobtrusive joy, always like a kind of smile... a smile not ironic, but a
little...
Putting it into words takes a sort of contraction, which is a pity - a pity. I don't know when there
will be a means of expressing ourselves without that contraction.... I remember, I am seeing again or
reliving just now the face of that boy, that Italian (he is a thirty-five- or forty-year-old man, but young
within, very young psychically), and there was this consciousness kneading something within, putting
things back into place - but smoothly, without violence or clashes or reactions. And when I told him,
"Now it's time to go," it wasn't at all one person saying to another, "It's time to go," it's as if I said to
myself, "Now it's time to go." It's very odd. Rather new. Because it has become much more conscious;
it had been like that in a sort of natural and spontaneous way of being for a long time, but now it's
becoming conscious.
And when there is... For example, when there is a relaxation in someone, or when there is a tensing
up, I feel it: something in me relaxes, or tenses up; but not "in me" here, like this (Mother in her
armchair): in me THERE (Mother in the "other" person).
And I know the very minute it takes place, you see. But those [tensing up, relaxation] are big
movements, so it becomes obvious, but I realize that it goes on all the time - it's like that all the time.
To the point that what happens in the body isn't (oh, it's been that way for a long time, but it's
becoming more and more that way), isn't familiar like something that happens in a particular body: it's
just one way of being among all the others. It's becoming more and more like that. The reaction here [in
Mother's body] isn't any more intimate than the reaction in others. And it's barely more perceptible: it
all depends on the state of attentiveness and concentration of the consciousness (it's all movements of
consciousness). But the consciousness isn't - is NO LONGER individual AT ALL. I am positive about
that. A consciousness... which is becoming more and more total. And now and then - now and then -
when everything is "favorable," it becomes the Lord's Consciousness, the Consciousness of everything,
and then it's... a drop of Light. Nothing but Light.

December 14, 1963
Did W tell you his experience? No?... He says that lately he had the experience of an extraordinary
force, like a kind of power going out of him through every pore and spreading, and he felt he had an
extraordinary power; it lasted for hours.
A very good experience.
What force?
(Mother smiles) You know, there are, broadly speaking, two categories of people: those who by nature
receive, are receptive; who receive and like to receive and to feel they are receiving; and those who like
to give and like the feeling of giving. So those who like to receive have the experience of receiving,
while those who like to give (laughing) have the experience of giving. But basically, it's all the same
thing: it's the Force circulating. The Force circulates, and you get the feeling... (how can I explain it?)...
it depends on the position of the consciousness with regard to the individual ego.
When I noticed W's difficulties, I put a lot of force on him, a lot, a great concentration to get him
out of that tight corner, because I felt a kind of wavering in him, I felt he wasn't so steady on the path
any more. That's what worried me. So I put a very great concentration of force on him to set him on the
right road again. And, as I said, the Force circulates; it circulates: it isn't something which goes out like
that, like a little beam which you send out, which reaches its goal and stays there - that's not it. It's a
thing (round gesture) that spreads out with waves of concentration. And I've noticed this for everybody
(I did my first study on myself), but the ego must be completely... (gesture of palms upward,
immobile)... must become nonexistent, must stop interfering, at any rate, in order to feel that great,
universal Pulsation.
It is simply the art of putting yourself in the right place in order to be in the path of the Force.
Or else, when you are able to see things from above, you can direct concentrations and channel the
Force, as it were [on people and events]. And I've noticed (since it became a natural fact for me), I've
noticed those two categories of people (with all kinds of nuances and differences): those who are happy
to receive, and who are therefore much more conscious of the moment when the Force comes IN, and
those (they are generous by nature, but also dominating) who are happier when they have a feeling of
giving; so they are far more conscious of the Movement when it goes out of their individuality.
That's just what I knew of W's nature: the ego in him is that he likes to be a guru - that's when one
is quite egoistic, but as one grows less so, there still remains that aspect of the nature that makes one
more inclined to give than to receive. And as I had made a very strong concentration, quite naturally he
felt the force going out of him.
I didn't tell him anything, I simply said it was a very good experience: an experience "that was
given to you" or "that you were given" (all that impersonal, as impersonal as possible). I am very glad
when people do not tell me, "You did this, you did that..." because immediately I feel that sort of little
limitation which is so childish - intellectuals would call it "idolatry"! (Mother laughs) I don't like that.
I was very happy with W's experience. I also saw it was very sincere - naturally he feels filled with
force! "But do not attach any importance to where it comes from, it doesn't matter! The Force is there."
It's true - in a way, it's true.
(silence)
You know that toy that makes images when it is turned? A kaleidoscope. All the little pieces arrange
themselves to form patterns - there's a lot of that in the way forces organize themselves and play.

What I told you last time is still going on and intensifying. But sometimes, at a given moment, a
movement comes to me, some reaction, for instance, and something complains (all this is in the
BODY's consciousness), the body says, "Oh, I haven't got beyond that, what a wretched shame!" So
immediately, there is an answer, and an answer which... It's odd, it doesn't come from one place, it
comes from everywhere; and the body's protest also doesn't come from one place: it isn't ONE thing or
ONE body that protests, it's a way of being; a terrestrial way of being which is expressed by: "Oh, I am
still like that!" And the immediate answer: "But don't you see, don't you see the usefulness of it?" Then
I am shown a whole tangled web of movements, vibrations, reactions, actions, all of it; and on one
small spot there is a need for a small force: there is a small, slightly inert thing which serves as a
support for something else - and then everything becomes clear, everything falls into place! You see so
clearly it is egoism; egoism which wants personal, individual perfection: instead of wanting overall
progress, it wants personal progress, it still makes breaks where there are none, separations where they
do not exist. And you see how a movement going through [Mother] should be accepted when that is its
place and when it is the right time for it to be useful, so that the WHOLE may follow its road - it's
very, very interesting.
That way, you can gauge precisely how much is left of the old habit of personal reaction, especially
in the emotive part of the universal being: it's the emotive part that still remains the most personal, even
more so than the purely physical, material part. As soon as the emotive part comes into play, it
"personalizes," because it ENJOYS individual reactions; it is the part that LOVES to feel it loves, that
LOVES to feel its own emotions, and because of it there remains a faint personal coloration. And when
there occurs a somewhat darker or backward movement, the body is indignant and doesn't understand
that it's part of the whole, that the whole must go forward together and you can't separate a piece of it to
perfect it - it can't be done! It's impossible. It's not that it shouldn't be done - it CANNOT be done.
Everything goes together.
(silence)
But since the 9th (the experience of the 9th at this table), there has been a considerable change -
considerable.
(silence)
Do you have anything?
I can read you what you said last time....
Oh, now....
Is it worth the trouble?!
(Satprem does not agree)
If the expression becomes clear enough to be understandable, the present phase of the experience may
be interesting for others, no? I have the feeling it could help break a few limits.
Certainly.
Yes, but it has to be understandable, really understandable - I am not sure it is. Because when I talk to
you, I communicate to you the vibration of the experience, so insofar as you are receptive, you feel it.

But it doesn't pass into the printed words - very little, very, very little.
People read with their heads, with their brains.
I see someone like N., who obviously is an exceptional subject in the sense that he vibrates with the
intellectual vibration (Sri Aurobindo used to say, and it is obvious, that of all those around him, he was
the one who understood best), well, even for him... it goes off at a tangent. It's not that he understands
nothing, but it's at a tangent. It's a mitigated understanding, very slightly distorted, and which relates
everything to the sense of the person, of the [Mother's] individual, so the thing loses all the ESSENCE
of its value.... What I would like to be able to communicate is precisely that absence of individual. But
when I express myself, I am forced to say "I," the sentence always has a personal turn, and that's what
people see. When I have my experience, it is there, living; you yourself feel it, and with a little
movement of adaptation you eliminate the distortion that comes from the language, but others don't do
it.
The best way to communicate your experience would be to give some of these recordings for people
to hear, because then the thing is pure, it's you, YOUR vibration.
Not quite, but anyway, almost.
That's what would best convey your experience.
It would be worthwhile to make the experiment, one day. We'll see.
If one day I can find the expression...
I still feel I am struggling with the old way of speaking, I haven't found yet. It's this obligation of
talking "as a person" - what can be done?... But, for instance, Sri Aurobindo would know very well
how to speak while doing away with all that sense of personality.
The night before last, almost all of it, was spent with him - all kinds of very interesting things. They
are mostly impressions. Extremely interesting impressions. And I understood an entire aspect of the
creation....
The way the world is now physically organized, with the difference and specialization in the forms,
in sexes, encourages a kind of opposition between the two poles, the union of which results in creation.
So, naturally, each pole has enormous difficulty understanding the other (although it thinks and
believes it does), especially understanding the pole I place underneath (gesture signifying the basis of
the world), which is the effectively creative pole, that is to say, what is expressed by woman. She feels
very well that without this (gesture above) the full understanding isn't there; but this, which is above,
doesn't AT ALL understand the creative power of that which is below - it knows it in principle, but
doesn't understand it. And there is a lack of adaptation, a sort of conflict, which shouldn't exist. It never
existed - never - between Sri Aurobindo and me, but I could see it didn't exist because he had adopted
the attitude of complete surrender to the eternal Mother (the stage, in the creation, of complete
surrender). I would see it, and it embarrassed me! It embarrassed me, I thought, "But why does he think
he has to do that (laughing), as if I couldn't understand!" On the contrary, I thirst for the other attitude -
for identifying myself this way instead of that way (Mother presses her fist upward against her hand
above): for identifying myself from below upward instead of from above downward. It was an
aspiration, which has been there... almost for eternities... for the universal creative Force to identify
itself with the Creator. And to identify itself not through the descent of the Creator, but through the
ascent of the Force - the conscious ascent. But Sri Aurobindo willed it that way, so it was that way...
and then I was very busy with my work. For the thirty years we lived together, it went on that way,
perfectly smoothly; and I kept my aspiration quiet because I knew that it was his will. But since he left

and I was obliged to do his work, so to speak, things have changed. But I didn't in the least want the
Creator, because of my taking up the work, to be obliged to adapt himself to the creative Force (that
won't do at all!), and my whole aspiration has been for the creative Force to consciously BECOME the
Creator. It's becoming increasingly that way. And at the last meeting [with Sri Aurobindo], for a time
(not the whole time, but some time), it was that way. Then I understood; it made me understand the
play of all the forces in the two elements - the two poles - and how they could be joined, through what
process that opposition could disappear so that the total Being might exist.
We're on the way. And it's growing clearer and clearer. It will be tremendously interesting. But
that's for later on.
Increasingly (but it began long ago, after Sri Aurobindo left), it is growing, perfecting itself,
becoming precise and increasingly conscious: the difference is fading away, the opposition is
disappearing altogether, and the possibility is growing of identifying oneself with the other - the other
attitude, the one I deliberately call "from above."
Naturally, in human beings, the two are extremely mixed up. Among all the human beings you
cannot find two who are one really male and the other really female - that doesn't exist. It's very, very
mixed. But the goal is a totality; a totality in which each thing is in its place and plays its part, not in
opposition but in perfect union - in identity. And the key to this is beginning to come.
But the difficulties are still there, and they're very subconscious.
It's very interesting.
(silence)
The thing that resists the most on the terrestrial level (perhaps even on the universal level) is that zone
(which is more pronounced in the earth's atmosphere), the emotive zone. I had the clear perception that
it CLINGS to its emotions, it ENJOYS its emotions. This counteracts the effort towards perfection,
towards perfect unity - the pleasure of emotions.
There was an experience for a few seconds, with the clear vision and immediate action of the
supreme Force over this [the emotive zone], but the experience wasn't sufficient so it could be noted
down.
(silence)
Those things, which are ESSENTIAL conquests and advances and are happening now, take a long,
long time to materialize [on earth].... What can be done to make them materialize faster? I don't know.
It's still the same problem as that of Identity I told you about the other day, the nearness to the
center: identity, then nearness, then a greater and greater farness - that's why it takes time. To go right
to the end takes a long, long time.
(silence)
Sri Aurobindo wrote somewhere, I don't remember where (I am translating, it's not the exact sentence):
"The body's cells must burn with the divine Flame."
It's obviously somewhere where he explains transformation. The body's cells must burn with the
divine Flame. And you feel it - you FEEL it. It's when they begin to be aflame, to burn with a flame
that is clearer and clearer, purer and purer... - when all the smoke is gone.

December 18, 1963
(Mother reads a letter by Sri Aurobindo:)
"It is equally ignorant and one thousand miles away from my teaching to find it in your
relations with human beings or in the nobility of the human character or an idea that we are
here to establish mental and moral and social Truth and justice on human and egoistic lines. I
have never promised to do anything of the kind. Human nature is made up of imperfections,
even its righteousness and virtue are pretensions, imperfections and prancings of a selfapprobatory egoism.... What is aimed at by us is a spiritual truth as the basis of life, the first
words of which are surrender and union with the Divine and the transcendence of ego. So
long as that basis is not established, a sadhak is only an ignorant and imperfect human being
struggling with the evils of the lower nature."
I want to offer it to an American admiral who is here and who needs to know this.
Did you meet him?
No. But ALL Westerners! The highest they can conceive of is always social work....
Yes, a kind of social perfection on earth.
It's Schweitzer, Gandhi, Philanthropy, Charity....
To them, the Supermind would be the reign of a harmonious equality of all classes and all countries -
at the most, a union of all countries and all classes. That's the summit of their dream.
I like this letter, because he says, "I have NEVER promised anything of the kind." This is to me the
important point.

December 21, 1963
(Regarding the "joys" of Tantric discipline, when Satprem was still at his seven thousandth, or was it
seven hundred thousandth, Tantric yantram. Satprem unfortunately did not keep the beginning of this
conversation.)

... It's true, in fact, off and on I have fits of revolt, but more and more I'm settling into a kind of
nothingness - not many things have meaning. I was very attached to life, I loved life, I found it
beautiful - that's gone.
Oh, yes, I can understand that!
But still, there was something good in that love of life, wasn't there?
Yes... for later on, when life is different from what it is.
Now that's gone, if I were told, "You will die tomorrow," I wouldn't care at all.
Of course! I understand.
And besides, that's the almost essential condition for being capable of living another life while
remaining here. It's essential, mon petit, as long as one has the "taste for life," one is tossed and shaken
about.... I consider it a GREAT progress.
That's very good.
The taste for life is, we could say, like a foretaste of what will be, but it isn't at all suited to what is.
(silence)
You see, when you have the certitude - the certitude - that Ananda, joy, blossoming are the Truth of
your being, when you have that inner certitude and look at life as it is, it appears incredible (not the
certitude, but life as it is!), an incredible deformation.
Just recently I have been observing this fact. Apart from Sri Aurobindo, all the people I have ever
met and had around me were dissatisfied. And in some cases (cases of lives more constantly intimate
with me), either rebels, or people terribly bitter about life as it is - which is the very opposite of my
nature. I am rather on the side of those who take things quite philosophically as they are - even when I
was a very small child. So then I wondered (I saw this these last few days): "Why is it like that?"
I saw that this attitude or way of feeling is like a fortress for what opposes the transformation.
(silence)
I jotted down two observations this morning and kept them on the table with the idea of reading them
to you (they were "remarks," "observations"), and very clearly I was told that to have that very keen
sense of discernment which sees all that is contrary to the divine Truth is very good, it's very good not
to be disappointed or deceived (in particular not to deceive oneself), but that whenever you stress on
that aspect, you give it a POWER OF BEING, a sort of power that prolongs or perpetuates its
existence. So I took my notes and threw them into the wastepaper basket! (Mother laughs) They were
the result of studies and observations recently.
As long as Sri Aurobindo was here, these things did not come near me because I counted on him for
the exact perception of what was to be and what was to disappear; so they were very far away from my
consciousness, I didn't bother about them. They came back only afterwards, when I had to take up the
whole work.
But, to tell the truth, if we could always keep in our consciousness, in a clear and living way, the
vision of WHAT SHOULD BE, not with the illusion that it's already there (there must be no illusions),
but a clear, positive vision of what should be, despite all that denies it... we would be very strong. This

necessity is beginning to impose itself: that's what I am asked to do now. We KNOW things are not as
they should be (God knows we know it!), but to keep deliberately ignoring those denials in order to
keep ACTIVELY in the consciousness the vision of what should be - that, I feel, is true creative
power.
You know, the fact of no longer having the physical support of Sri Aurobindo's presence was a
blow that might have been mortal (I prevented it from being mortal by closing a door, because he had
asked me to continue and I decided to continue), but it made certain things rather difficult because it
became necessary to have a constant perception of what has to be done and a constant effort to change
what is into what should be.... Probably it's a period of work that must be completed now, and he was
asking of me the capacity to live in the positive side. The trouble is, the body is itself a kind of
contradiction - but it was suggested to me that those contradictions of the body arise from the fact that
I admit in the consciousness all the contradictions, and that consequently they are there in the body,
too. Instead of looking at the body and saying, "Oh, this (this limitation, that narrowness) is still here,"
I should look only at WHAT SHOULD BE, and the body would be forced to follow.
This seems to be the preparation of the program for next year - a long, long way to go yet. But
anyway, there are still a few days left (!)
There are so many victories I can't win yet! It's obviously an incapacity, there are limitations; it
must come from an attitude that's not entirely what it should be.
The Lord's Presence is there, his Action is there, in a way that I could almost call perpetual because
It rarely... It never withdraws, but the times when It isn't active, when It becomes a little passive, are far
less frequent than the times when It is active - far less, there is a big difference. And yet, the result this
ought to bring is not there. Therefore, since It uses this body and this atmosphere [of Mother], there
must be something that dims, that limits, that alters.... I could give some quite precise and concrete
examples, but anyway they involve certain people here, so I won't mention them. But that's what made
me question: why, why?...
I have a feeling that something is pressing to eliminate in my active consciousness that discernment
which is so sharp, so imperative - sharp, you know, with a vision... (like the vision I had the other day
of the nearness and farness), a vision almost microscopically exact. Obviously, this is helpful to get rid
of all the things that shouldn't be, but now there is a will for this attitude to move into the background,
and for the active consciousness to see constantly and almost exclusively only WHAT SHOULD BE.
Which means there are movements of elimination, of rejection, movements (for a second) of
transformation, and also movements of construction - it seems the time has come to step into the
movement of construction.
The body consciousness is still very timid, very timid in the sense that it doesn't have confidence in
itself. It feels that if it isn't constantly vigilant, watching, watching, observing, discerning, some things
(gesture below) may get through that shouldn't get through. That's what hinders. And that is why this
certainty comes more and more: no criticism, no criticism at all, none at all, don't see what shouldn't be
- see only WHAT SHOULD BE.
It's a great victory to be won - a great victory.
And all the more great and difficult since (certainly because of the necessities of the work) I am
surrounded only by people who are on the other side. I don't have around me a single optimist. All that
people tell me, all that they bring to me, is always the vision (more or less clear and complete) of what
should go; but the vision of what should be... I have never found it except in Sri Aurobindo.
It's only in sudden gusts, in flashes, now and then, and only when he wrote (never when he spoke)
that you could find that sort of sharp thing, of sharp discernment, like in what we translated the other
day. Otherwise, when he spoke, when he was with people, there was never a negative criticism.

No one else.
From my earliest childhood (when I was five, my memories at five) and for more than eighty years,
I have always been surrounded with people who brought me an abundance of revolt, discontent, and
then, more and more so, cases (certain cases have been very acute and still are) of sheer ingratitude -
not towards me, that doesn't matter at all: towards the Divine. Ingratitude... that is something I have
often found very, very painful - that it should exist. It's one of the things I have seen in my life that
seemed to me the most... the most intolerable - that sort of acid bitterness against the Divine, because
things are as they are, because all that suffering was permitted. It takes on more or less ignorant, more
or less intellectual forms... but it's a kind of bitterness. It takes sometimes personal forms, which makes
the struggle even more difficult because you can't mix in questions of persons - it's not a personal
question, it's an ERROR to think that there can be a single "personal" movement in the world; it's man's
ignorant consciousness which makes it personal, but it isn't: it's all terrestrial attitudes.
It came with the Mind; animals don't have that. And that's why I feel a sweetness in animals, even
the supposedly most ferocious, which doesn't exist in man.
(long silence)
And yet, of all movements, the one that gives perhaps the most joy - an unalloyed joy, untainted by
that egoism - is spontaneous gratitude.
It is something very special. It isn't love, it isn't self-offering.... It's a very FULL joy. Very full.
It is a very special vibration unlike anything other than itself. It is something that widens you, that
fills you - that is so fervent!
It is certainly, of all the movements within the reach of human consciousness, the one that draws
you the most out of your ego.
And when it can be a gratitude without motive, that vibration (basically, the vibration of what exists
towards the Cause of existence)... then a great many barriers vanish instantly.
(Mother contemplates that vibration
of gratitude for a long time)
When you can enter that vibration in its purity, you realize immediately that it has the same quality as
the vibration of Love: it is directionless. It isn't something going from one thing to another, it doesn't go
from here to there (gesture from low to high) or there to here... it is (round gesture) simultaneous and
total.
I mean it isn't something that needs the two poles in order to exist; it doesn't go from one pole to the
other or from the other to the one: it's a vibration which in its purity is the same as the vibration of
Love, which doesn't go from here to there or from there to here - the two poles of existence.
It exists in itself for its own delight of being. (And what I am saying spoils it a lot.)
Like Love.
Men have repeated ad nauseam that nothing exists without those two poles, that those two poles are
the cause of existence and everything revolves around them (Mother shakes her head), but that's not the
way it is. This means that man, in his ordinary outward consciousness, cannot understand anything
beyond that. There we are. That we know. But in its essence (Mother again shakes her head), Love is
not like that.
Ultimately, gratitude is only a very slightly colored hue of the essential Vibration of Love.

(meditation)

December 25, 1963
(Mother looks tired)
How are your nights?
Not too conscious.
That doesn't matter (!) If you get rest, that's all that is needed.
Last night there was a perpetual harassment.
(silence)
There is at the moment an entire study going on in the subconscient on the cause of illnesses. I am not
seeing very pleasant things....
There is a whole zone in the most material vital which penetrates, as it were, the subtle physical -
that's where illnesses are formed. You see swarms of completely crooked formations - a lack of
sincerity. And it expresses itself in images: I see all kinds of people and do all kinds of things in a
special zone - the same people who are elsewhere are here too under a special aspect. It's a mixture of
the deformation of consciousness, the deformation of language, the deformation of forms - swarms and
swarms!... For hours.
But I was always accompanied by a form, not a very precise one, but which was the materialization
in that realm of the Lord's Presence. I remember having for the work entered a huge room, completely
bare, without anything, in a half-light, when suddenly I felt something grabbing hold of me here
(gesture at the nape of the neck), something I even felt physically (I was lying in my bed, but I felt it
physically). So I pointed it out to that Form which was accompanying me everywhere - so attentive, so
close - to explain and show things to me; I complained, saying, "Look, something has grabbed hold of
me, it even hurts physically." So I saw a kind of arm come and take that thing on my neck, pull it away
and present it to me: it was like one of those big bats that are called flying fox (there are some here, they
eat little birds, chicks...), it was clinging to my neck! He said, "Oh, it's nothing! It's only that." (Mother
laughs) And it was a big thing like this (about three feet) which had grabbed hold of me here and had
its two claws still out (he had wrenched it off my neck). It had become flat and almost inert, but it was
still as vicious as anything.
It was quite simply an "incident" - to mention just one.
But the remarkable thing is that my physical pain went away immediately; I felt a pain in the nape
of my neck, like a weight that hurt and pressed on the nerves, and it went away instantly: "Oh, it's

nothing, just that"!
Then He seemed to lead me to other places, where I saw a sort of scorpion with a very odd shape (it
was also a sort of entity in that realm and it gave other illnesses) trying to climb up somewhere. There
was also a truncated snake which had been cut through, and out of the cut something like its life was
escaping, yet it was still alive. All kinds of horrors. But there wasn't the slightest feeling of disgust: it
was more like a consciousness studying, observing, and the "I" that observed was the force exerted by
the consciousness on the play of those things.
It isn't a pleasant realm. It's the realm that's just like this (Mother places one hand over the other),
immediately beyond... (how can I put it? It's neither higher nor deeper inside) beyond the subtle
physical, and it's the realm in which formations of illness MATERIALIZE. I spent more than three
hours of the night in it.
It's a kind of study... a useful one, maybe. And I noticed, I remember having complained, "Oh, it
hurts!" (Apparently I was sound asleep, but I was very conscious of my body.) So it interested me, and
I turned to the Lord: "It hurts quite a bit." So He extended his hand, took that thing away and presented
it to me, saying, "Oh, it's only that"!... It wasn't pretty. But then, INSTANTLY, the pain went away. I
had been feeling some pain in the evening before going to bed (the nerves ached, the neck muscles
hurt, it was like something weighing down heavily and clinging to me painfully); I saw His hand take it
and present that animal to me, and I heard the voice say, Oh, it's only that (He speaks to me in English),
it's only that - gone!
Exactly what Sri Aurobindo did when he was here: his hand seemed to come, take hold of the pain,
and the illness went away.
Only, these nights are a little... tiring. Nights of work, of struggle. And then during the day, there is
that avalanche of people and things.... If you don't go mad, it's a sure sign you had no predisposition to
madness! (Mother laughs)
Well.
You should get some rest nevertheless. It's time this book was finished and those [Tantric] writings
were finished - so you can go and sit facing the sea. And watch the waves move, no?
I still have eight days of work.
All right. You'll have to hold on for eight days.
Those eight days are the most...
Afterwards, you go and sit and watch the waves. The waves... that's pretty! (Mother laughs ironically)

December 29, 1963

(Note from Mother to Satprem)
Satprem, mon cher petit,
On the 31st I will see you in the music room, and I would like Sujata too to come at 10 A.M.,
because I want to try different key boards of the organ, and she will help me arrange them.
My tenderness is ever with you
signed: Mother

December 31, 1963
(Mother tests the organ:
a little white figure
swaying on her stool)
There.
You have recorded it, haven't you?... And we'll play it tomorrow [for the Ashram] - that way, I
won't have any work to do!
(Sujata:) Is it "work "?
You always have fun.
It gives me fun.... I don't know, I don't know what I play at all, at all, at all! I barely hear it. There is
something having fun "over there." If I listen just a minute, it begins to disturb me!
That's enough, no?
(To Satprem:) What do you say, you there? Is that enough or do you want to hear more?
It depends. If you're tired...
Oh (laughing), tiring, this! It doesn't tire anything. The head is empty. I tell you, when I listen, it gets
more difficult; if I don't listen, it's fine.
What time is it?
Almost half past ten.
Do you have anything to tell me?... You want to hear more... in a minor key - this was a major key!

(To Sujata:) What about you, do you prefer "gay" or "sad"? (laughter)
I intended to play "The Horror of the World of Falsehood" tomorrow, and to end with "The Glory
of Light"... if it comes.
But this is a little relaxation... musical relaxation.
(Mother plays the harmonium again:
"gay minor key" and
ends with a G)
Finished this time.
That's a promise: the G.
Whenever a promise comes, it ends with a G.
(Mother vibrates the G)
So I'll keep the keyboards as they are. And tomorrow at half past twelve when I play [for the Ashram],
maybe it won't be... as free as today!
(To Sujata:) You put everything back in place.
I don't know the time.... The clock is there [on the wall], but I can't see anything: I see the bright
sky.
(Mother gives flowers)
It's a "golden power" [a hibiscus], lovely, isn't it!
What did the music evoke in you?... I don't want you to say "good" or "bad," but did it suggest
anything?
My eyes fell on this sentence of Sri Aurobindo [on the calendar]
Ah, exactly! That's it. That's it! Every day, I look at it. In the evening the date and the quotation are
changed - I don't know what tomorrow's text will be, we have to change the calendar and start
"January." Would you like us to do it? Bring the calendar here.
All this will go now!
We have December here. (Mother reads:)
And earth shall be the Spirit's manifest home146
(Sujata:) Is it the promise that came?
Yes, the promise of the G. The G always promises.
(Mother sets the calendar
to January 1, 1964, and reads
146Savitri.

Sri Aurobindo's quotation)
All can be done if God's touch is there147
There: All can be done. All.
I like this calendar a lot because of its quotations. I change it every evening.
Tomorrow, I see here... (Mother looks at her notebook) four, five, six, seven, eight people, and two
over there, which makes ten - tomorrow morning between 10 and 11 A.M.... (Laughing) "All can be
done if God's touch is there"!
So I'll see you next year.
Did I give you everything? Did I give you the second calendar [with a photograph of Mother,
printed in Calcutta]? The other one, he [Satprem] didn't like it.
(Sujata:) You're too stern, little Mother!
Ah, there we are again! But I wasn't stern: I was in contemplation!
(Satprem:) A stern contemplation.
(On the second calendar,
the photograph shows Mother
engaged in her translation work)
It's the last part of the Synthesis.148 We were supposed to revise it together, but it doesn't work.... (To
Sujata:) You know what he does? He takes the English and starts translating again! (laughing) So
there's no work left for me!
The conclusion is that when he has finished his book, I'll give you my manuscript to type. If my
eyes were good, it would do, but they're no good, the poor things (I can't speak ill of them, they've
served well, but anyway...). Or else, he [Satprem] would have to correct directly on my manuscript, but
that he won't do.
Ah, no!
So it's no use.
(Sujata:) I also have a whole year of "Agenda" to catch up with.
147Savitri.
148In fact, the passage Mother is seen translating in the photograph is from Savitri:
Our will [shall be] a force of the Eternal's power
And thought the rays of a spiritual sun.
(I.IV.55)

Oh, the Agenda.... I keep talking on and on. He has a knack for making me talk - before he comes, I
decide, "Today, I won't say anything," and then... I don't know, he doesn't say anything, doesn't ask
anything, and I don't know what happens but I start talking!149
All right, so we'll begin the revision of the Synthesis on the 4th, Is my handwriting difficult?
(Sujata:) No, no!
Oh, it's not so good any more. And while I was writing it, some strange things happened: one day,
suddenly, I feel I've lost all control over my hand.... How do you write? And all at once, I start writing,
and then I see: it's Sri Aurobindo's handwriting! And as it is illegible, I thought, "That's no great
progress!" (laughter) So I really exerted myself, concentrated, wrote slowly, slowly, like a pupil in
school, and it came back!
So you may come across some passages that aren't all that legible.
But the last part ["The Yoga of Self-Perfection"] is the longest, and it's difficult, too.
He didn't complete it.
He never completed the last chapter, he even told me, "You will complete it when I have completed
my yoga," and then he went, left everything.
Afterwards, several times, he told me that I should be the one to complete it - I answered him that I
didn't have the brain for it. Or else I would have to write it in a mediumistic way, but I am not a good
medium, I am too conscious - the consciousness is immediately awake in the background and watches
the phenomenon, so it stops working.
But your Agenda is the end of the "Yoga of Self-Perfection"!
Well, it'll be a long end! (Mother laughs) In other words, when it's over (we must first wait for it to be
over), when it's over, with those notes, we could establish something - you'll have to wait for some
time! There are still several years to go.
It doesn't matter, we aren't bored, are we? (To Sujata:) Are you bored? Tell me frankly, are you
bored? (Sujata laughs) I don't need to ask HIM, I know the answer: "Oh, it's endless, it lasts forever,
nothing happens, nothing takes place...." (laughter) Anyway, my children, that's the way it is. I am
going as fast as I can, I am the one most concerned! But you can't hurry, it's not possible. Not possible.
In fact, in Savitri, Sri Aurobindo went through all the worlds, and it so happens that I am following
that without knowing it (because I never remember - thank God, I really thank heaven! - I asked the
Lord to take away my mental memory and He took it away entirely, so I am not weighed down), but I
follow that description in Savitri without mentally knowing the sequence of the worlds, and these last
few days... I was in that Muddle of Falsehood (I told you last time), it was really painful, and I was
tracking it down to the most tenuous vibrations, those that go back to the origin, to the moment when
Truth could turn into Falsehood - how it all happened. And it is so tenuous, almost imperceptible, that
deformation, the original Deformation, that you tend to lose heart and you think, "It's still really quite
easy to topple over... the slightest thing and you can still topple over into Falsehood, into Deformation."
And yesterday, I had in my hands a passage from Savitri that was brought to me - it's a marvel, but...
it's so sad, so miserable, oh, I could have cried (I don't easily cry).
The

world

grew

full

of

149Indeed, Satprem asked Mother few questions, but he WAS a question.

menacing

Energies,

And
wherever
turned
for
help
or
hope
his
eyes,
In
field
and
house,
in
street
and
camp
and
mart,
He
met
the
prowl
and
stealthy
come
and
go
Of
armed
disquieting
bodied
Influences.
A
march
of
goddess
figures
dark
and
nude
Alarmed
the
air
with
grandiose
unease;
Appalling
footsteps
drew
invisibly
near,
Shapes
that
were
threats
invaded
the
dream-light,
And
ominous
beings
passed
him
on
the
road
Whose
very
gaze
was
a
calamity:
A
charm
and
sweetness
sudden
and
formidable,
Faces
that
raised
alluring
lips
and
eyes
Approached
him
armed
with
beauty
like
a
snare,
But
hid
a
fatal
meaning
in
each
line
And
could
in
a
moment
dangerously
change.
But he alone discerned that screened attack.
(II.VII.205)
It makes you wonder.... It's like something gluey surrounding you, touching you all over; you can't go
forward, you can't do anything without encountering those black and gluey fingers of Falsehood. It was
a very painful impression.
And last night, there was the Answer, as it were. This morning, when I got up, I didn't remember
clearly, but in the middle of the night I knew it very well. (It's not going from sleep to the waking
consciousness: it is coming out of one state to enter another one, and when I came out of that state to
enter the so-called normal one, I remembered very well.) I was as if made to live the WAY of turning
that Falsehood into Truth, and it was so joyful!... So joyful. In the sense that it's a vibration similar to
joy that is capable of dissolving and overcoming the vibration of Falsehood. That was very important:
it isn't effort, it isn't righteousness, or scruple or rigidity, none of that, none of that has any effect on
that sadness (it is a sadness) of Falsehood - it's something so sad, so helpless, so miserable... so
miserable. And only a vibration of Joy can change it.
It was a vibration that flowed like silvery water - it rippled and flowed like silvery water.
Which means that austerity, asceticism, even an intense and stern aspiration, all sternness, all that:
no action. No action - Falsehood stays put in the background.... But it cannot resist the sparkling of joy.
It's interesting.
(silence)
And in his text, Sri Aurobindo says that the Lord joins the contraries, the opposites, puts them together
so they fight each other, and that this will and action give Him a sardonic smile (I am commenting).
A
tract
he
reached
unbuilt
There
all
could
enter
but
It
was
a
no
man's
A
crowded
neighbourhood
A
borderland
between
the
There
unreality
was

and
owned
by
none:
none
stay
for
long.
land
of
evil
air,
without
one
home,
world
and
hell.
Nature's
Lord:

It
was
a
space
where
nothing
could
be
true,
For
nothing
was
what
it
had
claimed
to
be:
A
high
appearance
wrapped
a
spacious
void.
Yet
nothing
would
confess
its
own
presence
Even
to
itself
in
the
ambiguous
heart:
A
vast
deception
was
the
law
of
things;
Only
by
that
deception
they
could
live.
An
unsubstantial
Nihil
guaranteed
The
falsehood
of
the
forms
this
Nature
took
And
made
them
seem
awhile
to
be
and
live.
A
borrowed
magic
drew
them
from
the
Void;
They
took
a
shape
and
stuff
that
was
not
theirs
And
showed
a
colour
that
they
could
not
keep,
Mirrors
to
a
fantasm
of
reality.
Each
rainbow
brilliance
was
a
splendid
lie;
A
beauty
unreal
graced
a
glamour
face.
Nothing
could
be
relied
on
to
remain:
Joy
nurtured
tears
and
good
an
evil
proved,
But
never
out
of
evil
one
plucked
good:
Love
ended
early
in
hate,
delight
killed
with
pain,
Truth
into
falsity
grew
and
death
ruled
life.
A
Power
that
laughed
at
the
mischief
of
the
world,
An
irony
that
joined
the
world's
contraries
And
flung
them
into
each
other's
arms
to
strive,
Put a sardonic rictus on God's face.
(II. VII. 206)
I was asked for an illustration for H.; I saw the image, the Lord's face with a sardonic smile. And then,
after last night's experience, this morning suddenly that expression of the face changed, and I saw the
image of the true, the true sorrow of Compassion - I don't know how to explain it.... The sardonic smile
changed: from sardonic it grew bitter, from bitter it grew sorrowful, from sorrowful it grew full of an
extraordinary compassion....
(silence)
So we could say that Falsehood is the sorrow of the Lord. And that His Joy is the cure for all
Falsehood.
Sorrow had to be expressed so as to be erased from the creation.
And sorrow is Falsehood - the Lord's sorrow, sorrow in its essence, is Falsehood.
So to live in Falsehood is to hurt the Lord.
It opens up horizons....
And His Joy is the cure for everything.
That's the problem seen from the other angle.
So, if we love the Lord, we cannot give Him cause for sorrow, and necessarily we emerge from
Falsehood and enter Joy.

That's what I saw last night. It was all silvery. All silvery, silvery....
There was even the vision of how the vibrations were in the cells: vibrations that were silvery,
sparkling, rippling, but very regular, and precise... (how can I put it?). It was the contradiction of
Falsehood in the cells; like little flashes of silvery light.
But that [Falsehood] is the great obstacle, the extreme difficulty. It's something gluey which entered
the creation and sticks to everything, and which has become a material habit too, because it's not only
Mind that has Falsehood in it: there's Falsehood in Life, in Life itself. In the completely inanimate, I
don't know.... Maybe it came with Life? (According to Savitri, the origin of Falsehood lies in Life.) But
it's as though Unconsciousness, in order to go towards Consciousness, to return to Consciousness, had
taken the path of Falsehood and Death instead of the path of Truth.
And Falsehood is this: the sorrow of the Lord.
I was asked for a message for next year, and things of that sort kept coming to me, so I didn't say
anything. They wouldn't even understand, it's incomprehensible if you don't have the experience. And
if you say just like that, almost dogmatically, "Falsehood is the sorrow of the Lord," it doesn't mean
anything.
Or if you say it in a literary way, it's no longer true.
And if you said, "Falsehood is the Lord's way of being unhappy" (!) (Mother laughs), people would
think you're not being serious.
Well. My children, I think it's time to go and do our work. I wish you a happy new year!




questions, comments, suggestions/feedback, take-down requests, contribute, etc
contact me @ integralyogin@gmail.com or via the comments below
or join the integral discord server (chatrooms)
if the page you visited was empty, it may be noted and I will try to fill it out. cheers



--- OBJECT INSTANCES [0]


--- PRIMARY CLASS


book
chapter
Satprem

--- SEE ALSO


--- SIMILAR TITLES [0]


Agenda Vol 4
select ::: Being, God, injunctions, media, place, powers, subjects,
favorite ::: cwsa, everyday, grade, mcw, memcards (table), project, project 0001, Savitri, the Temple of Sages, three js, whiteboard,
temp ::: consecration, experiments, knowledge, meditation, psychometrics, remember, responsibility, temp, the Bad, the God object, the Good, the most important, the Ring, the source of inspirations, the Stack, the Tarot, the Word, top priority, whiteboard,

--- DICTIONARIES (in Dictionaries, in Quotes, in Chapters)



--- QUOTES [1 / 1 - 0 / 0] (in Dictionaries, in Quotes, in Chapters)



KEYS (10k)

   1 The Mother

NEW FULL DB (2.4M)


1:I feel all kinds of.... Yes, yes, of course, it's inevitable. But you must call in tranquillity, that's the only thing.... It keeps coming and coming from all sides; but when you feel things going badly, when you're uneasy or thoroughly upset, you must remember to call in tranquillity. But it's about you, directed against you, all sorts of suggestions that make me.... That want to cut you off from me. Yes, I know perfectly well. It's like that for everybody, not just for you. We must keep going right to the end, that's all - there's nothing else to do. January 31, 1961 ~ The Mother, Agenda Vol 4 Satprem,

*** NEWFULLDB 2.4M ***


--- IN CHAPTERS (in Dictionaries, in Quotes, in Chapters)



1







Agenda_Vol_4, #The Mothers Agenda, #The Mother, #Integral Yoga
  object:Agenda Vol 4
  class:book

change font "color":
change "background-color":
change "font-family": 116437 site hits